home *** CD-ROM | disk | FTP | other *** search
Text File | 1997-10-02 | 578.7 KB | 9,949 lines |
- *******The Project Gutenberg Etext of In the South Seas********
- #20 in our series by Robert Louis Stevenson
-
-
- Copyright laws are changing all over the world, be sure to check
- the copyright laws for your country before posting these files!!
-
- Please take a look at the important information in this header.
- We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk, keeping an
- electronic path open for the next readers. Do not remove this.
-
-
- **Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
-
- **Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
-
- *These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
-
- Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
- further information is included below. We need your donations.
-
-
- In the South Seas
-
- by Robert Louis Stevenson
-
- March, 1996 [Etext #464]
-
-
- *******The Project Gutenberg Etext of In the South Seas********
- *****This file should be named sseas10.txt or sseas10.zip******
-
- Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, sseas11.txt.
- VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, sseas10a.txt.
-
-
- We are now trying to release all our books one month in advance
- of the official release dates, for time for better editing.
-
- Please note: neither this list nor its contents are final till
- midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
- The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
- Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
- preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
- and editing by those who wish to do so. To be sure you have an
- up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx] please check file sizes
- in the first week of the next month. Since our ftp program has
- a bug in it that scrambles the date [tried to fix and failed] a
- look at the file size will have to do, but we will try to see a
- new copy has at least one byte more or less.
-
-
- Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
-
- We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
- fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
- to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
- searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
- projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
- per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
- million dollars per hour this year as we release thirty-two text
- files per month: or 400 more Etexts in 1996 for a total of 800.
- If these reach just 10% of the computerized population, then the
- total should reach 80 billion Etexts.
-
- The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
- Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
- This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
- which is only 10% of the present number of computer users. 2001
- should have at least twice as many computer users as that, so it
- will require us reaching less than 5% of the users in 2001.
-
-
- We need your donations more than ever!
-
-
- All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
- tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
- Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
- to IBC, too)
-
- For these and other matters, please mail to:
-
- Project Gutenberg
- P. O. Box 2782
- Champaign, IL 61825
-
- When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart, Executive
- Director:
- hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet) hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)
-
- We would prefer to send you this information by email
- (Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
-
- ******
- If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
- FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
- [Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
-
- ftp uiarchive.cso.uiuc.edu
- login: anonymous
- password: your@login
- cd etext/etext90 through /etext96
- or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
- dir [to see files]
- get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
- GET INDEX?00.GUT
- for a list of books
- and
- GET NEW GUT for general information
- and
- MGET GUT* for newsletters.
-
- **Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
- (Three Pages)
-
-
- ***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
- Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
- They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
- your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
- someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
- fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
- disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
- you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
-
- *BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
- By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
- etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
- this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
- a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
- sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
- you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
- medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
-
- ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
- This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
- tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
- Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
- Illinois Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other
- things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
- on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
- distribute it in the United States without permission and
- without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
- below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
- under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
-
- To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
- efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
- works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
- medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
- things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
- corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
- intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
- disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
- codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
-
- LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
- But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
- [1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
- etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
- liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
- legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
- UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
- INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
- OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
- POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
-
- If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
- receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
- you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
- time to the person you received it from. If you received it
- on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
- such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
- copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
- choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
- receive it electronically.
-
- THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
- WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
- TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
- LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
- PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
-
- Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
- the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
- above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
- may have other legal rights.
-
- INDEMNITY
- You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
- officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
- and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
- indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
- [1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
- or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
-
- DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
- You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
- disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
- "Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
- or:
-
- [1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
- requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
- etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
- if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
- binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
- including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
- cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
- *EITHER*:
-
- [*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
- does *not* contain characters other than those
- intended by the author of the work, although tilde
- (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
- be used to convey punctuation intended by the
- author, and additional characters may be used to
- indicate hypertext links; OR
-
- [*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
- no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
- form by the program that displays the etext (as is
- the case, for instance, with most word processors);
- OR
-
- [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
- no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
- etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
- or other equivalent proprietary form).
-
- [2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
- "Small Print!" statement.
-
- [3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
- net profits you derive calculated using the method you
- already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
- don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
- payable to "Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois
- Benedictine College" within the 60 days following each
- date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
- your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
-
- WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
- The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
- scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
- free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
- you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
- Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
-
- *END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
-
-
-
-
-
- In the South Seas by Robert Louis Stevenson
- 1908 edition. Scanned and proofed by David Price
- ccx074@coventry.ac.uk
-
-
-
-
-
-
- In the South Seas
-
-
-
-
-
- PART 1: THE MARQUESAS
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I - AN ISLAND LANDFALL
-
-
-
- FOR nearly ten years my health had been declining; and for some
- while before I set forth upon my voyage, I believed I was come to
- the afterpiece of life, and had only the nurse and undertaker to
- expect. It was suggested that I should try the South Seas; and I
- was not unwilling to visit like a ghost, and be carried like a
- bale, among scenes that had attracted me in youth and health. I
- chartered accordingly Dr. Merrit's schooner yacht, the CASCO,
- seventy-four tons register; sailed from San Francisco towards the
- end of June 1888, visited the eastern islands, and was left early
- the next year at Honolulu. Hence, lacking courage to return to my
- old life of the house and sick-room, I set forth to leeward in a
- trading schooner, the EQUATOR, of a little over seventy tons, spent
- four months among the atolls (low coral islands) of the Gilbert
- group, and reached Samoa towards the close of '89. By that time
- gratitude and habit were beginning to attach me to the islands; I
- had gained a competency of strength; I had made friends; I had
- learned new interests; the time of my voyages had passed like days
- in fairyland; and I decided to remain. I began to prepare these
- pages at sea, on a third cruise, in the trading steamer JANET
- NICOLL. If more days are granted me, they shall be passed where I
- have found life most pleasant and man most interesting; the axes of
- my black boys are already clearing the foundations of my future
- house; and I must learn to address readers from the uttermost parts
- of the sea.
-
- That I should thus have reversed the verdict of Lord Tennyson's
- hero is less eccentric than appears. Few men who come to the
- islands leave them; they grow grey where they alighted; the palm
- shades and the trade-wind fans them till they die, perhaps
- cherishing to the last the fancy of a visit home, which is rarely
- made, more rarely enjoyed, and yet more rarely repeated. No part
- of the world exerts the same attractive power upon the visitor, and
- the task before me is to communicate to fireside travellers some
- sense of its seduction, and to describe the life, at sea and
- ashore, of many hundred thousand persons, some of our own blood and
- language, all our contemporaries, and yet as remote in thought and
- habit as Rob Roy or Barbarossa, the Apostles or the Caesars.
-
- The first experience can never be repeated. The first love, the
- first sunrise, the first South Sea island, are memories apart and
- touched a virginity of sense. On the 28th of July 1888 the moon
- was an hour down by four in the morning. In the east a radiating
- centre of brightness told of the day; and beneath, on the skyline,
- the morning bank was already building, black as ink. We have all
- read of the swiftness of the day's coming and departure in low
- latitudes; it is a point on which the scientific and sentimental
- tourist are at one, and has inspired some tasteful poetry. The
- period certainly varies with the season; but here is one case
- exactly noted. Although the dawn was thus preparing by four, the
- sun was not up till six; and it was half-past five before we could
- distinguish our expected islands from the clouds on the horizon.
- Eight degrees south, and the day two hours a-coming. The interval
- was passed on deck in the silence of expectation, the customary
- thrill of landfall heightened by the strangeness of the shores that
- we were then approaching. Slowly they took shape in the
- attenuating darkness. Ua-huna, piling up to a truncated summit,
- appeared the first upon the starboard bow; almost abeam arose our
- destination, Nuka-hiva, whelmed in cloud; and betwixt and to the
- southward, the first rays of the sun displayed the needles of Ua-
- pu. These pricked about the line of the horizon; like the
- pinnacles of some ornate and monstrous church, they stood there, in
- the sparkling brightness of the morning, the fit signboard of a
- world of wonders.
-
- Not one soul aboard the CASCO had set foot upon the islands, or
- knew, except by accident, one word of any of the island tongues;
- and it was with something perhaps of the same anxious pleasure as
- thrilled the bosom of discoverers that we drew near these
- problematic shores. The land heaved up in peaks and rising vales;
- it fell in cliffs and buttresses; its colour ran through fifty
- modulations in a scale of pearl and rose and olive; and it was
- crowned above by opalescent clouds. The suffusion of vague hues
- deceived the eye; the shadows of clouds were confounded with the
- articulations of the mountains; and the isle and its unsubstantial
- canopy rose and shimmered before us like a single mass. There was
- no beacon, no smoke of towns to be expected, no plying pilot.
- Somewhere, in that pale phantasmagoria of cliff and cloud, our
- haven lay concealed; and somewhere to the east of it - the only
- sea-mark given - a certain headland, known indifferently as Cape
- Adam and Eve, or Cape Jack and Jane, and distinguished by two
- colossal figures, the gross statuary of nature. These we were to
- find; for these we craned and stared, focused glasses, and wrangled
- over charts; and the sun was overhead and the land close ahead
- before we found them. To a ship approaching, like the CASCO, from
- the north, they proved indeed the least conspicuous features of a
- striking coast; the surf flying high above its base; strange,
- austere, and feathered mountains rising behind; and Jack and Jane,
- or Adam and Eve, impending like a pair of warts above the breakers.
-
- Thence we bore away along shore. On our port beam we might hear
- the explosions of the surf; a few birds flew fishing under the
- prow; there was no other sound or mark of life, whether of man or
- beast, in all that quarter of the island. Winged by her own
- impetus and the dying breeze, the CASCO skimmed under cliffs,
- opened out a cove, showed us a beach and some green trees, and
- flitted by again, bowing to the swell. The trees, from our
- distance, might have been hazel; the beach might have been in
- Europe; the mountain forms behind modelled in little from the Alps,
- and the forest which clustered on their ramparts a growth no more
- considerable than our Scottish heath. Again the cliff yawned, but
- now with a deeper entry; and the CASCO, hauling her wind, began to
- slide into the bay of Anaho. The cocoa-palm, that giraffe of
- vegetables, so graceful, so ungainly, to the European eye so
- foreign, was to be seen crowding on the beach, and climbing and
- fringing the steep sides of mountains. Rude and bare hills
- embraced the inlet upon either hand; it was enclosed to the
- landward by a bulk of shattered mountains. In every crevice of
- that barrier the forest harboured, roosting and nestling there like
- birds about a ruin; and far above, it greened and roughened the
- razor edges of the summit.
-
- Under the eastern shore, our schooner, now bereft of any breeze,
- continued to creep in: the smart creature, when once under way,
- appearing motive in herself. From close aboard arose the bleating
- of young lambs; a bird sang in the hillside; the scent of the land
- and of a hundred fruits or flowers flowed forth to meet us; and,
- presently, a house or two appeared, standing high upon the ankles
- of the hills, and one of these surrounded with what seemed a
- garden. These conspicuous habitations, that patch of culture, had
- we but known it, were a mark of the passage of whites; and we might
- have approached a hundred islands and not found their parallel. It
- was longer ere we spied the native village, standing (in the
- universal fashion) close upon a curve of beach, close under a grove
- of palms; the sea in front growling and whitening on a concave arc
- of reef. For the cocoa-tree and the island man are both lovers and
- neighbours of the surf. 'The coral waxes, the palm grows, but man
- departs,' says the sad Tahitian proverb; but they are all three, so
- long as they endure, co-haunters of the beach. The mark of
- anchorage was a blow-hole in the rocks, near the south-easterly
- corner of the bay. Punctually to our use, the blow-hole spouted;
- the schooner turned upon her heel; the anchor plunged. It was a
- small sound, a great event; my soul went down with these moorings
- whence no windlass may extract nor any diver fish it up; and I, and
- some part of my ship's company, were from that hour the bondslaves
- of the isles of Vivien.
-
- Before yet the anchor plunged a canoe was already paddling from the
- hamlet. It contained two men: one white, one brown and tattooed
- across the face with bands of blue, both in immaculate white
- European clothes: the resident trader, Mr. Regler, and the native
- chief, Taipi-Kikino. 'Captain, is it permitted to come on board?'
- were the first words we heard among the islands. Canoe followed
- canoe till the ship swarmed with stalwart, six-foot men in every
- stage of undress; some in a shirt, some in a loin-cloth, one in a
- handkerchief imperfectly adjusted; some, and these the more
- considerable, tattooed from head to foot in awful patterns; some
- barbarous and knived; one, who sticks in my memory as something
- bestial, squatting on his hams in a canoe, sucking an orange and
- spitting it out again to alternate sides with ape-like vivacity -
- all talking, and we could not understand one word; all trying to
- trade with us who had no thought of trading, or offering us island
- curios at prices palpably absurd. There was no word of welcome; no
- show of civility; no hand extended save that of the chief and Mr.
- Regler. As we still continued to refuse the proffered articles,
- complaint ran high and rude; and one, the jester of the party,
- railed upon our meanness amid jeering laughter. Amongst other
- angry pleasantries - 'Here is a mighty fine ship,' said he, 'to
- have no money on board!' I own I was inspired with sensible
- repugnance; even with alarm. The ship was manifestly in their
- power; we had women on board; I knew nothing of my guests beyond
- the fact that they were cannibals; the Directory (my only guide)
- was full of timid cautions; and as for the trader, whose presence
- might else have reassured me, were not whites in the Pacific the
- usual instigators and accomplices of native outrage? When he reads
- this confession, our kind friend, Mr. Regler, can afford to smile.
-
- Later in the day, as I sat writing up my journal, the cabin was
- filled from end to end with Marquesans: three brown-skinned
- generations, squatted cross-legged upon the floor, and regarding me
- in silence with embarrassing eyes. The eyes of all Polynesians are
- large, luminous, and melting; they are like the eyes of animals and
- some Italians. A kind of despair came over me, to sit there
- helpless under all these staring orbs, and be thus blocked in a
- corner of my cabin by this speechless crowd: and a kind of rage to
- think they were beyond the reach of articulate communication, like
- furred animals, or folk born deaf, or the dwellers of some alien
- planet.
-
- To cross the Channel is, for a boy of twelve, to change heavens; to
- cross the Atlantic, for a man of twenty-four, is hardly to modify
- his diet. But I was now escaped out of the shadow of the Roman
- empire, under whose toppling monuments we were all cradled, whose
- laws and letters are on every hand of us, constraining and
- preventing. I was now to see what men might be whose fathers had
- never studied Virgil, had never been conquered by Caesar, and never
- been ruled by the wisdom of Gaius or Papinian. By the same step I
- had journeyed forth out of that comfortable zone of kindred
- languages, where the curse of Babel is so easy to be remedied; and
- my new fellow-creatures sat before me dumb like images. Methought,
- in my travels, all human relation was to be excluded; and when I
- returned home (for in those days I still projected my return) I
- should have but dipped into a picture-book without a text. Nay,
- and I even questioned if my travels should be much prolonged;
- perhaps they were destined to a speedy end; perhaps my subsequent
- friend, Kauanui, whom I remarked there, sitting silent with the
- rest, for a man of some authority, might leap from his hams with an
- ear-splitting signal, the ship be carried at a rush, and the ship's
- company butchered for the table.
-
- There could be nothing more natural than these apprehensions, nor
- anything more groundless. In my experience of the islands, I had
- never again so menacing a reception; were I to meet with such to-
- day, I should be more alarmed and tenfold more surprised. The
- majority of Polynesians are easy folk to get in touch with, frank,
- fond of notice, greedy of the least affection, like amiable,
- fawning dogs; and even with the Marquesans, so recently and so
- imperfectly redeemed from a blood-boltered barbarism, all were to
- become our intimates, and one, at least, was to mourn sincerely our
- departure.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II - MAKING FRIENDS
-
-
-
- THE impediment of tongues was one that I particularly over-
- estimated. The languages of Polynesia are easy to smatter, though
- hard to speak with elegance. And they are extremely similar, so
- that a person who has a tincture of one or two may risk, not
- without hope, an attempt upon the others.
-
- And again, not only is Polynesian easy to smatter, but interpreters
- abound. Missionaries, traders, and broken white folk living on the
- bounty of the natives, are to be found in almost every isle and
- hamlet; and even where these are unserviceable, the natives
- themselves have often scraped up a little English, and in the
- French zone (though far less commonly) a little French-English, or
- an efficient pidgin, what is called to the westward 'Beach-la-Mar,'
- comes easy to the Polynesian; it is now taught, besides, in the
- schools of Hawaii; and from the multiplicity of British ships, and
- the nearness of the States on the one hand and the colonies on the
- other, it may be called, and will almost certainly become, the
- tongue of the Pacific. I will instance a few examples. I met in
- Majuro a Marshall Island boy who spoke excellent English; this he
- had learned in the German firm in Jaluit, yet did not speak one
- word of German. I heard from a gendarme who had taught school in
- Rapa-iti that while the children had the utmost difficulty or
- reluctance to learn French, they picked up English on the wayside,
- and as if by accident. On one of the most out-of-the-way atolls in
- the Carolines, my friend Mr. Benjamin Hird was amazed to find the
- lads playing cricket on the beach and talking English; and it was
- in English that the crew of the JANET NICOLL, a set of black boys
- from different Melanesian islands, communicated with other natives
- throughout the cruise, transmitted orders, and sometimes jested
- together on the fore-hatch. But what struck me perhaps most of all
- was a word I heard on the verandah of the Tribunal at Noumea. A
- case had just been heard - a trial for infanticide against an ape-
- like native woman; and the audience were smoking cigarettes as they
- awaited the verdict. An anxious, amiable French lady, not far from
- tears, was eager for acquittal, and declared she would engage the
- prisoner to be her children's nurse. The bystanders exclaimed at
- the proposal; the woman was a savage, said they, and spoke no
- language. 'MAIS, VOUS SAVEZ,' objected the fair sentimentalist;
- 'ILS APPRENNENT SI VITE L'ANGLAIS!'
-
- But to be able to speak to people is not all. And in the first
- stage of my relations with natives I was helped by two things. To
- begin with, I was the show-man of the CASCO. She, her fine lines,
- tall spars, and snowy decks, the crimson fittings of the saloon,
- and the white, the gilt, and the repeating mirrors of the tiny
- cabin, brought us a hundred visitors. The men fathomed out her
- dimensions with their arms, as their fathers fathomed out the ships
- of Cook; the women declared the cabins more lovely than a church;
- bouncing Junos were never weary of sitting in the chairs and
- contemplating in the glass their own bland images; and I have seen
- one lady strip up her dress, and, with cries of wonder and delight,
- rub herself bare-breeched upon the velvet cushions. Biscuit, jam,
- and syrup was the entertainment; and, as in European parlours, the
- photograph album went the round. This sober gallery, their
- everyday costumes and physiognomies, had become transformed, in
- three weeks' sailing, into things wonderful and rich and foreign;
- alien faces, barbaric dresses, they were now beheld and fingered,
- in the swerving cabin, with innocent excitement and surprise. Her
- Majesty was often recognised, and I have seen French subjects kiss
- her photograph; Captain Speedy - in an Abyssinian war-dress,
- supposed to be the uniform of the British army - met with much
- acceptance; and the effigies of Mr. Andrew Lang were admired in the
- Marquesas. There is the place for him to go when he shall be weary
- of Middlesex and Homer.
-
- It was perhaps yet more important that I had enjoyed in my youth
- some knowledge of our Scots folk of the Highlands and the Islands.
- Not much beyond a century has passed since these were in the same
- convulsive and transitionary state as the Marquesans of to-day. In
- both cases an alien authority enforced, the clans disarmed, the
- chiefs deposed, new customs introduced, and chiefly that fashion of
- regarding money as the means and object of existence. The
- commercial age, in each, succeeding at a bound to an age of war
- abroad and patriarchal communism at home. In one the cherished
- practice of tattooing, in the other a cherished costume,
- proscribed. In each a main luxury cut off: beef, driven under
- cloud of night from Lowland pastures, denied to the meat-loving
- Highlander; long-pig, pirated from the next village, to the man-
- eating Kanaka. The grumbling, the secret ferment, the fears and
- resentments, the alarms and sudden councils of Marquesan chiefs,
- reminded me continually of the days of Lovat and Struan.
- Hospitality, tact, natural fine manners, and a touchy punctilio,
- are common to both races: common to both tongues the trick of
- dropping medial consonants. Here is a table of two widespread
- Polynesian words:-
-
-
- HOUSE. LOVE.
-
- Tahitian FARE AROHA
-
- New Zealand WHARE
-
- Samoan FALE TALOFA
-
- Manihiki FALE ALOHA
-
- Hawaiian HALE ALOHA
-
- Marquesan HA'E KAOHA
-
-
- The elision of medial consonants, so marked in these Marquesan
- instances, is no less common both in Gaelic and the Lowland Scots.
- Stranger still, that prevalent Polynesian sound, the so-called
- catch, written with an apostrophe, and often or always the
- gravestone of a perished consonant, is to be heard in Scotland to
- this day. When a Scot pronounces water, better, or bottle - WA'ER,
- BE'ER, or BO'LE - the sound is precisely that of the catch; and I
- think we may go beyond, and say, that if such a population could be
- isolated, and this mispronunciation should become the rule, it
- might prove the first stage of transition from T to K, which is the
- disease of Polynesian languages. The tendency of the Marquesans,
- however, is to urge against consonants, or at least on the very
- common letter L, a war of mere extermination. A hiatus is
- agreeable to any Polynesian ear; the ear even of the stranger soon
- grows used to these barbaric voids; but only in the Marquesan will
- you find such names as HAAII and PAAAEUA, when each individual
- vowel must be separately uttered.
-
- These points of similarity between a South Sea people and some of
- my own folk at home ran much in my head in the islands; and not
- only inclined me to view my fresh acquaintances with favour, but
- continually modified my judgment. A polite Englishman comes to-day
- to the Marquesans and is amazed to find the men tattooed; polite
- Italians came not long ago to England and found our fathers stained
- with woad; and when I paid the return visit as a little boy, I was
- highly diverted with the backwardness of Italy: so insecure, so
- much a matter of the day and hour, is the pre-eminence of race. It
- was so that I hit upon a means of communication which I recommend
- to travellers. When I desired any detail of savage custom, or of
- superstitious belief, I cast back in the story of my fathers, and
- fished for what I wanted with some trait of equal barbarism:
- Michael Scott, Lord Derwentwater's head, the second-sight, the
- Water Kelpie, - each of these I have found to be a killing bait;
- the black bull's head of Stirling procured me the legend of RAHERO;
- and what I knew of the Cluny Macphersons, or the Appin Stewarts,
- enabled me to learn, and helped me to understand, about the TEVAS
- of Tahiti. The native was no longer ashamed, his sense of kinship
- grew warmer, and his lips were opened. It is this sense of kinship
- that the traveller must rouse and share; or he had better content
- himself with travels from the blue bed to the brown. And the
- presence of one Cockney titterer will cause a whole party to walk
- in clouds of darkness.
-
- The hamlet of Anaho stands on a margin of flat land between the
- west of the beach and the spring of the impending mountains. A
- grove of palms, perpetually ruffling its green fans, carpets it (as
- for a triumph) with fallen branches, and shades it like an arbour.
- A road runs from end to end of the covert among beds of flowers,
- the milliner's shop of the community; and here and there, in the
- grateful twilight, in an air filled with a diversity of scents, and
- still within hearing of the surf upon the reef, the native houses
- stand in scattered neighbourhood. The same word, as we have seen,
- represents in many tongues of Polynesia, with scarce a shade of
- difference, the abode of man. But although the word be the same,
- the structure itself continually varies; and the Marquesan, among
- the most backward and barbarous of islanders, is yet the most
- commodiously lodged. The grass huts of Hawaii, the birdcage houses
- of Tahiti, or the open shed, with the crazy Venetian blinds, of the
- polite Samoan - none of these can be compared with the Marquesan
- PAEPAE-HAE, or dwelling platform. The paepae is an oblong terrace
- built without cement or black volcanic stone, from twenty to fifty
- feet in length, raised from four to eight feet from the earth, and
- accessible by a broad stair. Along the back of this, and coming to
- about half its width, runs the open front of the house, like a
- covered gallery: the interior sometimes neat and almost elegant in
- its bareness, the sleeping space divided off by an endlong coaming,
- some bright raiment perhaps hanging from a nail, and a lamp and one
- of White's sewing-machines the only marks of civilization. On the
- outside, at one end of the terrace, burns the cooking-fire under a
- shed; at the other there is perhaps a pen for pigs; the remainder
- is the evening lounge and AL FRESCO banquet-hall of the
- inhabitants. To some houses water is brought down the mountains in
- bamboo pipes, perforated for the sake of sweetness. With the
- Highland comparison in my mind, I was struck to remember the
- sluttish mounds of turf and stone in which I have sat and been
- entertained in the Hebrides and the North Islands. Two things, I
- suppose, explain the contrast. In Scotland wood is rare, and with
- materials so rude as turf and stone the very hope of neatness is
- excluded. And in Scotland it is cold. Shelter and a hearth are
- needs so pressing that a man looks not beyond; he is out all day
- after a bare bellyful, and at night when he saith, 'Aha, it is
- warm!' he has not appetite for more. Or if for something else,
- then something higher; a fine school of poetry and song arose in
- these rough shelters, and an air like 'LOCHABER NO MORE' is an
- evidence of refinement more convincing, as well as more
- imperishable, than a palace.
-
- To one such dwelling platform a considerable troop of relatives and
- dependants resort. In the hour of the dusk, when the fire blazes,
- and the scent of the cooked breadfruit fills the air, and perhaps
- the lamp glints already between the pillars and the house, you
- shall behold them silently assemble to this meal, men, women, and
- children; and the dogs and pigs frisk together up the terrace
- stairway, switching rival tails. The strangers from the ship were
- soon equally welcome: welcome to dip their fingers in the wooden
- dish, to drink cocoanuts, to share the circulating pipe, and to
- hear and hold high debate about the misdeeds of the French, the
- Panama Canal, or the geographical position of San Francisco and New
- Yo'ko. In a Highland hamlet, quite out of reach of any tourist, I
- have met the same plain and dignified hospitality.
-
- I have mentioned two facts - the distasteful behaviour of our
- earliest visitors, and the case of the lady who rubbed herself upon
- the cushions - which would give a very false opinion of Marquesan
- manners. The great majority of Polynesians are excellently
- mannered; but the Marquesan stands apart, annoying and attractive,
- wild, shy, and refined. If you make him a present he affects to
- forget it, and it must be offered him again at his going: a pretty
- formality I have found nowhere else. A hint will get rid of any
- one or any number; they are so fiercely proud and modest; while
- many of the more lovable but blunter islanders crowd upon a
- stranger, and can be no more driven off than flies. A slight or an
- insult the Marquesan seems never to forget. I was one day talking
- by the wayside with my friend Hoka, when I perceived his eyes
- suddenly to flash and his stature to swell. A white horseman was
- coming down the mountain, and as he passed, and while he paused to
- exchange salutations with myself, Hoka was still staring and
- ruffling like a gamecock. It was a Corsican who had years before
- called him COCHON SAUVAGE - COCON CHAUVAGE, as Hoka mispronounced
- it. With people so nice and so touchy, it was scarce to be
- supposed that our company of greenhorns should not blunder into
- offences. Hoka, on one of his visits, fell suddenly in a brooding
- silence, and presently after left the ship with cold formality.
- When he took me back into favour, he adroitly and pointedly
- explained the nature of my offence: I had asked him to sell cocoa-
- nuts; and in Hoka's view articles of food were things that a
- gentleman should give, not sell; or at least that he should not
- sell to any friend. On another occasion I gave my boat's crew a
- luncheon of chocolate and biscuits. I had sinned, I could never
- learn how, against some point of observance; and though I was drily
- thanked, my offerings were left upon the beach. But our worst
- mistake was a slight we put on Toma, Hoka's adoptive father, and in
- his own eyes the rightful chief of Anaho. In the first place, we
- did not call upon him, as perhaps we should, in his fine new
- European house, the only one in the hamlet. In the second, when we
- came ashore upon a visit to his rival, Taipi-Kikino, it was Toma
- whom we saw standing at the head of the beach, a magnificent figure
- of a man, magnificently tattooed; and it was of Toma that we asked
- our question: 'Where is the chief?' 'What chief?' cried Toma, and
- turned his back on the blasphemers. Nor did he forgive us. Hoka
- came and went with us daily; but, alone I believe of all the
- countryside, neither Toma nor his wife set foot on board the CASCO.
- The temptation resisted it is hard for a European to compute. The
- flying city of Laputa moored for a fortnight in St. James's Park
- affords but a pale figure of the CASCO anchored before Anaho; for
- the Londoner has still his change of pleasures, but the Marquesan
- passes to his grave through an unbroken uniformity of days.
-
- On the afternoon before it was intended we should sail, a
- valedictory party came on board: nine of our particular friends
- equipped with gifts and dressed as for a festival. Hoka, the chief
- dancer and singer, the greatest dandy of Anaho, and one of the
- handsomest young fellows in the world-sullen, showy, dramatic,
- light as a feather and strong as an ox - it would have been hard,
- on that occasion, to recognise, as he sat there stooped and silent,
- his face heavy and grey. It was strange to see the lad so much
- affected; stranger still to recognise in his last gift one of the
- curios we had refused on the first day, and to know our friend, so
- gaily dressed, so plainly moved at our departure, for one of the
- half-naked crew that had besieged and insulted us on our arrival:
- strangest of all, perhaps, to find, in that carved handle of a fan,
- the last of those curiosities of the first day which had now all
- been given to us by their possessors - their chief merchandise, for
- which they had sought to ransom us as long as we were strangers,
- which they pressed on us for nothing as soon as we were friends.
- The last visit was not long protracted. One after another they
- shook hands and got down into their canoe; when Hoka turned his
- back immediately upon the ship, so that we saw his face no more.
- Taipi, on the other hand, remained standing and facing us with
- gracious valedictory gestures; and when Captain Otis dipped the
- ensign, the whole party saluted with their hats. This was the
- farewell; the episode of our visit to Anaho was held concluded; and
- though the CASCO remained nearly forty hours at her moorings, not
- one returned on board, and I am inclined to think they avoided
- appearing on the beach. This reserve and dignity is the finest
- trait of the Marquesan.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III - THE MAROON
-
-
-
- OF the beauties of Anaho books might be written. I remember waking
- about three, to find the air temperate and scented. The long swell
- brimmed into the bay, and seemed to fill it full and then subside.
- Gently, deeply, and silently the CASCO rolled; only at times a
- block piped like a bird. Oceanward, the heaven was bright with
- stars and the sea with their reflections. If I looked to that
- side, I might have sung with the Hawaiian poet:
-
-
- UA MAOMAO KA LANI, UA KAHAEA LUNA,
- UA PIPI KA MAKA O KA HOKU.
- (The heavens were fair, they stretched above,
- Many were the eyes of the stars.)
-
-
- And then I turned shoreward, and high squalls were overhead; the
- mountains loomed up black; and I could have fancied I had slipped
- ten thousand miles away and was anchored in a Highland loch; that
- when the day came, it would show pine, and heather, and green fern,
- and roofs of turf sending up the smoke of peats; and the alien
- speech that should next greet my ears must be Gaelic, not Kanaka.
-
- And day, when it came, brought other sights and thoughts. I have
- watched the morning break in many quarters of the world; it has
- been certainly one of the chief joys of my existence, and the dawn
- that I saw with most emotion shone upon the bay of Anaho. The
- mountains abruptly overhang the port with every variety of surface
- and of inclination, lawn, and cliff, and forest. Not one of these
- but wore its proper tint of saffron, of sulphur, of the clove, and
- of the rose. The lustre was like that of satin; on the lighter
- hues there seemed to float an efflorescence; a solemn bloom
- appeared on the more dark. The light itself was the ordinary light
- of morning, colourless and clean; and on this ground of jewels,
- pencilled out the least detail of drawing. Meanwhile, around the
- hamlet, under the palms, where the blue shadow lingered, the red
- coals of cocoa husk and the light trails of smoke betrayed the
- awakening business of the day; along the beach men and women, lads
- and lasses, were returning from the bath in bright raiment, red and
- blue and green, such as we delighted to see in the coloured little
- pictures of our childhood; and presently the sun had cleared the
- eastern hill, and the glow of the day was over all.
-
- The glow continued and increased, the business, from the main part,
- ceased before it had begun. Twice in the day there was a certain
- stir of shepherding along the seaward hills. At times a canoe went
- out to fish. At times a woman or two languidly filled a basket in
- the cotton patch. At times a pipe would sound out of the shadow of
- a house, ringing the changes on its three notes, with an effect
- like QUE LE JOUR ME DURE, repeated endlessly. Or at times, across
- a corner of the bay, two natives might communicate in the Marquesan
- manner with conventional whistlings. All else was sleep and
- silence. The surf broke and shone around the shores; a species of
- black crane fished in the broken water; the black pigs were
- continually galloping by on some affair; but the people might never
- have awaked, or they might all be dead.
-
- My favourite haunt was opposite the hamlet, where was a landing in
- a cove under a lianaed cliff. The beach was lined with palms and a
- tree called the purao, something between the fig and mulberry in
- growth, and bearing a flower like a great yellow poppy with a
- maroon heart. In places rocks encroached upon the sand; the beach
- would be all submerged; and the surf would bubble warmly as high as
- to my knees, and play with cocoa-nut husks as our more homely ocean
- plays with wreck and wrack and bottles. As the reflux drew down,
- marvels of colour and design streamed between my feet; which I
- would grasp at, miss, or seize: now to find them what they
- promised, shells to grace a cabinet or be set in gold upon a lady's
- finger; now to catch only MAYA of coloured sand, pounded fragments
- and pebbles, that, as soon as they were dry, became as dull and
- homely as the flints upon a garden path. I have toiled at this
- childish pleasure for hours in the strong sun, conscious of my
- incurable ignorance; but too keenly pleased to be ashamed.
- Meanwhile, the blackbird (or his tropical understudy) would be
- fluting in the thickets overhead.
-
- A little further, in the turn of the bay, a streamlet trickled in
- the bottom of a den, thence spilling down a stair of rock into the
- sea. The draught of air drew down under the foliage in the very
- bottom of the den, which was a perfect arbour for coolness. In
- front it stood open on the blue bay and the CASCO lying there under
- her awning and her cheerful colours. Overhead was a thatch of
- puraos, and over these again palms brandished their bright fans, as
- I have seen a conjurer make himself a halo out of naked swords.
- For in this spot, over a neck of low land at the foot of the
- mountains, the trade-wind streams into Anaho Bay in a flood of
- almost constant volume and velocity, and of a heavenly coolness.
-
- It chanced one day that I was ashore in the cove, with Mrs.
- Stevenson and the ship's cook. Except for the CASCO lying outside,
- and a crane or two, and the ever-busy wind and sea, the face of the
- world was of a prehistoric emptiness; life appeared to stand stock-
- still, and the sense of isolation was profound and refreshing. On
- a sudden, the trade-wind, coming in a gust over the isthmus, struck
- and scattered the fans of the palms above the den; and, behold! in
- two of the tops there sat a native, motionless as an idol and
- watching us, you would have said, without a wink. The next moment
- the tree closed, and the glimpse was gone. This discovery of human
- presences latent over-head in a place where we had supposed
- ourselves alone, the immobility of our tree-top spies, and the
- thought that perhaps at all hours we were similarly supervised,
- struck us with a chill. Talk languished on the beach. As for the
- cook (whose conscience was not clear), he never afterwards set foot
- on shore, and twice, when the CASCO appeared to be driving on the
- rocks, it was amusing to observe that man's alacrity; death, he was
- persuaded, awaiting him upon the beach. It was more than a year
- later, in the Gilberts, that the explanation dawned upon myself.
- The natives were drawing palm-tree wine, a thing forbidden by law;
- and when the wind thus suddenly revealed them, they were doubtless
- more troubled than ourselves.
-
- At the top of the den there dwelt an old, melancholy, grizzled man
- of the name of Tari (Charlie) Coffin. He was a native of Oahu, in
- the Sandwich Islands; and had gone to sea in his youth in the
- American whalers; a circumstance to which he owed his name, his
- English, his down-east twang, and the misfortune of his innocent
- life. For one captain, sailing out of New Bedford, carried him to
- Nuka-hiva and marooned him there among the cannibals. The motive
- for this act was inconceivably small; poor Tari's wages, which were
- thus economised, would scarce have shook the credit of the New
- Bedford owners. And the act itself was simply murder. Tari's life
- must have hung in the beginning by a hair. In the grief and terror
- of that time, it is not unlikely he went mad, an infirmity to which
- he was still liable; or perhaps a child may have taken a fancy to
- him and ordained him to be spared. He escaped at least alive,
- married in the island, and when I knew him was a widower with a
- married son and a granddaughter. But the thought of Oahu haunted
- him; its praise was for ever on his lips; he beheld it, looking
- back, as a place of ceaseless feasting, song, and dance; and in his
- dreams I daresay he revisits it with joy. I wonder what he would
- think if he could be carried there indeed, and see the modern town
- of Honolulu brisk with traffic, and the palace with its guards, and
- the great hotel, and Mr. Berger's band with their uniforms and
- outlandish instruments; or what he would think to see the brown
- faces grown so few and the white so many; and his father's land
- sold, for planting sugar, and his father's house quite perished, or
- perhaps the last of them struck leprous and immured between the
- surf and the cliffs on Molokai? So simply, even in South Sea
- Islands, and so sadly, the changes come.
-
- Tari was poor, and poorly lodged. His house was a wooden frame,
- run up by Europeans; it was indeed his official residence, for Tari
- was the shepherd of the promontory sheep. I can give a perfect
- inventory of its contents: three kegs, a tin biscuit-box, an iron
- saucepan, several cocoa-shell cups, a lantern, and three bottles,
- probably containing oil; while the clothes of the family and a few
- mats were thrown across the open rafters. Upon my first meeting
- with this exile he had conceived for me one of the baseless island
- friendships, had given me nuts to drink, and carried me up the den
- 'to see my house' - the only entertainment that he had to offer.
- He liked the 'Amelican,' he said, and the 'Inglisman,' but the
- 'Flessman' was his abhorrence; and he was careful to explain that
- if he had thought us 'Fless,' we should have had none of his nuts,
- and never a sight of his house. His distaste for the French I can
- partly understand, but not at all his toleration of the Anglo-
- Saxon. The next day he brought me a pig, and some days later one
- of our party going ashore found him in act to bring a second. We
- were still strange to the islands; we were pained by the poor man's
- generosity, which he could ill afford, and, by a natural enough but
- quite unpardonable blunder, we refused the pig. Had Tari been a
- Marquesan we should have seen him no more; being what he was, the
- most mild, long-suffering, melancholy man, he took a revenge a
- hundred times more painful. Scarce had the canoe with the nine
- villagers put off from their farewell before the CASCO was boarded
- from the other side. It was Tari; coming thus late because he had
- no canoe of his own, and had found it hard to borrow one; coming
- thus solitary (as indeed we always saw him), because he was a
- stranger in the land, and the dreariest of company. The rest of my
- family basely fled from the encounter. I must receive our injured
- friend alone; and the interview must have lasted hard upon an hour,
- for he was loath to tear himself away. 'You go 'way. I see you no
- more - no, sir!' he lamented; and then looking about him with
- rueful admiration, 'This goodee ship - no, sir! - goodee ship!' he
- would exclaim: the 'no, sir,' thrown out sharply through the nose
- upon a rising inflection, an echo from New Bedford and the
- fallacious whaler. From these expressions of grief and praise, he
- would return continually to the case of the rejected pig. 'I like
- give present all 'e same you,' he complained; 'only got pig: you
- no take him!' He was a poor man; he had no choice of gifts; he had
- only a pig, he repeated; and I had refused it. I have rarely been
- more wretched than to see him sitting there, so old, so grey, so
- poor, so hardly fortuned, of so rueful a countenance, and to
- appreciate, with growing keenness, the affront which I had so
- innocently dealt him; but it was one of those cases in which speech
- is vain.
-
- Tari's son was smiling and inert; his daughter-in-law, a girl of
- sixteen, pretty, gentle, and grave, more intelligent than most
- Anaho women, and with a fair share of French; his grandchild, a
- mite of a creature at the breast. I went up the den one day when
- Tari was from home, and found the son making a cotton sack, and
- madame suckling mademoiselle. When I had sat down with them on the
- floor, the girl began to question me about England; which I tried
- to describe, piling the pan and the cocoa shells one upon another
- to represent the houses, and explaining, as best I was able, and by
- word and gesture, the over-population, the hunger, and the
- perpetual toil. 'PAS DE COCOTIERS? PAS DO POPOI?' she asked. I
- told her it was too cold, and went through an elaborate
- performance, shutting out draughts, and crouching over an imaginary
- fire, to make sure she understood. But she understood right well;
- remarked it must be bad for the health, and sat a while gravely
- reflecting on that picture of unwonted sorrows. I am sure it
- roused her pity, for it struck in her another thought always
- uppermost in the Marquesan bosom; and she began with a smiling
- sadness, and looking on me out of melancholy eyes, to lament the
- decease of her own people. 'ICI PAS DE KANAQUES,' said she; and
- taking the baby from her breast, she held it out to me with both
- her hands. 'TENEZ - a little baby like this; then dead. All the
- Kanaques die. Then no more.' The smile, and this instancing by
- the girl-mother of her own tiny flesh and blood, affected me
- strangely; they spoke of so tranquil a despair. Meanwhile the
- husband smilingly made his sack; and the unconscious babe struggled
- to reach a pot of raspberry jam, friendship's offering, which I had
- just brought up the den; and in a perspective of centuries I saw
- their case as ours, death coming in like a tide, and the day
- already numbered when there should be no more Beretani, and no more
- of any race whatever, and (what oddly touched me) no more literary
- works and no more readers.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV - DEATH
-
-
-
- THE thought of death, I have said, is uppermost in the mind of the
- Marquesan. It would be strange if it were otherwise. The race is
- perhaps the handsomest extant. Six feet is about the middle height
- of males; they are strongly muscled, free from fat, swift in
- action, graceful in repose; and the women, though fatter and
- duller, are still comely animals. To judge by the eye, there is no
- race more viable; and yet death reaps them with both hands. When
- Bishop Dordillon first came to Tai-o-hae, he reckoned the
- inhabitants at many thousands; he was but newly dead, and in the
- same bay Stanislao Moanatini counted on his fingers eight residual
- natives. Or take the valley of Hapaa, known to readers of Herman
- Melville under the grotesque misspelling of Hapar. There are but
- two writers who have touched the South Seas with any genius, both
- Americans: Melville and Charles Warren Stoddard; and at the
- christening of the first and greatest, some influential fairy must
- have been neglected: 'He shall be able to see,' 'He shall be able
- to tell,' 'He shall be able to charm,' said the friendly
- godmothers; 'But he shall not be able to hear,' exclaimed the last.
- The tribe of Hapaa is said to have numbered some four hundred, when
- the small-pox came and reduced them by one-fourth. Six months
- later a woman developed tubercular consumption; the disease spread
- like a fire about the valley, and in less than a year two
- survivors, a man and a woman, fled from that new-created solitude.
- A similar Adam and Eve may some day wither among new races, the
- tragic residue of Britain. When I first heard this story the date
- staggered me; but I am now inclined to think it possible. Early in
- the year of my visit, for example, or late the year before, a first
- case of phthisis appeared in a household of seventeen persons, and
- by the month of August, when the tale was told me, one soul
- survived, and that was a boy who had been absent at his schooling.
- And depopulation works both ways, the doors of death being set wide
- open, and the door of birth almost closed. Thus, in the half-year
- ending July 1888 there were twelve deaths and but one birth in the
- district of the Hatiheu. Seven or eight more deaths were to be
- looked for in the ordinary course; and M. Aussel, the observant
- gendarme, knew of but one likely birth. At this rate it is no
- matter of surprise if the population in that part should have
- declined in forty years from six thousand to less than four
- hundred; which are, once more on the authority of M. Aussel, the
- estimated figures. And the rate of decline must have even
- accelerated towards the end.
-
- A good way to appreciate the depopulation is to go by land from
- Anaho to Hatiheu on the adjacent bay. The road is good travelling,
- but cruelly steep. We seemed scarce to have passed the deserted
- house which stands highest in Anaho before we were looking dizzily
- down upon its roof; the CASCO well out in the bay, and rolling for
- a wager, shrank visibly; and presently through the gap of Tari's
- isthmus, Ua-huna was seen to hang cloudlike on the horizon. Over
- the summit, where the wind blew really chill, and whistled in the
- reed-like grass, and tossed the grassy fell of the pandanus, we
- stepped suddenly, as through a door, into the next vale and bay of
- Hatiheu. A bowl of mountains encloses it upon three sides. On the
- fourth this rampart has been bombarded into ruins, runs down to
- seaward in imminent and shattered crags, and presents the one
- practicable breach of the blue bay. The interior of this vessel is
- crowded with lovely and valuable trees, - orange, breadfruit,
- mummy-apple, cocoa, the island chestnut, and for weeds, the pine
- and the banana. Four perennial streams water and keep it green;
- and along the dell, first of one, then of another, of these, the
- road, for a considerable distance, descends into this fortunate
- valley. The song of the waters and the familiar disarray of
- boulders gave us a strong sense of home, which the exotic foliage,
- the daft-like growth of the pandanus, the buttressed trunk of the
- banyan, the black pigs galloping in the bush, and the architecture
- of the native houses dissipated ere it could be enjoyed.
-
- The houses on the Hatiheu side begin high up; higher yet, the more
- melancholy spectacle of empty paepaes. When a native habitation is
- deserted, the superstructure - pandanus thatch, wattle, unstable
- tropical timber - speedily rots, and is speedily scattered by the
- wind. Only the stones of the terrace endure; nor can any ruin,
- cairn, or standing stone, or vitrified fort present a more stern
- appearance of antiquity. We must have passed from six to eight of
- these now houseless platforms. On the main road of the island,
- where it crosses the valley of Taipi, Mr. Osbourne tells me they
- are to be reckoned by the dozen; and as the roads have been made
- long posterior to their erection, perhaps to their desertion, and
- must simply be regarded as lines drawn at random through the bush,
- the forest on either hand must be equally filled with these
- survivals: the gravestones of whole families. Such ruins are tapu
- in the strictest sense; no native must approach them; they have
- become outposts of the kingdom of the grave. It might appear a
- natural and pious custom in the hundreds who are left, the
- rearguard of perished thousands, that their feet should leave
- untrod these hearthstones of their fathers. I believe, in fact,
- the custom rests on different and more grim conceptions. But the
- house, the grave, and even the body of the dead, have been always
- particularly honoured by Marquesans. Until recently the corpse was
- sometimes kept in the family and daily oiled and sunned, until, by
- gradual and revolting stages, it dried into a kind of mummy.
- Offerings are still laid upon the grave. In Traitor's Bay, Mr.
- Osbourne saw a man buy a looking-glass to lay upon his son's. And
- the sentiment against the desecration of tombs, thoughtlessly
- ruffled in the laying down of the new roads, is a chief ingredient
- in the native hatred for the French.
-
- The Marquesan beholds with dismay the approaching extinction of his
- race. The thought of death sits down with him to meat, and rises
- with him from his bed; he lives and breathes under a shadow of
- mortality awful to support; and he is so inured to the apprehension
- that he greets the reality with relief. He does not even seek to
- support a disappointment; at an affront, at a breach of one of his
- fleeting and communistic love-affairs, he seeks an instant refuge
- in the grave. Hanging is now the fashion. I heard of three who
- had hanged themselves in the west end of Hiva-oa during the first
- half of 1888; but though this be a common form of suicide in other
- parts of the South Seas, I cannot think it will continue popular in
- the Marquesas. Far more suitable to Marquesan sentiment is the old
- form of poisoning with the fruit of the eva, which offers to the
- native suicide a cruel but deliberate death, and gives time for
- those decencies of the last hour, to which he attaches such
- remarkable importance. The coffin can thus be at hand, the pigs
- killed, the cry of the mourners sounding already through the house;
- and then it is, and not before, that the Marquesan is conscious of
- achievement, his life all rounded in, his robes (like Caesar's)
- adjusted for the final act. Praise not any man till he is dead,
- said the ancients; envy not any man till you hear the mourners,
- might be the Marquesan parody. The coffin, though of late
- introduction, strangely engages their attention. It is to the
- mature Marquesan what a watch is to the European schoolboy. For
- ten years Queen Vaekehu had dunned the fathers; at last, but the
- other day, they let her have her will, gave her her coffin, and the
- woman's soul is at rest. I was told a droll instance of the force
- of this preoccupation. The Polynesians are subject to a disease
- seemingly rather of the will than of the body. I was told the
- Tahitians have a word for it, ERIMATUA, but cannot find it in my
- dictionary. A gendarme, M. Nouveau, has seen men beginning to
- succumb to this insubstantial malady, has routed them from their
- houses, turned them on to do their trick upon the roads, and in two
- days has seen them cured. But this other remedy is more original:
- a Marquesan, dying of this discouragement - perhaps I should rather
- say this acquiescence - has been known, at the fulfilment of his
- crowning wish, on the mere sight of that desired hermitage, his
- coffin - to revive, recover, shake off the hand of death, and be
- restored for years to his occupations - carving tikis (idols), let
- us say, or braiding old men's beards. From all this it may be
- conceived how easily they meet death when it approaches naturally.
- I heard one example, grim and picturesque. In the time of the
- small-pox in Hapaa, an old man was seized with the disease; he had
- no thought of recovery; had his grave dug by a wayside, and lived
- in it for near a fortnight, eating, drinking, and smoking with the
- passers-by, talking mostly of his end, and equally unconcerned for
- himself and careless of the friends whom he infected.
-
- This proneness to suicide, and loose seat in life, is not peculiar
- to the Marquesan. What is peculiar is the widespread depression
- and acceptance of the national end. Pleasures are neglected, the
- dance languishes, the songs are forgotten. It is true that some,
- and perhaps too many, of them are proscribed; but many remain, if
- there were spirit to support or to revive them. At the last feast
- of the Bastille, Stanislao Moanatini shed tears when he beheld the
- inanimate performance of the dancers. When the people sang for us
- in Anaho, they must apologise for the smallness of their repertory.
- They were only young folk present, they said, and it was only the
- old that knew the songs. The whole body of Marquesan poetry and
- music was being suffered to die out with a single dispirited
- generation. The full import is apparent only to one acquainted
- with other Polynesian races; who knows how the Samoan coins a fresh
- song for every trifling incident, or who has heard (on Penrhyn, for
- instance) a band of little stripling maids from eight to twelve
- keep up their minstrelsy for hours upon a stretch, one song
- following another without pause. In like manner, the Marquesan,
- never industrious, begins now to cease altogether from production.
- The exports of the group decline out of all proportion even with
- the death-rate of the islanders. 'The coral waxes, the palm grows,
- and man departs,' says the Marquesan; and he folds his hands. And
- surely this is nature. Fond as it may appear, we labour and
- refrain, not for the rewards of any single life, but with a timid
- eye upon the lives and memories of our successors; and where no one
- is to succeed, of his own family, or his own tongue, I doubt
- whether Rothschilds would make money or Cato practise virtue. It
- is natural, also, that a temporary stimulus should sometimes rouse
- the Marquesan from his lethargy. Over all the landward shore of
- Anaho cotton runs like a wild weed; man or woman, whoever comes to
- pick it, may earn a dollar in the day; yet when we arrived, the
- trader's store-house was entirely empty; and before we left it was
- near full. So long as the circus was there, so long as the CASCO
- was yet anchored in the bay, it behoved every one to make his
- visit; and to this end every woman must have a new dress, and every
- man a shirt and trousers. Never before, in Mr. Regler's
- experience, had they displayed so much activity.
-
- In their despondency there is an element of dread. The fear of
- ghosts and of the dark is very deeply written in the mind of the
- Polynesian; not least of the Marquesan. Poor Taipi, the chief of
- Anaho, was condemned to ride to Hatiheu on a moonless night. He
- borrowed a lantern, sat a long while nerving himself for the
- adventure, and when he at last departed, wrung the CASCOS by the
- hand as for a final separation. Certain presences, called
- Vehinehae, frequent and make terrible the nocturnal roadside; I was
- told by one they were like so much mist, and as the traveller
- walked into them dispersed and dissipated; another described them
- as being shaped like men and having eyes like cats; from none could
- I obtain the smallest clearness as to what they did, or wherefore
- they were dreaded. We may be sure at least they represent the
- dead; for the dead, in the minds of the islanders, are all-
- pervasive. 'When a native says that he is a man,' writes Dr.
- Codrington, 'he means that he is a man and not a ghost; not that he
- is a man and not a beast. The intelligent agents of this world are
- to his mind the men who are alive, and the ghosts the men who are
- dead.' Dr. Codrington speaks of Melanesia; from what I have
- learned his words are equally true of the Polynesian. And yet
- more. Among cannibal Polynesians a dreadful suspicion rests
- generally on the dead; and the Marquesans, the greatest cannibals
- of all, are scarce likely to be free from similar beliefs. I
- hazard the guess that the Vehinehae are the hungry spirits of the
- dead, continuing their life's business of the cannibal ambuscade,
- and lying everywhere unseen, and eager to devour the living.
- Another superstition I picked up through the troubled medium of
- Tari Coffin's English. The dead, he told me, came and danced by
- night around the paepae of their former family; the family were
- thereupon overcome by some emotion (but whether of pious sorrow or
- of fear I could not gather), and must 'make a feast,' of which
- fish, pig, and popoi were indispensable ingredients. So far this
- is clear enough. But here Tari went on to instance the new house
- of Toma and the house-warming feast which was just then in
- preparation as instances in point. Dare we indeed string them
- together, and add the case of the deserted ruin, as though the dead
- continually besieged the paepaes of the living: were kept at
- arm's-length, even from the first foundation, only by propitiatory
- feasts, and, so soon as the fire of life went out upon the hearth,
- swarmed back into possession of their ancient seat?
-
- I speak by guess of these Marquesan superstitions. On the cannibal
- ghost I shall return elsewhere with certainty. And it is enough,
- for the present purpose, to remark that the men of the Marquesas,
- from whatever reason, fear and shrink from the presence of ghosts.
- Conceive how this must tell upon the nerves in islands where the
- number of the dead already so far exceeds that of the living, and
- the dead multiply and the living dwindle at so swift a rate.
- Conceive how the remnant huddles about the embers of the fire of
- life; even as old Red Indians, deserted on the march and in the
- snow, the kindly tribe all gone, the last flame expiring, and the
- night around populous with wolves.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V - DEPOPULATION
-
-
-
- OVER the whole extent of the South Seas, from one tropic to
- another, we find traces of a bygone state of over-population, when
- the resources of even a tropical soil were taxed, and even the
- improvident Polynesian trembled for the future. We may accept some
- of the ideas of Mr. Darwin's theory of coral islands, and suppose a
- rise of the sea, or the subsidence of some former continental area,
- to have driven into the tops of the mountains multitudes of
- refugees. Or we may suppose, more soberly, a people of sea-rovers,
- emigrants from a crowded country, to strike upon and settle island
- after island, and as time went on to multiply exceedingly in their
- new seats. In either case the end must be the same; soon or late
- it must grow apparent that the crew are too numerous, and that
- famine is at hand. The Polynesians met this emergent danger with
- various expedients of activity and prevention. A way was found to
- preserve breadfruit by packing it in artificial pits; pits forty
- feet in depth and of proportionate bore are still to be seen, I am
- told, in the Marquesas; and yet even these were insufficient for
- the teeming people, and the annals of the past are gloomy with
- famine and cannibalism. Among the Hawaiians - a hardier people, in
- a more exacting climate - agriculture was carried far; the land was
- irrigated with canals; and the fish-ponds of Molokai prove the
- number and diligence of the old inhabitants. Meanwhile, over all
- the island world, abortion and infanticide prevailed. On coral
- atolls, where the danger was most plainly obvious, these were
- enforced by law and sanctioned by punishment. On Vaitupu, in the
- Ellices, only two children were allowed to a couple; on Nukufetau,
- but one. On the latter the punishment was by fine; and it is
- related that the fine was sometimes paid, and the child spared.
-
- This is characteristic. For no people in the world are so fond or
- so long-suffering with children - children make the mirth and the
- adornment of their homes, serving them for playthings and for
- picture-galleries. 'Happy is the man that has his quiver full of
- them.' The stray bastard is contended for by rival families; and
- the natural and the adopted children play and grow up together
- undistinguished. The spoiling, and I may almost say the
- deification, of the child, is nowhere carried so far as in the
- eastern islands; and furthest, according to my opportunities of
- observation, in the Paumotu group, the so-called Low or Dangerous
- Archipelago. I have seen a Paumotuan native turn from me with
- embarrassment and disaffection because I suggested that a brat
- would be the better for a beating. It is a daily matter in some
- eastern islands to see a child strike or even stone its mother, and
- the mother, so far from punishing, scarce ventures to resist. In
- some, when his child was born, a chief was superseded and resigned
- his name; as though, like a drone, he had then fulfilled the
- occasion of his being. And in some the lightest words of children
- had the weight of oracles. Only the other day, in the Marquesas,
- if a child conceived a distaste to any stranger, I am assured the
- stranger would be slain. And I shall have to tell in another place
- an instance of the opposite: how a child in Manihiki having taken
- a fancy to myself, her adoptive parents at once accepted the
- situation and loaded me with gifts.
-
- With such sentiments the necessity for child-destruction would not
- fail to clash, and I believe we find the trace of divided feeling
- in the Tahitian brotherhood of Oro. At a certain date a new god
- was added to the Society-Island Olympus, or an old one refurbished
- and made popular. Oro was his name, and he may be compared with
- the Bacchus of the ancients. His zealots sailed from bay to bay,
- and from island to island; they were everywhere received with
- feasting; wore fine clothes; sang, danced, acted; gave exhibitions
- of dexterity and strength; and were the artists, the acrobats, the
- bards, and the harlots of the group. Their life was public and
- epicurean; their initiation a mystery; and the highest in the land
- aspired to join the brotherhood. If a couple stood next in line to
- a high-chieftaincy, they were suffered, on grounds of policy, to
- spare one child; all other children, who had a father or a mother
- in the company of Oro, stood condemned from the moment of
- conception. A freemasonry, an agnostic sect, a company of artists,
- its members all under oath to spread unchastity, and all forbidden
- to leave offspring - I do not know how it may appear to others, but
- to me the design seems obvious. Famine menacing the islands, and
- the needful remedy repulsive, it was recommended to the native mind
- by these trappings of mystery, pleasure, and parade. This is the
- more probable, and the secret, serious purpose of the institution
- appears the more plainly, if it be true that, after a certain
- period of life, the obligation of the votary was changed; at first,
- bound to be profligate: afterwards, expected to be chaste.
-
- Here, then, we have one side of the case. Man-eating among kindly
- men, child-murder among child-lovers, industry in a race the most
- idle, invention in a race the least progressive, this grim, pagan
- salvation-army of the brotherhood of Oro, the report of early
- voyagers, the widespread vestiges of former habitation, and the
- universal tradition of the islands, all point to the same fact of
- former crowding and alarm. And to-day we are face to face with the
- reverse. To-day in the Marquesas, in the Eight Islands of Hawaii,
- in Mangareva, in Easter Island, we find the same race perishing
- like flies. Why this change? Or, grant that the coming of the
- whites, the change of habits, and the introduction of new maladies
- and vices, fully explain the depopulation, why is that depopulation
- not universal? The population of Tahiti, after a period of
- alarming decrease, has again become stationary. I hear of a
- similar result among some Maori tribes; in many of the Paumotus a
- slight increase is to be observed; and the Samoans are to-day as
- healthy and at least as fruitful as before the change. Grant that
- the Tahitians, the Maoris, and the Paumotuans have become inured to
- the new conditions; and what are we to make of the Samoans, who
- have never suffered?
-
- Those who are acquainted only with a single group are apt to be
- ready with solutions. Thus I have heard the mortality of the
- Maoris attributed to their change of residence - from fortified
- hill-tops to the low, marshy vicinity of their plantations. How
- plausible! And yet the Marquesans are dying out in the same houses
- where their fathers multiplied. Or take opium. The Marquesas and
- Hawaii are the two groups the most infected with this vice; the
- population of the one is the most civilised, that of the other by
- far the most barbarous, of Polynesians; and they are two of those
- that perish the most rapidly. Here is a strong case against opium.
- But let us take unchastity, and we shall find the Marquesas and
- Hawaii figuring again upon another count. Thus, Samoans are the
- most chaste of Polynesians, and they are to this day entirely
- fertile; Marquesans are the most debauched: we have seen how they
- are perishing; Hawaiians are notoriously lax, and they begin to be
- dotted among deserts. So here is a case stronger still against
- unchastity; and here also we have a correction to apply. Whatever
- the virtues of the Tahitian, neither friend nor enemy dares call
- him chaste; and yet he seems to have outlived the time of danger.
- One last example: syphilis has been plausibly credited with much
- of the sterility. But the Samoans are, by all accounts, as
- fruitful as at first; by some accounts more so; and it is not
- seriously to be argued that the Samoans have escaped syphilis.
-
- These examples show how dangerous it is to reason from any
- particular cause, or even from many in a single group. I have in
- my eye an able and amiable pamphlet by the Rev. S. E. Bishop: 'Why
- are the Hawaiians Dying Out?' Any one interested in the subject
- ought to read this tract, which contains real information; and yet
- Mr. Bishop's views would have been changed by an acquaintance with
- other groups. Samoa is, for the moment, the main and the most
- instructive exception to the rule. The people are the most chaste
- and one of the most temperate of island peoples. They have never
- been tried and depressed with any grave pestilence. Their clothing
- has scarce been tampered with; at the simple and becoming tabard of
- the girls, Tartuffe, in many another island, would have cried out;
- for the cool, healthy, and modest lava-lava or kilt, Tartuffe has
- managed in many another island to substitute stifling and
- inconvenient trousers. Lastly, and perhaps chiefly, so far from
- their amusements having been curtailed, I think they have been,
- upon the whole, extended. The Polynesian falls easily into
- despondency: bereavement, disappointment, the fear of novel
- visitations, the decay or proscription of ancient pleasures, easily
- incline him to be sad; and sadness detaches him from life. The
- melancholy of the Hawaiian and the emptiness of his new life are
- striking; and the remark is yet more apposite to the Marquesas. In
- Samoa, on the other hand, perpetual song and dance, perpetual
- games, journeys, and pleasures, make an animated and a smiling
- picture of the island life. And the Samoans are to-day the gayest
- and the best entertained inhabitants of our planet. The importance
- of this can scarcely be exaggerated. In a climate and upon a soil
- where a livelihood can be had for the stooping, entertainment is a
- prime necessity. It is otherwise with us, where life presents us
- with a daily problem, and there is a serious interest, and some of
- the heat of conflict, in the mere continuing to be. So, in certain
- atolls, where there is no great gaiety, but man must bestir himself
- with some vigour for his daily bread, public health and the
- population are maintained; but in the lotos islands, with the decay
- of pleasures, life itself decays. It is from this point of view
- that we may instance, among other causes of depression, the decay
- of war. We have been so long used in Europe to that dreary
- business of war on the great scale, trailing epidemics and leaving
- pestilential corpses in its train, that we have almost forgotten
- its original, the most healthful, if not the most humane, of all
- field sports - hedge-warfare. From this, as well as from the rest
- of his amusements and interests, the islander, upon a hundred
- islands, has been recently cut off. And to this, as well as to so
- many others, the Samoan still makes good a special title.
-
- Upon the whole, the problem seems to me to stand thus:- Where there
- have been fewest changes, important or unimportant, salutary or
- hurtful, there the race survives. Where there have been most,
- important or unimportant, salutary or hurtful, there it perishes.
- Each change, however small, augments the sum of new conditions to
- which the race has to become inured. There may seem, A PRIORI, no
- comparison between the change from 'sour toddy' to bad gin, and
- that from the island kilt to a pair of European trousers. Yet I am
- far from persuaded that the one is any more hurtful than the other;
- and the unaccustomed race will sometimes die of pin-pricks. We are
- here face to face with one of the difficulties of the missionary.
- In Polynesian islands he easily obtains pre-eminent authority; the
- king becomes his MAIREDUPALAIS; he can proscribe, he can command;
- and the temptation is ever towards too much. Thus (by all
- accounts) the Catholics in Mangareva, and thus (to my own
- knowledge) the Protestants in Hawaii, have rendered life in a more
- or less degree unliveable to their converts. And the mild,
- uncomplaining creatures (like children in a prison) yawn and await
- death. It is easy to blame the missionary. But it is his business
- to make changes. It is surely his business, for example, to
- prevent war; and yet I have instanced war itself as one of the
- elements of health. On the other hand, it were, perhaps, easy for
- the missionary to proceed more gently, and to regard every change
- as an affair of weight. I take the average missionary; I am sure I
- do him no more than justice when I suppose that he would hesitate
- to bombard a village, even in order to convert an archipelago.
- Experience begins to show us (at least in Polynesian islands) that
- change of habit is bloodier than a bombardment.
-
- There is one point, ere I have done, where I may go to meet
- criticism. I have said nothing of faulty hygiene, bathing during
- fevers, mistaken treatment of children, native doctoring, or
- abortion - all causes frequently adduced. And I have said nothing
- of them because they are conditions common to both epochs, and even
- more efficient in the past than in the present. Was it not the
- same with unchastity, it may be asked? Was not the Polynesian
- always unchaste? Doubtless he was so always: doubtless he is more
- so since the coming of his remarkably chaste visitors from Europe.
- Take the Hawaiian account of Cook: I have no doubt it is entirely
- fair. Take Krusenstern's candid, almost innocent, description of a
- Russian man-of-war at the Marquesas; consider the disgraceful
- history of missions in Hawaii itself, where (in the war of lust)
- the American missionaries were once shelled by an English
- adventurer, and once raided and mishandled by the crew of an
- American warship; add the practice of whaling fleets to call at the
- Marquesas, and carry off a complement of women for the cruise;
- consider, besides, how the whites were at first regarded in the
- light of demi-gods, as appears plainly in the reception of Cook
- upon Hawaii; and again, in the story of the discovery of Tutuila,
- when the really decent women of Samoa prostituted themselves in
- public to the French; and bear in mind how it was the custom of the
- adventurers, and we may almost say the business of the
- missionaries, to deride and infract even the most salutary tapus.
- Here we see every engine of dissolution directed at once against a
- virtue never and nowhere very strong or popular; and the result,
- even in the most degraded islands, has been further degradation.
- Mr. Lawes, the missionary of Savage Island, told me the standard of
- female chastity had declined there since the coming of the whites.
- In heathen time, if a girl gave birth to a bastard, her father or
- brother would dash the infant down the cliffs; and to-day the
- scandal would be small. Or take the Marquesas. Stanislao
- Moanatini told me that in his own recollection, the young were
- strictly guarded; they were not suffered so much as to look upon
- one another in the street, but passed (so my informant put it) like
- dogs; and the other day the whole school-children of Nuka-hiva and
- Ua-pu escaped in a body to the woods, and lived there for a
- fortnight in promiscuous liberty. Readers of travels may perhaps
- exclaim at my authority, and declare themselves better informed. I
- should prefer the statement of an intelligent native like Stanislao
- (even if it stood alone, which it is far from doing) to the report
- of the most honest traveller. A ship of war comes to a haven,
- anchors, lands a party, receives and returns a visit, and the
- captain writes a chapter on the manners of the island. It is not
- considered what class is mostly seen. Yet we should not be pleased
- if a Lascar foremast hand were to judge England by the ladies who
- parade Ratcliffe Highway, and the gentlemen who share with them
- their hire. Stanislao's opinion of a decay of virtue even in these
- unvirtuous islands has been supported to me by others; his very
- example, the progress of dissolution amongst the young, is adduced
- by Mr. Bishop in Hawaii. And so far as Marquesans are concerned,
- we might have hazarded a guess of some decline in manners. I do
- not think that any race could ever have prospered or multiplied
- with such as now obtain; I am sure they would have been never at
- the pains to count paternal kinship. It is not possible to give
- details; suffice it that their manners appear to be imitated from
- the dreams of ignorant and vicious children, and their debauches
- persevered in until energy, reason, and almost life itself are in
- abeyance.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI - CHIEFS AND TAPUS
-
-
-
- WE used to admire exceedingly the bland and gallant manners of the
- chief called Taipi-Kikino. An elegant guest at table, skilled in
- the use of knife and fork, a brave figure when he shouldered a gun
- and started for the woods after wild chickens, always serviceable,
- always ingratiating and gay, I would sometimes wonder where he
- found his cheerfulness. He had enough to sober him, I thought, in
- his official budget. His expenses - for he was always seen attired
- in virgin white - must have by far exceeded his income of six
- dollars in the year, or say two shillings a month. And he was
- himself a man of no substance; his house the poorest in the
- village. It was currently supposed that his elder brother,
- Kauanui, must have helped him out. But how comes it that the elder
- brother should succeed to the family estate, and be a wealthy
- commoner, and the younger be a poor man, and yet rule as chief in
- Anaho? That the one should be wealthy, and the other almost
- indigent is probably to be explained by some adoption; for
- comparatively few children are brought up in the house or succeed
- to the estates of their natural begetters. That the one should be
- chief instead of the other must be explained (in a very Irish
- fashion) on the ground that neither of them is a chief at all.
-
- Since the return and the wars of the French, many chiefs have been
- deposed, and many so-called chiefs appointed. We have seen, in the
- same house, one such upstart drinking in the company of two such
- extruded island Bourbons, men, whose word a few years ago was life
- and death, now sunk to be peasants like their neighbours. So when
- the French overthrew hereditary tyrants, dubbed the commons of the
- Marquesas freeborn citizens of the republic, and endowed them with
- a vote for a CONSEILLER-GENERAL at Tahiti, they probably conceived
- themselves upon the path to popularity; and so far from that, they
- were revolting public sentiment. The deposition of the chiefs was
- perhaps sometimes needful; the appointment of others may have been
- needful also; it was at least a delicate business. The Government
- of George II. exiled many Highland magnates. It never occurred to
- them to manufacture substitutes; and if the French have been more
- bold, we have yet to see with what success.
-
- Our chief at Anaho was always called, he always called himself,
- Taipi-Kikino; and yet that was not his name, but only the wand of
- his false position. As soon as he was appointed chief, his name -
- which signified, if I remember exactly, PRINCE BORN AMONG FLOWERS -
- fell in abeyance, and he was dubbed instead by the expressive
- byword, Taipi-Kikino - HIGHWATER MAN-OF-NO-ACCOUNT - or, Englishing
- more boldly, BEGGAR ON HORSEBACK - a witty and a wicked cut. A
- nickname in Polynesia destroys almost the memory of the original
- name. To-day, if we were Polynesians, Gladstone would be no more
- heard of. We should speak of and address our Nestor as the Grand
- Old Man, and it is so that himself would sign his correspondence.
- Not the prevalence, then, but the significancy of the nickname is
- to be noted here. The new authority began with small prestige.
- Taipi has now been some time in office; from all I saw he seemed a
- person very fit. He is not the least unpopular, and yet his power
- is nothing. He is a chief to the French, and goes to breakfast
- with the Resident; but for any practical end of chieftaincy a rag
- doll were equally efficient.
-
- We had been but three days in Anaho when we received the visit of
- the chief of Hatiheu, a man of weight and fame, late leader of a
- war upon the French, late prisoner in Tahiti, and the last eater of
- long-pig in Nuka-hiva. Not many years have elapsed since he was
- seen striding on the beach of Anaho, a dead man's arm across his
- shoulder. 'So does Kooamua to his enemies!' he roared to the
- passers-by, and took a bite from the raw flesh. And now behold
- this gentleman, very wisely replaced in office by the French,
- paying us a morning visit in European clothes. He was the man of
- the most character we had yet seen: his manners genial and
- decisive, his person tall, his face rugged, astute, formidable, and
- with a certain similarity to Mr. Gladstone's - only for the
- brownness of the skin, and the high-chief's tattooing, all one side
- and much of the other being of an even blue. Further acquaintance
- increased our opinion of his sense. He viewed the CASCO in a
- manner then quite new to us, examining her lines and the running of
- the gear; to a piece of knitting on which one of the party was
- engaged, he must have devoted ten minutes' patient study; nor did
- he desist before he had divined the principles; and he was
- interested even to excitement by a type-writer, which he learned to
- work. When he departed he carried away with him a list of his
- family, with his own name printed by his own hand at the bottom. I
- should add that he was plainly much of a humorist, and not a little
- of a humbug. He told us, for instance, that he was a person of
- exact sobriety; such being the obligation of his high estate: the
- commons might be sots, but the chief could not stoop so low. And
- not many days after he was to be observed in a state of smiling and
- lop-sided imbecility, the CASCO ribbon upside down on his
- dishonoured hat.
-
- But his business that morning in Anaho is what concerns us here.
- The devil-fish, it seems, were growing scarce upon the reef; it was
- judged fit to interpose what we should call a close season; for
- that end, in Polynesia, a tapu (vulgarly spelt 'taboo') has to be
- declared, and who was to declare it? Taipi might; he ought; it was
- a chief part of his duty; but would any one regard the inhibition
- of a Beggar on Horse-back? He might plant palm branches: it did
- not in the least follow that the spot was sacred. He might recite
- the spell: it was shrewdly supposed the spirits would not hearken.
- And so the old, legitimate cannibal must ride over the mountains to
- do it for him; and the respectable official in white clothes could
- but look on and envy. At about the same time, though in a
- different manner, Kooamua established a forest law. It was
- observed the cocoa-palms were suffering, for the plucking of green
- nuts impoverishes and at last endangers the tree. Now Kooamua
- could tapu the reef, which was public property, but he could not
- tapu other people's palms; and the expedient adopted was
- interesting. He tapu'd his own trees, and his example was imitated
- over all Hatiheu and Anaho. I fear Taipi might have tapu'd all
- that he possessed and found none to follow him. So much for the
- esteem in which the dignity of an appointed chief is held by
- others; a single circumstance will show what he thinks of it
- himself. I never met one, but he took an early opportunity to
- explain his situation. True, he was only an appointed chief when I
- beheld him; but somewhere else, perhaps upon some other isle, he
- was a chieftain by descent: upon which ground, he asked me (so to
- say it) to excuse his mushroom honours.
-
- It will be observed with surprise that both these tapus are for
- thoroughly sensible ends. With surprise, I say, because the nature
- of that institution is much misunderstood in Europe. It is taken
- usually in the sense of a meaningless or wanton prohibition, such
- as that which to-day prevents women in some countries from smoking,
- or yesterday prevented any one in Scotland from taking a walk on
- Sunday. The error is no less natural than it is unjust. The
- Polynesians have not been trained in the bracing, practical thought
- of ancient Rome; with them the idea of law has not been disengaged
- from that of morals or propriety; so that tapu has to cover the
- whole field, and implies indifferently that an act is criminal,
- immoral, against sound public policy, unbecoming or (as we say)
- 'not in good form.' Many tapus were in consequence absurd enough,
- such as those which deleted words out of the language, and
- particularly those which related to women. Tapu encircled women
- upon all hands. Many things were forbidden to men; to women we may
- say that few were permitted. They must not sit on the paepae; they
- must not go up to it by the stair; they must not eat pork; they
- must not approach a boat; they must not cook at a fire which any
- male had kindled. The other day, after the roads were made, it was
- observed the women plunged along margin through the bush, and when
- they came to a bridge waded through the water: roads and bridges
- were the work of men's hands, and tapu for the foot of women. Even
- a man's saddle, if the man be native, is a thing no self-respecting
- lady dares to use. Thus on the Anaho side of the island, only two
- white men, Mr. Regler and the gendarme, M. Aussel, possess saddles;
- and when a woman has a journey to make she must borrow from one or
- other. It will be noticed that these prohibitions tend, most of
- them, to an increased reserve between the sexes. Regard for female
- chastity is the usual excuse for these disabilities that men
- delight to lay upon their wives and mothers. Here the regard is
- absent; and behold the women still bound hand and foot with
- meaningless proprieties! The women themselves, who are survivors
- of the old regimen, admit that in those days life was not worth
- living. And yet even then there were exceptions. There were
- female chiefs and (I am assured) priestesses besides; nice customs
- curtseyed to great dames, and in the most sacred enclosure of a
- High Place, Father Simeon Delmar was shown a stone, and told it was
- the throne of some well-descended lady. How exactly parallel is
- this with European practice, when princesses were suffered to
- penetrate the strictest cloister, and women could rule over a land
- in which they were denied the control of their own children.
-
- But the tapu is more often the instrument of wise and needful
- restrictions. We have seen it as the organ of paternal government.
- It serves besides to enforce, in the rare case of some one wishing
- to enforce them, rights of private property. Thus a man, weary of
- the coming and going of Marquesan visitors, tapus his door; and to
- this day you may see the palm-branch signal, even as our great-
- grandfathers saw the peeled wand before a Highland inn. Or take
- another case. Anaho is known as 'the country without popoi.' The
- word popoi serves in different islands to indicate the main food of
- the people: thus, in Hawaii, it implies a preparation of taro; in
- the Marquesas, of breadfruit. And a Marquesan does not readily
- conceive life possible without his favourite diet. A few years ago
- a drought killed the breadfruit trees and the bananas in the
- district of Anaho; and from this calamity, and the open-handed
- customs of the island, a singular state of things arose. Well-
- watered Hatiheu had escaped the drought; every householder of Anaho
- accordingly crossed the pass, chose some one in Hatiheu, 'gave him
- his name' - an onerous gift, but one not to be rejected - and from
- this improvised relative proceeded to draw his supplies, for all
- the world as though he had paid for them. Hence a continued
- traffic on the road. Some stalwart fellow, in a loin-cloth, and
- glistening with sweat, may be seen at all hours of the day, a stick
- across his bare shoulders, tripping nervously under a double
- burthen of green fruits. And on the far side of the gap a dozen
- stone posts on the wayside in the shadow of a grove mark the
- breathing-space of the popoi-carriers. A little back from the
- beach, and not half a mile from Anaho, I was the more amazed to
- find a cluster of well-doing breadfruits heavy with their harvest.
- 'Why do you not take these?' I asked. 'Tapu,' said Hoka; and I
- thought to myself (after the manner of dull travellers) what
- children and fools these people were to toil over the mountain and
- despoil innocent neighbours when the staff of life was thus growing
- at their door. I was the more in error. In the general
- destruction these surviving trees were enough only for the family
- of the proprietor, and by the simple expedient of declaring a tapu
- he enforced his right.
-
- The sanction of the tapu is superstitious; and the punishment of
- infraction either a wasting or a deadly sickness. A slow disease
- follows on the eating of tapu fish, and can only be cured with the
- bones of the same fish burned with the due mysteries. The cocoa-
- nut and breadfruit tapu works more swiftly. Suppose you have eaten
- tapu fruit at the evening meal, at night your sleep will be uneasy;
- in the morning, swelling and a dark discoloration will have
- attacked your neck, whence they spread upward to the face; and in
- two days, unless the cure be interjected, you must die. This cure
- is prepared from the rubbed leaves of the tree from which the
- patient stole; so that he cannot be saved without confessing to the
- Tahuku the person whom he wronged. In the experience of my
- informant, almost no tapu had been put in use, except the two
- described: he had thus no opportunity to learn the nature and
- operation of the others; and, as the art of making them was
- jealously guarded amongst the old men, he believed the mystery
- would soon die out. I should add that he was no Marquesan, but a
- Chinaman, a resident in the group from boyhood, and a reverent
- believer in the spells which he described. White men, amongst whom
- Ah Fu included himself, were exempt; but he had a tale of a
- Tahitian woman, who had come to the Marquesas, eaten tapu fish,
- and, although uninformed of her offence and danger, had been
- afflicted and cured exactly like a native.
-
- Doubtless the belief is strong; doubtless, with this weakly and
- fanciful race, it is in many cases strong enough to kill; it should
- be strong indeed in those who tapu their trees secretly, so that
- they may detect a depredator by his sickness. Or, perhaps, we
- should understand the idea of the hidden tapu otherwise, as a
- politic device to spread uneasiness and extort confessions: so
- that, when a man is ailing, he shall ransack his brain for any
- possible offence, and send at once for any proprietor whose rights
- he has invaded. 'Had you hidden a tapu?' we may conceive him
- asking; and I cannot imagine the proprietor gainsaying it; and this
- is perhaps the strangest feature of the system - that it should be
- regarded from without with such a mental and implicit awe, and,
- when examined from within, should present so many apparent
- evidences of design.
-
- We read in Dr. Campbell's POENAMO of a New Zealand girl, who was
- foolishly told that she had eaten a tapu yam, and who instantly
- sickened, and died in the two days of simple terror. The period is
- the same as in the Marquesas; doubtless the symptoms were so too.
- How singular to consider that a superstition of such sway is
- possibly a manufactured article; and that, even if it were not
- originally invented, its details have plainly been arranged by the
- authorities of some Polynesian Scotland Yard. Fitly enough, the
- belief is to-day - and was probably always - far from universal.
- Hell at home is a strong deterrent with some; a passing thought
- with others; with others, again, a theme of public mockery, not
- always well assured; and so in the Marquesas with the tapu. Mr.
- Regler has seen the two extremes of scepticism and implicit fear.
- In the tapu grove he found one fellow stealing breadfruit, cheerful
- and impudent as a street arab; and it was only on a menace of
- exposure that he showed himself the least discountenanced. The
- other case was opposed in every point. Mr. Regler asked a native
- to accompany him upon a voyage; the man went gladly enough, but
- suddenly perceiving a dead tapu fish in the bottom of the boat,
- leaped back with a scream; nor could the promise of a dollar
- prevail upon him to advance.
-
- The Marquesan, it will be observed, adheres to the old idea of the
- local circumscription of beliefs and duties. Not only are the
- whites exempt from consequences; but their transgressions seem to
- be viewed without horror. It was Mr. Regler who had killed the
- fish; yet the devout native was not shocked at Mr. Regler - only
- refused to join him in his boat. A white is a white: the servant
- (so to speak) of other and more liberal gods; and not to be blamed
- if he profit by his liberty. The Jews were perhaps the first to
- interrupt this ancient comity of faiths; and the Jewish virus is
- still strong in Christianity. All the world must respect our
- tapus, or we gnash our teeth.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII - HATIHEU
-
-
-
- THE bays of Anaho and Hatiheu are divided at their roots by the
- knife-edge of a single hill - the pass so often mentioned; but this
- isthmus expands to the seaward in a considerable peninsula: very
- bare and grassy; haunted by sheep and, at night and morning, by the
- piercing cries of the shepherds; wandered over by a few wild goats;
- and on its sea-front indented with long, clamorous caves, and faced
- with cliffs of the colour and ruinous outline of an old peat-stack.
- In one of these echoing and sunless gullies we saw, clustered like
- sea-birds on a splashing ledge, shrill as sea-birds in their
- salutation to the passing boat, a group of fisherwomen, stripped to
- their gaudy under-clothes. (The clash of the surf and the thin
- female voices echo in my memory.) We had that day a native crew
- and steersman, Kauanui; it was our first experience of Polynesian
- seamanship, which consists in hugging every point of land. There
- is no thought in this of saving time, for they will pull a long way
- in to skirt a point that is embayed. It seems that, as they can
- never get their houses near enough the surf upon the one side, so
- they can never get their boats near enough upon the other. The
- practice in bold water is not so dangerous as it looks - the reflex
- from the rocks sending the boat off. Near beaches with a heavy run
- of sea, I continue to think it very hazardous, and find the
- composure of the natives annoying to behold. We took unmingled
- pleasure, on the way out, to see so near at hand the beach and the
- wonderful colours of the surf. On the way back, when the sea had
- risen and was running strong against us, the fineness of the
- steersman's aim grew more embarrassing. As we came abreast of the
- sea-front, where the surf broke highest, Kauanui embraced the
- occasion to light his pipe, which then made the circuit of the boat
- - each man taking a whiff or two, and, ere he passed it on, filling
- his lungs and cheeks with smoke. Their faces were all puffed out
- like apples as we came abreast of the cliff foot, and the bursting
- surge fell back into the boat in showers. At the next point
- 'cocanetti' was the word, and the stroke borrowed my knife, and
- desisted from his labours to open nuts. These untimely indulgences
- may be compared to the tot of grog served out before a ship goes
- into action.
-
- My purpose in this visit led me first to the boys' school, for
- Hatiheu is the university of the north islands. The hum of the
- lesson came out to meet us. Close by the door, where the draught
- blew coolest, sat the lay brother; around him, in a packed half-
- circle, some sixty high-coloured faces set with staring eyes; and
- in the background of the barn-like room benches were to be seen,
- and blackboards with sums on them in chalk. The brother rose to
- greet us, sensibly humble. Thirty years he had been there, he
- said, and fingered his white locks as a bashful child pulls out his
- pinafore. 'ET POINT DE RESULTATS, MONSIEUR, PRESQUE PAS DE
- RESULTATS.' He pointed to the scholars: 'You see, sir, all the
- youth of Nuka-hiva and Ua-pu. Between the ages of six and fifteen
- this is all that remains; and it is but a few years since we had a
- hundred and twenty from Nuka-hiva alone. OUI, MONSIEUR, CELA SE
- DEPERIT.' Prayers, and reading and writing, prayers again and
- arithmetic, and more prayers to conclude: such appeared to be the
- dreary nature of the course. For arithmetic all island people have
- a natural taste. In Hawaii they make good progress in mathematics.
- In one of the villages on Majuro, and generally in the Marshall
- group, the whole population sit about the trader when he is
- weighing copra, and each on his own slate takes down the figures
- and computes the total. The trader, finding them so apt,
- introduced fractions, for which they had been taught no rule. At
- first they were quite gravelled but ultimately, by sheer hard
- thinking, reasoned out the result, and came one after another to
- assure the trader he was right. Not many people in Europe could
- have done the like. The course at Hatiheu is therefore less
- dispiriting to Polynesians than a stranger might have guessed; and
- yet how bald it is at best! I asked the brother if he did not tell
- them stories, and he stared at me; if he did not teach them
- history, and he said, 'O yes, they had a little Scripture history -
- from the New Testament'; and repeated his lamentations over the
- lack of results. I had not the heart to put more questions; I
- could but say it must be very discouraging, and resist the impulse
- to add that it seemed also very natural. He looked up - 'My days
- are far spent,' he said; 'heaven awaits me.' May that heaven
- forgive me, but I was angry with the old man and his simple
- consolation. For think of his opportunity! The youth, from six to
- fifteen, are taken from their homes by Government, centralised at
- Hatiheu, where they are supported by a weekly tax of food; and,
- with the exception of one month in every year, surrendered wholly
- to the direction of the priests. Since the escapade already
- mentioned the holiday occurs at a different period for the girls
- and for the boys; so that a Marquesan brother and sister meet
- again, after their education is complete, a pair of strangers. It
- is a harsh law, and highly unpopular; but what a power it places in
- the hands of the instructors, and how languidly and dully is that
- power employed by the mission! Too much concern to make the
- natives pious, a design in which they all confess defeat, is, I
- suppose, the explanation of their miserable system. But they might
- see in the girls' school at Tai-o-hae, under the brisk, housewifely
- sisters, a different picture of efficiency, and a scene of
- neatness, airiness, and spirited and mirthful occupation that
- should shame them into cheerier methods. The sisters themselves
- lament their failure. They complain the annual holiday undoes the
- whole year's work; they complain particularly of the heartless
- indifference of the girls. Out of so many pretty and apparently
- affectionate pupils whom they have taught and reared, only two have
- ever returned to pay a visit of remembrance to their teachers.
- These, indeed, come regularly, but the rest, so soon as their
- school-days are over, disappear into the woods like captive
- insects. It is hard to imagine anything more discouraging; and yet
- I do not believe these ladies need despair. For a certain interval
- they keep the girls alive and innocently busy; and if it be at all
- possible to save the race, this would be the means. No such praise
- can be given to the boys' school at Hatiheu. The day is numbered
- already for them all; alike for the teacher and the scholars death
- is girt; he is afoot upon the march; and in the frequent interval
- they sit and yawn. But in life there seems a thread of purpose
- through the least significant; the drowsiest endeavour is not lost,
- and even the school at Hatiheu may be more useful than it seems.
-
- Hatiheu is a place of some pretensions. The end of the bay towards
- Anaho may be called the civil compound, for it boasts the house of
- Kooamua, and close on the beach, under a great tree, that of the
- gendarme, M. Armand Aussel, with his garden, his pictures, his
- books, and his excellent table, to which strangers are made
- welcome. No more singular contrast is possible than between the
- gendarmerie and the priesthood, who are besides in smouldering
- opposition and full of mutual complaints. A priest's kitchen in
- the eastern islands is a depressing spot to see; and many, or most
- of them, make no attempt to keep a garden, sparsely subsisting on
- their rations. But you will never dine with a gendarme without
- smacking your lips; and M. Aussel's home-made sausage and the salad
- from his garden are unforgotten delicacies. Pierre Loti may like
- to know that he is M. Aussel's favourite author, and that his books
- are read in the fit scenery of Hatiheu bay.
-
- The other end is all religious. It is here that an overhanging and
- tip-tilted horn, a good sea-mark for Hatiheu, bursts naked from the
- verdure of the climbing forest, and breaks down shoreward in steep
- taluses and cliffs. From the edge of one of the highest, perhaps
- seven hundred or a thousand feet above the beach, a Virgin looks
- insignificantly down, like a poor lost doll, forgotten there by a
- giant child. This laborious symbol of the Catholics is always
- strange to Protestants; we conceive with wonder that men should
- think it worth while to toil so many days, and clamber so much
- about the face of precipices, for an end that makes us smile; and
- yet I believe it was the wise Bishop Dordillon who chose the place,
- and I know that those who had a hand in the enterprise look back
- with pride upon its vanquished dangers. The boys' school is a
- recent importation; it was at first in Tai-o-hae, beside the
- girls'; and it was only of late, after their joint escapade, that
- the width of the island was interposed between the sexes. But
- Hatiheu must have been a place of missionary importance from
- before. About midway of the beach no less than three churches
- stand grouped in a patch of bananas, intermingled with some pine-
- apples. Two are of wood: the original church, now in disuse; and
- a second that, for some mysterious reason, has never been used.
- The new church is of stone, with twin towers, walls flangeing into
- buttresses, and sculptured front. The design itself is good,
- simple, and shapely; but the character is all in the detail, where
- the architect has bloomed into the sculptor. It is impossible to
- tell in words of the angels (although they are more like winged
- archbishops) that stand guard upon the door, of the cherubs in the
- corners, of the scapegoat gargoyles, or the quaint and spirited
- relief, where St. Michael (the artist's patron) makes short work of
- a protesting Lucifer. We were never weary of viewing the imagery,
- so innocent, sometimes so funny, and yet in the best sense - in the
- sense of inventive gusto and expression - so artistic. I know not
- whether it was more strange to find a building of such merit in a
- corner of a barbarous isle, or to see a building so antique still
- bright with novelty. The architect, a French lay brother, still
- alive and well, and meditating fresh foundations, must have surely
- drawn his descent from a master-builder in the age of the
- cathedrals; and it was in looking on the church of Hatiheu that I
- seemed to perceive the secret charm of mediaeval sculpture; that
- combination of the childish courage of the amateur, attempting all
- things, like the schoolboy on his slate, with the manly
- perseverance of the artist who does not know when he is conquered.
-
- I had always afterwards a strong wish to meet the architect,
- Brother Michel; and one day, when I was talking with the Resident
- in Tai-o-hae (the chief port of the island), there were shown in to
- us an old, worn, purblind, ascetic-looking priest, and a lay
- brother, a type of all that is most sound in France, with a broad,
- clever, honest, humorous countenance, an eye very large and bright,
- and a strong and healthy body inclining to obesity. But that his
- blouse was black and his face shaven clean, you might pick such a
- man to-day, toiling cheerfully in his own patch of vines, from half
- a dozen provinces of France; and yet he had always for me a
- haunting resemblance to an old kind friend of my boyhood, whom I
- name in case any of my readers should share with me that memory -
- Dr. Paul, of the West Kirk. Almost at the first word I was sure it
- was my architect, and in a moment we were deep in a discussion of
- Hatiheu church. Brother Michel spoke always of his labours with a
- twinkle of humour, underlying which it was possible to spy a
- serious pride, and the change from one to another was often very
- human and diverting. 'ET VOS GARGOUILLES MOYEN-AGE,' cried I;
- 'COMME ELLES SONT ORIGINATES!' 'N'EST-CE PAS? ELLES SONT BIEN
- DROLES!' he said, smiling broadly; and the next moment, with a
- sudden gravity: 'CEPENDANT IL Y EN A UNE QUI A UNE PATTE DE CASSE;
- IL FAUT QUE JE VOIE CELA.' I asked if he had any model - a point
- we much discussed. 'NON,' said he simply; 'C'EST UNE EGLISE
- IDEALE.' The relievo was his favourite performance, and very
- justly so. The angels at the door, he owned, he would like to
- destroy and replace. 'ILS N'ONT PAS DE VIE, ILS MANQUENT DE VIE.
- VOUS DEVRIEZ VOIR MON EGLISE A LA DOMINIQUE; J'AI LA UNE VIERGE QUI
- EST VRAIMENT GENTILLE.' 'Ah,' I cried, 'they told me you had said
- you would never build another church, and I wrote in my journal I
- could not believe it.' 'OUI, J'AIMERAIS BIEN EN FAIRS UNE AUTRE,'
- he confessed, and smiled at the confession. An artist will
- understand how much I was attracted by this conversation. There is
- no bond so near as a community in that unaffected interest and
- slightly shame-faced pride which mark the intelligent man enamoured
- of an art. He sees the limitations of his aim, the defects of his
- practice; he smiles to be so employed upon the shores of death, yet
- sees in his own devotion something worthy. Artists, if they had
- the same sense of humour with the Augurs, would smile like them on
- meeting, but the smile would not be scornful.
-
- I had occasion to see much of this excellent man. He sailed with
- us from Tai-o-hae to Hiva-oa, a dead beat of ninety miles against a
- heavy sea. It was what is called a good passage, and a feather in
- the CASCO'S cap; but among the most miserable forty hours that any
- one of us had ever passed. We were swung and tossed together all
- that time like shot in a stage thunder-box. The mate was thrown
- down and had his head cut open; the captain was sick on deck; the
- cook sick in the galley. Of all our party only two sat down to
- dinner. I was one. I own that I felt wretchedly; and I can only
- say of the other, who professed to feel quite well, that she fled
- at an early moment from the table. It was in these circumstances
- that we skirted the windward shore of that indescribable island of
- Ua-pu; viewing with dizzy eyes the coves, the capes, the breakers,
- the climbing forests, and the inaccessible stone needles that
- surmount the mountains. The place persists, in a dark corner of
- our memories, like a piece of the scenery of nightmares. The end
- of this distressful passage, where we were to land our passengers,
- was in a similar vein of roughness. The surf ran high on the beach
- at Taahauku; the boat broached-to and capsized; and all hands were
- submerged. Only the brother himself, who was well used to the
- experience, skipped ashore, by some miracle of agility, with scarce
- a sprinkling. Thenceforward, during our stay at Hiva-oa, he was
- our cicerone and patron; introducing us, taking us excursions,
- serving us in every way, and making himself daily more beloved.
-
- Michel Blanc had been a carpenter by trade; had made money and
- retired, supposing his active days quite over; and it was only when
- he found idleness dangerous that he placed his capital and
- acquirements at the service of the mission. He became their
- carpenter, mason, architect, and engineer; added sculpture to his
- accomplishments, and was famous for his skill in gardening. He
- wore an enviable air of having found a port from life's contentions
- and lying there strongly anchored; went about his business with a
- jolly simplicity; complained of no lack of results - perhaps shyly
- thinking his own statuary result enough; and was altogether a
- pattern of the missionary layman.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII - THE PORT OF ENTRY
-
-
-
- THE port - the mart, the civil and religious capital of these rude
- islands - is called Tai-o-hae, and lies strung along the beach of a
- precipitous green bay in Nuka-hiva. It was midwinter when we came
- thither, and the weather was sultry, boisterous, and inconstant.
- Now the wind blew squally from the land down gaps of splintered
- precipice; now, between the sentinel islets of the entry, it came
- in gusts from seaward. Heavy and dark clouds impended on the
- summits; the rain roared and ceased; the scuppers of the mountain
- gushed; and the next day we would see the sides of the amphitheatre
- bearded with white falls. Along the beach the town shows a thin
- file of houses, mostly white, and all ensconced in the foliage of
- an avenue of green puraos; a pier gives access from the sea across
- the belt of breakers; to the eastward there stands, on a projecting
- bushy hill, the old fort which is now the calaboose, or prison;
- eastward still, alone in a garden, the Residency flies the colours
- of France. Just off Calaboose Hill, the tiny Government schooner
- rides almost permanently at anchor, marks eight bells in the
- morning (there or thereabout) with the unfurling of her flag, and
- salutes the setting sun with the report of a musket.
-
- Here dwell together, and share the comforts of a club (which may be
- enumerated as a billiard-board, absinthe, a map of the world on
- Mercator's projection, and one of the most agreeable verandahs in
- the tropics), a handful of whites of varying nationality, mostly
- French officials, German and Scottish merchant clerks, and the
- agents of the opium monopoly. There are besides three tavern-
- keepers, the shrewd Scot who runs the cotton gin-mill, two white
- ladies, and a sprinkling of people 'on the beach' - a South Sea
- expression for which there is no exact equivalent. It is a
- pleasant society, and a hospitable. But one man, who was often to
- be seen seated on the logs at the pier-head, merits a word for the
- singularity of his history and appearance. Long ago, it seems, he
- fell in love with a native lady, a High Chiefess in Ua-pu. She, on
- being approached, declared she could never marry a man who was
- untattooed; it looked so naked; whereupon, with some greatness of
- soul, our hero put himself in the hands of the Tahukus, and, with
- still greater, persevered until the process was complete. He had
- certainly to bear a great expense, for the Tahuku will not work
- without reward; and certainly exquisite pain. Kooamua, high chief
- as he was, and one of the old school, was only part tattooed; he
- could not, he told us with lively pantomime, endure the torture to
- an end. Our enamoured countryman was more resolved; he was
- tattooed from head to foot in the most approved methods of the art;
- and at last presented himself before his mistress a new man. The
- fickle fair one could never behold him from that day except with
- laughter. For my part, I could never see the man without a kind of
- admiration; of him it might be said, if ever of any, that he had
- loved not wisely, but too well.
-
- The Residency stands by itself, Calaboose Hill screening it from
- the fringe of town along the further bay. The house is commodious,
- with wide verandahs; all day it stands open, back and front, and
- the trade blows copiously over its bare floors. On a week-day the
- garden offers a scene of most untropical animation, half a dozen
- convicts toiling there cheerfully with spade and barrow, and
- touching hats and smiling to the visitor like old attached family
- servants. On Sunday these are gone, and nothing to be seen but
- dogs of all ranks and sizes peacefully slumbering in the shady
- grounds; for the dogs of Tai-o-hae are very courtly-minded, and
- make the seat of Government their promenade and place of siesta.
- In front and beyond, a strip of green down loses itself in a low
- wood of many species of acacia; and deep in the wood a ruinous wall
- encloses the cemetery of the Europeans. English and Scottish sleep
- there, and Scandinavians, and French MAITRES DE MANOEUVRES and
- MAITRES OUVRIERS: mingling alien dust. Back in the woods,
- perhaps, the blackbird, or (as they call him there) the island
- nightingale, will be singing home strains; and the ceaseless
- requiem of the surf hangs on the ear. I have never seen a resting-
- place more quiet; but it was a long thought how far these sleepers
- had all travelled, and from what diverse homes they had set forth,
- to lie here in the end together.
-
- On the summit of its promontory hill, the calaboose stands all day
- with doors and window-shutters open to the trade. On my first
- visit a dog was the only guardian visible. He, indeed, rose with
- an attitude so menacing that I was glad to lay hands on an old
- barrel-hoop; and I think the weapon must have been familiar, for
- the champion instantly retreated, and as I wandered round the court
- and through the building, I could see him, with a couple of
- companions, humbly dodging me about the corners. The prisoners'
- dormitory was a spacious, airy room, devoid of any furniture; its
- whitewashed walls covered with inscriptions in Marquesan and rude
- drawings: one of the pier, not badly done; one of a murder;
- several of French soldiers in uniform. There was one legend in
- French: 'JE N'EST' (sic) 'PAS LE SOU.' From this noontide
- quietude it must not be supposed the prison was untenanted; the
- calaboose at Tai-o-hae does a good business. But some of its
- occupants were gardening at the Residency, and the rest were
- probably at work upon the streets, as free as our scavengers at
- home, although not so industrious. On the approach of evening they
- would be called in like children from play; and the harbour-master
- (who is also the jailer) would go through the form of locking them
- up until six the next morning. Should a prisoner have any call in
- town, whether of pleasure or affairs, he has but to unhook the
- window-shutters; and if he is back again, and the shutter decently
- replaced, by the hour of call on the morrow, he may have met the
- harbour-master in the avenue, and there will be no complaint, far
- less any punishment. But this is not all. The charming French
- Resident, M. Delaruelle, carried me one day to the calaboose on an
- official visit. In the green court, a very ragged gentleman, his
- legs deformed with the island elephantiasis, saluted us smiling.
- 'One of our political prisoners - an insurgent from Raiatea,' said
- the Resident; and then to the jailer: 'I thought I had ordered him
- a new pair of trousers.' Meanwhile no other convict was to be seen
- - 'EH BIEN,' said the Resident, 'OU SONT VOS PRISONNIERS?'
- 'MONSIEUR LE RESIDENT,' replied the jailer, saluting with soldierly
- formality, 'COMME C'EST JOUR DE FETE, JE LES AI LAISSE ALLER A LA
- CHASSE.' They were all upon the mountains hunting goats!
- Presently we came to the quarters of the women, likewise deserted -
- 'OU SONT VOS BONNES FEMMES?' asked the Resident; and the jailer
- cheerfully responded: 'JE CROIS, MONSIEUR LE RESIDENT, QU'ELLES
- SONT ALLEES QUELQUEPART FAIRE UNE VISITE.' It had been the design
- of M. Delaruelle, who was much in love with the whimsicalities of
- his small realm, to elicit something comical; but not even he
- expected anything so perfect as the last. To complete the picture
- of convict life in Tai-o-hae, it remains to be added that these
- criminals draw a salary as regularly as the President of the
- Republic. Ten sous a day is their hire. Thus they have money,
- food, shelter, clothing, and, I was about to write, their liberty.
- The French are certainly a good-natured people, and make easy
- masters. They are besides inclined to view the Marquesans with an
- eye of humorous indulgence. 'They are dying, poor devils!' said M.
- Delaruelle: 'the main thing is to let them die in peace.' And it
- was not only well said, but I believe expressed the general
- thought. Yet there is another element to be considered; for these
- convicts are not merely useful, they are almost essential to the
- French existence. With a people incurably idle, dispirited by what
- can only be called endemic pestilence, and inflamed with ill-
- feeling against their new masters, crime and convict labour are a
- godsend to the Government.
-
- Theft is practically the sole crime. Originally petty pilferers,
- the men of Tai-o-hae now begin to force locks and attack strong-
- boxes. Hundreds of dollars have been taken at a time; though, with
- that redeeming moderation so common in Polynesian theft, the
- Marquesan burglar will always take a part and leave a part, sharing
- (so to speak) with the proprietor. If it be Chilian coin - the
- island currency - he will escape; if the sum is in gold, French
- silver, or bank-notes, the police wait until the money begins to
- come in circulation, and then easily pick out their man. And now
- comes the shameful part. In plain English, the prisoner is
- tortured until he confesses and (if that be possible) restores the
- money. To keep him alone, day and night, in the black hole, is to
- inflict on the Marquesan torture inexpressible. Even his robberies
- are carried on in the plain daylight, under the open sky, with the
- stimulus of enterprise, and the countenance of an accomplice; his
- terror of the dark is still insurmountable; conceive, then, what he
- endures in his solitary dungeon; conceive how he longs to confess,
- become a full-fledged convict, and be allowed to sleep beside his
- comrades. While we were in Tai-o-hae a thief was under prevention.
- He had entered a house about eight in the morning, forced a trunk,
- and stolen eleven hundred francs; and now, under the horrors of
- darkness, solitude, and a bedevilled cannibal imagination, he was
- reluctantly confessing and giving up his spoil. From one cache,
- which he had already pointed out, three hundred francs had been
- recovered, and it was expected that he would presently disgorge the
- rest. This would be ugly enough if it were all; but I am bound to
- say, because it is a matter the French should set at rest, that
- worse is continually hinted. I heard that one man was kept six
- days with his arms bound backward round a barrel; and it is the
- universal report that every gendarme in the South Seas is equipped
- with something in the nature of a thumbscrew. I do not know this.
- I never had the face to ask any of the gendarmes - pleasant,
- intelligent, and kindly fellows - with whom I have been intimate,
- and whose hospitality I have enjoyed; and perhaps the tale reposes
- (as I hope it does) on a misconstruction of that ingenious cat's-
- cradle with which the French agent of police so readily secures a
- prisoner. But whether physical or moral, torture is certainly
- employed; and by a barbarous injustice, the state of accusation (in
- which a man may very well be innocently placed) is positively
- painful; the state of conviction (in which all are supposed guilty)
- is comparatively free, and positively pleasant. Perhaps worse
- still, - not only the accused, but sometimes his wife, his
- mistress, or his friend, is subjected to the same hardships. I was
- admiring, in the tapu system, the ingenuity of native methods of
- detection; there is not much to admire in those of the French, and
- to lock up a timid child in a dark room, and, if he proved
- obstinate, lock up his sister in the next, is neither novel nor
- humane.
-
- The main occasion of these thefts is the new vice of opium-eating.
- 'Here nobody ever works, and all eat opium,' said a gendarme; and
- Ah Fu knew a woman who ate a dollar's worth in a day. The
- successful thief will give a handful of money to each of his
- friends, a dress to a woman, pass an evening in one of the taverns
- of Tai-o-hae, during which he treats all comers, produce a big lump
- of opium, and retire to the bush to eat and sleep it off. A
- trader, who did not sell opium, confessed to me that he was at his
- wit's end. 'I do not sell it, but others do,' said he. 'The
- natives only work to buy it; if they walk over to me to sell their
- cotton, they have just to walk over to some one else to buy their
- opium with my money. And why should they be at the bother of two
- walks? There is no use talking,' he added - 'opium is the currency
- of this country.'
-
- The man under prevention during my stay at Tai-o-hae lost patience
- while the Chinese opium-seller was being examined in his presence.
- 'Of course he sold me opium!' he broke out; 'all the Chinese here
- sell opium. It was only to buy opium that I stole; it is only to
- buy opium that anybody steals. And what you ought to do is to let
- no opium come here, and no Chinamen.' This is precisely what is
- done in Samoa by a native Government; but the French have bound
- their own hands, and for forty thousand francs sold native subjects
- to crime and death. This horrid traffic may be said to have sprung
- up by accident. It was Captain Hart who had the misfortune to be
- the means of beginning it, at a time when his plantations
- flourished in the Marquesas, and he found a difficulty in keeping
- Chinese coolies. To-day the plantations are practically deserted
- and the Chinese gone; but in the meanwhile the natives have learned
- the vice, the patent brings in a round sum, and the needy
- Government at Papeete shut their eyes and open their pockets. Of
- course, the patentee is supposed to sell to Chinamen alone; equally
- of course, no one could afford to pay forty thousand francs for the
- privilege of supplying a scattered handful of Chinese; and every
- one knows the truth, and all are ashamed of it. French officials
- shake their heads when opium is mentioned; and the agents of the
- farmer blush for their employment. Those that live in glass houses
- should not throw stones; as a subject of the British crown, I am an
- unwilling shareholder in the largest opium business under heaven.
- But the British case is highly complicated; it implies the
- livelihood of millions; and must be reformed, when it can be
- reformed at all, with prudence. This French business, on the other
- hand, is a nostrum and a mere excrescence. No native industry was
- to be encouraged: the poison is solemnly imported. No native
- habit was to be considered: the vice has been gratuitously
- introduced. And no creature profits, save the Government at
- Papeete - the not very enviable gentlemen who pay them, and the
- Chinese underlings who do the dirty work.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX - THE HOUSE OF TEMOANA
-
-
-
- THE history of the Marquesas is, of late years, much confused by
- the coming and going of the French. At least twice they have
- seized the archipelago, at least once deserted it; and in the
- meanwhile the natives pursued almost without interruption their
- desultory cannibal wars. Through these events and changing
- dynasties, a single considerable figure may be seen to move: that
- of the high chief, a king, Temoana. Odds and ends of his history
- came to my ears: how he was at first a convert to the Protestant
- mission; how he was kidnapped or exiled from his native land,
- served as cook aboard a whaler, and was shown, for small charge, in
- English seaports; how he returned at last to the Marquesas, fell
- under the strong and benign influence of the late bishop, extended
- his influence in the group, was for a while joint ruler with the
- prelate, and died at last the chief supporter of Catholicism and
- the French. His widow remains in receipt of two pounds a month
- from the French Government. Queen she is usually called, but in
- the official almanac she figures as 'MADAME VAEKEHU, GRANDE
- CHEFESSE.' His son (natural or adoptive, I know not which),
- Stanislao Moanatini, chief of Akaui, serves in Tai-o-hae as a kind
- of Minister of Public Works; and the daughter of Stanislao is High
- Chiefess of the southern island of Tauata. These, then, are the
- greatest folk of the archipelago; we thought them also the most
- estimable. This is the rule in Polynesia, with few exceptions; the
- higher the family, the better the man - better in sense, better in
- manners, and usually taller and stronger in body. A stranger
- advances blindfold. He scrapes acquaintance as he can. Save the
- tattoo in the Marquesas, nothing indicates the difference of rank;
- and yet almost invariably we found, after we had made them, that
- our friends were persons of station. I have said 'usually taller
- and stronger.' I might have been more absolute, - over all
- Polynesia, and a part of Micronesia, the rule holds good; the great
- ones of the isle, and even of the village, are greater of bone and
- muscle, and often heavier of flesh, than any commoner. The usual
- explanation - that the high-born child is more industriously
- shampooed, is probably the true one. In New Caledonia, at least,
- where the difference does not exist, has never been remarked, the
- practice of shampooing seems to be itself unknown. Doctors would
- be well employed in a study of the point.
-
- Vaekehu lives at the other end of the town from the Residency,
- beyond the buildings of the mission. Her house is on the European
- plan: a table in the midst of the chief room; photographs and
- religious pictures on the wall. It commands to either hand a
- charming vista: through the front door, a peep of green lawn,
- scurrying pigs, the pendent fans of the coco-palm and splendour of
- the bursting surf: through the back, mounting forest glades and
- coronals of precipice. Here, in the strong thorough-draught, Her
- Majesty received us in a simple gown of print, and with no mark of
- royalty but the exquisite finish of her tattooed mittens, the
- elaboration of her manners, and the gentle falsetto in which all
- the highly refined among Marquesan ladies (and Vaekehu above all
- others) delight to sing their language. An adopted daughter
- interpreted, while we gave the news, and rehearsed by name our
- friends of Anaho. As we talked, we could see, through the landward
- door, another lady of the household at her toilet under the green
- trees; who presently, when her hair was arranged, and her hat
- wreathed with flowers, appeared upon the back verandah with
- gracious salutations.
-
- Vaekehu is very deaf; 'MERCI' is her only word of French; and I do
- not know that she seemed clever. An exquisite, kind refinement,
- with a shade of quietism, gathered perhaps from the nuns, was what
- chiefly struck us. Or rather, upon that first occasion, we were
- conscious of a sense as of district-visiting on our part, and
- reduced evangelical gentility on the part of our hostess. The
- other impression followed after she was more at ease, and came with
- Stanislao and his little girl to dine on board the CASCO. She had
- dressed for the occasion: wore white, which very well became her
- strong brown face; and sat among us, eating or smoking her
- cigarette, quite cut off from all society, or only now and then
- included through the intermediary of her son. It was a position
- that might have been ridiculous, and she made it ornamental; making
- believe to hear and to be entertained; her face, whenever she met
- our eyes, lighting with the smile of good society; her
- contributions to the talk, when she made any, and that was seldom,
- always complimentary and pleasing. No attention was paid to the
- child, for instance, but what she remarked and thanked us for. Her
- parting with each, when she came to leave, was gracious and pretty,
- as had been every step of her behaviour. When Mrs. Stevenson held
- out her hand to say good-bye, Vaekehu took it, held it, and a
- moment smiled upon her; dropped it, and then, as upon a kindly
- after-thought, and with a sort of warmth of condescension, held out
- both hands and kissed my wife upon both cheeks. Given the same
- relation of years and of rank, the thing would have been so done on
- the boards of the COMEDIE FRANCAISE; just so might Madame Brohan
- have warmed and condescended to Madame Broisat in the MARQUIS DE
- VILLEMER. It was my part to accompany our guests ashore: when I
- kissed the little girl good-bye at the pier steps, Vaekehu gave a
- cry of gratification, reached down her hand into the boat, took
- mine, and pressed it with that flattering softness which seems the
- coquetry of the old lady in every quarter of the earth. The next
- moment she had taken Stanislao's arm, and they moved off along the
- pier in the moonlight, leaving me bewildered. This was a queen of
- cannibals; she was tattooed from hand to foot, and perhaps the
- greatest masterpiece of that art now extant, so that a while ago,
- before she was grown prim, her leg was one of the sights of Tai-o-
- hae; she had been passed from chief to chief; she had been fought
- for and taken in war; perhaps, being so great a lady, she had sat
- on the high place, and throned it there, alone of her sex, while
- the drums were going twenty strong and the priests carried up the
- blood-stained baskets of long-pig. And now behold her, out of that
- past of violence and sickening feasts, step forth, in her age, a
- quiet, smooth, elaborate old lady, such as you might find at home
- (mittened also, but not often so well-mannered) in a score of
- country houses. Only Vaekehu's mittens were of dye, not of silk;
- and they had been paid for, not in money, but the cooked flesh of
- men. It came in my mind with a clap, what she could think of it
- herself, and whether at heart, perhaps, she might not regret and
- aspire after the barbarous and stirring past. But when I asked
- Stanislao - 'Ah!' said he, 'she is content; she is religious, she
- passes all her days with the sisters.'
-
- Stanislao (Stanislaos, with the final consonant evaded after the
- Polynesian habit) was sent by Bishop Dordillon to South America,
- and there educated by the fathers. His French is fluent, his talk
- sensible and spirited, and in his capacity of ganger-in-chief, he
- is of excellent service to the French. With the prestige of his
- name and family, and with the stick when needful, he keeps the
- natives working and the roads passable. Without Stanislao and the
- convicts, I am in doubt what would become of the present regimen in
- Nuka-hiva; whether the highways might not be suffered to close up,
- the pier to wash away, and the Residency to fall piecemeal about
- the ears of impotent officials. And yet though the hereditary
- favourer, and one of the chief props of French authority, he has
- always an eye upon the past. He showed me where the old public
- place had stood, still to be traced by random piles of stone; told
- me how great and fine it was, and surrounded on all sides by
- populous houses, whence, at the beating of the drums, the folk
- crowded to make holiday. The drum-beat of the Polynesian has a
- strange and gloomy stimulation for the nerves of all. White
- persons feel it - at these precipitate sounds their hearts beat
- faster; and, according to old residents, its effect on the natives
- was extreme. Bishop Dordillon might entreat; Temoana himself
- command and threaten; at the note of the drum wild instincts
- triumphed. And now it might beat upon these ruins, and who should
- assemble? The houses are down, the people dead, their lineage
- extinct; and the sweepings and fugitives of distant bays and
- islands encamp upon their graves. The decline of the dance
- Stanislao especially laments. 'CHAQUE PAYS A SES COUTUMES,' said
- he; but in the report of any gendarme, perhaps corruptly eager to
- increase the number of DELITS and the instruments of his own power,
- custom after custom is placed on the expurgatorial index. 'TENEZ,
- UNE DANSE QUI N'EST PAS PERMISE,' said Stanislao: 'JE NE SAIS PAS
- POURQUOI, ELLE EST TRES JOLIE, ELLE VA COMME CA,' and sticking his
- umbrella upright in the road, he sketched the steps and gestures.
- All his criticisms of the present, all his regrets for the past,
- struck me as temperate and sensible. The short term of office of
- the Resident he thought the chief defect of the administration;
- that officer having scarce begun to be efficient ere he was
- recalled. I thought I gathered, too, that he regarded with some
- fear the coming change from a naval to a civil governor. I am sure
- at least that I regard it so myself; for the civil servants of
- France have never appeared to any foreigner as at all the flower of
- their country, while her naval officers may challenge competition
- with the world. In all his talk, Stanislao was particular to speak
- of his own country as a land of savages; and when he stated an
- opinion of his own, it was with some apologetic preface, alleging
- that he was 'a savage who had travelled.' There was a deal, in
- this elaborate modesty, of honest pride. Yet there was something
- in the precaution that saddened me; and I could not but fear he was
- only forestalling a taunt that he had heard too often.
-
- I recall with interest two interviews with Stanislao. The first
- was a certain afternoon of tropic rain, which we passed together in
- the verandah of the club; talking at times with heightened voices
- as the showers redoubled overhead, passing at times into the
- billiard-room, to consult, in the dim, cloudy daylight, that map of
- the world which forms its chief adornment. He was naturally
- ignorant of English history, so that I had much of news to
- communicate. The story of Gordon I told him in full, and many
- episodes of the Indian Mutiny, Lucknow, the second battle of Cawn-
- pore, the relief of Arrah, the death of poor Spottis-woode, and Sir
- Hugh Rose's hotspur, midland campaign. He was intent to hear; his
- brown face, strongly marked with small-pox, kindled and changed
- with each vicissitude. His eyes glowed with the reflected light of
- battle; his questions were many and intelligent, and it was chiefly
- these that sent us so often to the map. But it is of our parting
- that I keep the strongest sense. We were to sail on the morrow,
- and the night had fallen, dark, gusty, and rainy, when we stumbled
- up the hill to bid farewell to Stanislao. He had already loaded us
- with gifts; but more were waiting. We sat about the table over
- cigars and green cocoa-nuts; claps of wind blew through the house
- and extinguished the lamp, which was always instantly relighted
- with a single match; and these recurrent intervals of darkness were
- felt as a relief. For there was something painful and embarrassing
- in the kindness of that separation. 'AH, VOUS DEVRIEZ RESTER ICI,
- MON CHER AMI!' cried Stanislao. 'VOUS ETES LES GENS QU'IL FAUT
- POUR LES KANAQUES; VOUS ETES DOUX, VOUS ET VOTRE FAMILLE; VOUS
- SERIEZ OBEIS DANS TOUTES LES ILES.' We had been civil; not always
- that, my conscience told me, and never anything beyond; and all
- this to-do is a measure, not of our considerateness, but of the
- want of it in others. The rest of the evening, on to Vaekehu's and
- back as far as to the pier, Stanislao walked with my arm and
- sheltered me with his umbrella; and after the boat had put off, we
- could still distinguish, in the murky darkness, his gestures of
- farewell. His words, if there were any, were drowned by the rain
- and the loud surf.
-
- I have mentioned presents, a vexed question in the South Seas; and
- one which well illustrates the common, ignorant habit of regarding
- races in a lump. In many quarters the Polynesian gives only to
- receive. I have visited islands where the population mobbed me for
- all the world like dogs after the waggon of cat's-meat; and where
- the frequent proposition, 'You my pleni (friend),' or (with more of
- pathos) 'You all 'e same my father,' must be received with hearty
- laughter and a shout. And perhaps everywhere, among the greedy and
- rapacious, a gift is regarded as a sprat to catch a whale. It is
- the habit to give gifts and to receive returns, and such
- characters, complying with the custom, will look to it nearly that
- they do not lose. But for persons of a different stamp the
- statement must be reversed. The shabby Polynesian is anxious till
- he has received the return gift; the generous is uneasy until he
- has made it. The first is disappointed if you have not given more
- than he; the second is miserable if he thinks he has given less
- than you. This is my experience; if it clash with that of others,
- I pity their fortune, and praise mine: the circumstances cannot
- change what I have seen, nor lessen what I have received. And
- indeed I find that those who oppose me often argue from a ground of
- singular presumptions; comparing Polynesians with an ideal person,
- compact of generosity and gratitude, whom I never had the pleasure
- of encountering; and forgetting that what is almost poverty to us
- is wealth almost unthinkable to them. I will give one instance: I
- chanced to speak with consideration of these gifts of Stanislao's
- with a certain clever man, a great hater and contemner of Kanakas.
- 'Well! what were they?' he cried. 'A pack of old men's beards.
- Trash!' And the same gentleman, some half an hour later, being
- upon a different train of thought, dwelt at length on the esteem in
- which the Marquesans held that sort of property, how they preferred
- it to all others except land, and what fancy prices it would fetch.
- Using his own figures, I computed that, in this commodity alone,
- the gifts of Vaekehu and Stanislao represented between two and
- three hundred dollars; and the queen's official salary is of two
- hundred and forty in the year.
-
- But generosity on the one hand, and conspicuous meanness on the
- other, are in the South Seas, as at home, the exception. It is
- neither with any hope of gain, nor with any lively wish to please,
- that the ordinary Polynesian chooses and presents his gifts. A
- plain social duty lies before him, which he performs correctly, but
- without the least enthusiasm. And we shall best understand his
- attitude of mind, if we examine our own to the cognate absurdity of
- marriage presents. There we give without any special thought of a
- return; yet if the circumstance arise, and the return be withheld,
- we shall judge ourselves insulted. We give them usually without
- affection, and almost never with a genuine desire to please; and
- our gift is rather a mark of our own status than a measure of our
- love to the recipients. So in a great measure and with the common
- run of the Polynesians; their gifts are formal; they imply no more
- than social recognition; and they are made and reciprocated, as we
- pay and return our morning visits. And the practice of marking and
- measuring events and sentiments by presents is universal in the
- island world. A gift plays with them the part of stamp and seal;
- and has entered profoundly into the mind of islanders. Peace and
- war, marriage, adoption and naturalisation, are celebrated or
- declared by the acceptance or the refusal of gifts; and it is as
- natural for the islander to bring a gift as for us to carry a card-
- case.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X - A PORTRAIT AND A STORY
-
-
-
- I HAVE had occasion several times to name the late bishop, Father
- Dordillon, 'Monseigneur,' as he is still almost universally called,
- Vicar-Apostolic of the Marquesas and Bishop of Cambysopolis IN
- PARTIBUS. Everywhere in the islands, among all classes and races,
- this fine, old, kindly, cheerful fellow is remembered with
- affection and respect. His influence with the natives was
- paramount. They reckoned him the highest of men - higher than an
- admiral; brought him their money to keep; took his advice upon
- their purchases; nor would they plant trees upon their own land
- till they had the approval of the father of the islands. During
- the time of the French exodus he singly represented Europe, living
- in the Residency, and ruling by the hand of Temoana. The first
- roads were made under his auspices and by his persuasion. The old
- road between Hatiheu and Anaho was got under way from either side
- on the ground that it would be pleasant for an evening promenade,
- and brought to completion by working on the rivalry of the two
- villages. The priest would boast in Hatiheu of the progress made
- in Anaho, and he would tell the folk of Anaho, 'If you don't take
- care, your neighbours will be over the hill before you are at the
- top.' It could not be so done to-day; it could then; death, opium,
- and depopulation had not gone so far; and the people of Hatiheu, I
- was told, still vied with each other in fine attire, and used to go
- out by families, in the cool of the evening, boat-sailing and
- racing in the bay. There seems some truth at least in the common
- view, that this joint reign of Temoana and the bishop was the last
- and brief golden age of the Marquesas. But the civil power
- returned, the mission was packed out of the Residency at twenty-
- four hours' notice, new methods supervened, and the golden age
- (whatever it quite was) came to an end. It is the strongest proof
- of Father Dordillon's prestige that it survived, seemingly without
- loss, this hasty deposition.
-
- His method with the natives was extremely mild. Among these
- barbarous children he still played the part of the smiling father;
- and he was careful to observe, in all indifferent matters, the
- Marquesan etiquette. Thus, in the singular system of artificial
- kinship, the bishop had been adopted by Vaekehu as a grandson; Miss
- Fisher, of Hatiheu, as a daughter. From that day, Monseigneur
- never addressed the young lady except as his mother, and closed his
- letters with the formalities of a dutiful son. With Europeans he
- could be strict, even to the extent of harshness. He made no
- distinction against heretics, with whom he was on friendly terms;
- but the rules of his own Church he would see observed; and once at
- least he had a white man clapped in jail for the desecration of a
- saint's day. But even this rigour, so intolerable to laymen, so
- irritating to Protestants, could not shake his popularity. We
- shall best conceive him by examples nearer home; we may all have
- known some divine of the old school in Scotland, a literal
- Sabbatarian, a stickler for the letter of the law, who was yet in
- private modest, innocent, genial and mirthful. Much such a man, it
- seems, was Father Dordillon. And his popularity bore a test yet
- stronger. He had the name, and probably deserved it, of a shrewd
- man in business and one that made the mission pay. Nothing so much
- stirs up resentment as the inmixture in commerce of religious
- bodies; but even rival traders spoke well of Monseigneur.
-
- His character is best portrayed in the story of the days of his
- decline. A time came when, from the failure of sight, he must
- desist from his literary labours: his Marquesan hymns, grammars,
- and dictionaries; his scientific papers, lives of saints, and
- devotional poetry. He cast about for a new interest: pitched on
- gardening, and was to be seen all day, with spade and water-pot, in
- his childlike eagerness, actually running between the borders.
- Another step of decay, and he must leave his garden also.
- Instantly a new occupation was devised, and he sat in the mission
- cutting paper flowers and wreaths. His diocese was not great
- enough for his activity; the churches of the Marquesas were papered
- with his handiwork, and still he must be making more. 'Ah,' said
- he, smiling, 'when I am dead what a fine time you will have
- clearing out my trash!' He had been dead about six months; but I
- was pleased to see some of his trophies still exposed, and looked
- upon them with a smile: the tribute (if I have read his cheerful
- character aright) which he would have preferred to any useless
- tears. Disease continued progressively to disable him; he who had
- clambered so stalwartly over the rude rocks of the Marquesas,
- bringing peace to warfaring clans, was for some time carried in a
- chair between the mission and the church, and at last confined to
- bed, impotent with dropsy, and tormented with bed-sores and
- sciatica. Here he lay two months without complaint; and on the
- 11th January 1888, in the seventy-ninth year of his life, and the
- thirty-fourth of his labours in the Marquesas, passed away.
-
- Those who have a taste for hearing missions, Protestant or
- Catholic, decried, must seek their pleasure elsewhere than in my
- pages. Whether Catholic or Protestant, with all their gross blots,
- with all their deficiency of candour, of humour, and of common
- sense, the missionaries are the best and the most useful whites in
- the Pacific. This is a subject which will follow us throughout;
- but there is one part of it that may conveniently be treated here.
- The married and the celibate missionary, each has his particular
- advantage and defect. The married missionary, taking him at the
- best, may offer to the native what he is much in want of - a higher
- picture of domestic life; but the woman at his elbow tends to keep
- him in touch with Europe and out of touch with Polynesia, and to
- perpetuate, and even to ingrain, parochial decencies far best
- forgotten. The mind of the female missionary tends, for instance,
- to be continually busied about dress. She can be taught with
- extreme difficulty to think any costume decent but that to which
- she grew accustomed on Clapham Common; and to gratify this
- prejudice, the native is put to useless expense, his mind is
- tainted with the morbidities of Europe, and his health is set in
- danger. The celibate missionary, on the other hand, and whether at
- best or worst, falls readily into native ways of life; to which he
- adds too commonly what is either a mark of celibate man at large,
- or an inheritance from mediaeval saints - I mean slovenly habits
- and an unclean person. There are, of course, degrees in this; and
- the sister (of course, and all honour to her) is as fresh as a lady
- at a ball. For the diet there is nothing to be said - it must
- amaze and shock the Polynesian - but for the adoption of native
- habits there is much. 'CHAQUE PAYS A SES COUTUMES,' said
- Stanislao; these it is the missionary's delicate task to modify;
- and the more he can do so from within, and from a native
- standpoint, the better he will do his work; and here I think the
- Catholics have sometimes the advantage; in the Vicariate of
- Dordillon, I am sure they had it. I have heard the bishop blamed
- for his indulgence to the natives, and above all because he did not
- rage with sufficient energy against cannibalism. It was a part of
- his policy to live among the natives like an elder brother; to
- follow where he could; to lead where it was necessary; never to
- drive; and to encourage the growth of new habits, instead of
- violently rooting up the old. And it might be better, in the long-
- run, if this policy were always followed.
-
- It might be supposed that native missionaries would prove more
- indulgent, but the reverse is found to be the case. The new broom
- sweeps clean; and the white missionary of to-day is often
- embarrassed by the bigotry of his native coadjutor. What else
- should we expect? On some islands, sorcery, polygamy, human
- sacrifice, and tobacco-smoking have been prohibited, the dress of
- the native has been modified, and himself warned in strong terms
- against rival sects of Christianity; all by the same man, at the
- same period of time, and with the like authority. By what
- criterion is the convert to distinguish the essential from the
- unessential? He swallows the nostrum whole; there has been no play
- of mind, no instruction, and, except for some brute utility in the
- prohibitions, no advance. To call things by their proper names,
- this is teaching superstition. It is unfortunate to use the word;
- so few people have read history, and so many have dipped into
- little atheistic manuals, that the majority will rush to a
- conclusion, and suppose the labour lost. And far from that: These
- semi-spontaneous superstitions, varying with the sect of the
- original evangelist and the customs of the island, are found in
- practice to be highly fructifying; and in particular those who have
- learned and who go forth again to teach them offer an example to
- the world. The best specimen of the Christian hero that I ever met
- was one of these native missionaries. He had saved two lives at
- the risk of his own; like Nathan, he had bearded a tyrant in his
- hour of blood; when a whole white population fled, he alone stood
- to his duty; and his behaviour under domestic sorrow with which the
- public has no concern filled the beholder with sympathy and
- admiration. A poor little smiling laborious man he looked; and you
- would have thought he had nothing in him but that of which indeed
- he had too much - facile good-nature.
-
- It chances that the only rivals of Monseigneur and his mission in
- the Marquesas were certain of these brown-skinned evangelists,
- natives from Hawaii. I know not what they thought of Father
- Dordillon: they are the only class I did not question; but I
- suspect the prelate to have regarded them askance, for he was
- eminently human. During my stay at Tai-o-hae, the time of the
- yearly holiday came round at the girls' school; and a whole fleet
- of whale-boats came from Ua-pu to take the daughters of that island
- home. On board of these was Kauwealoha, one of the pastors, a
- fine, rugged old gentleman, of that leonine type so common in
- Hawaii. He paid me a visit in the CASCO, and there entertained me
- with a tale of one of his colleagues, Kekela, a missionary in the
- great cannibal isle of Hiva-oa. It appears that shortly after a
- kidnapping visit from a Peruvian slaver, the boats of an American
- whaler put into a bay upon that island, were attacked, and made
- their escape with difficulty, leaving their mate, a Mr. Whalon, in
- the hands of the natives. The captive, with his arms bound behind
- his back, was cast into a house; and the chief announced the
- capture to Kekela. And here I begin to follow the version of
- Kauwealoha; it is a good specimen of Kanaka English; and the reader
- is to conceive it delivered with violent emphasis and speaking
- pantomime.
-
- '"I got 'Melican mate," the chief he say. "What you go do 'Melican
- mate?" Kekela he say. "I go make fire, I go kill, I go eat him,"
- he say; "you come to-mollow eat piece." "I no WANT eat 'Melican
- mate!" Kekela he say; "why you want?" "This bad shippee, this
- slave shippee," the chief he say. "One time a shippee he come from
- Pelu, he take away plenty Kanaka, he take away my son. 'Melican
- mate he bad man. I go eat him; you eat piece." "I no WANT eat
- 'Melican mate!" Kekela he say; and he CLY - all night he cly! To-
- mollow Kekela he get up, he put on blackee coat, he go see chief;
- he see Missa Whela, him hand tie' like this. (PANTOMIME.) Kekela
- he cly. He say chief:- "Chief, you like things of mine? you like
- whale-boat?" "Yes," he say. "You like file-a'm?" (fire-arms).
- "Yes," he say. "You like blackee coat?" "Yes," he say. Kekela he
- take Missa Whela by he shoul'a' (shoulder), he take him light out
- house; he give chief he whale-boat, he file-a'm, he blackee coat.
- He take Missa Whela he house, make him sit down with he wife and
- chil'en. Missa Whela all-the-same pelison (prison); he wife, he
- chil'en in Amelica; he cly - O, he cly. Kekela he solly. One day
- Kekela he see ship. (PANTOMIME.) He say Missa Whela, "Ma' Whala?"
- Missa Whela he say, "Yes." Kanaka they begin go down beach.
- Kekela he get eleven Kanaka, get oa' (oars), get evely thing. He
- say Missa Whela, "Now you go quick." They jump in whale-boat.
- "Now you low!" Kekela he say: "you low quick, quick!" (VIOLENT
- PANTOMIME, AND A CHANGE INDICATING THAT THE NARRATOR HAS LEFT THE
- BOAT AND RETURNED TO THE BEACH.) All the Kanaka they say, "How!
- 'Melican mate he go away?" - jump in boat; low afta. (VIOLENT
- PANTOMIME, AND CHANGE AGAIN TO BOAT.) Kekela he say, "Low quick!"'
-
- Here I think Kauwealoha's pantomime had confused me; I have no more
- of his IPSISSIMA VERBA; and can but add, in my own less spirited
- manner, that the ship was reached, Mr. Whalon taken aboard, and
- Kekela returned to his charge among the cannibals. But how unjust
- it is to repeat the stumblings of a foreigner in a language only
- partly acquired! A thoughtless reader might conceive Kauwealoha
- and his colleague to be a species of amicable baboon; but I have
- here the anti-dote. In return for his act of gallant charity,
- Kekela was presented by the American Government with a sum of
- money, and by President Lincoln personally with a gold watch. From
- his letter of thanks, written in his own tongue, I give the
- following extract. I do not envy the man who can read it without
- emotion.
-
-
- 'When I saw one of your countrymen, a citizen of your great nation,
- ill-treated, and about to be baked and eaten, as a pig is eaten, I
- ran to save him, full of pity and grief at the evil deed of these
- benighted people. I gave my boat for the stranger's life. This
- boat came from James Hunnewell, a gift of friendship. It became
- the ransom of this countryman of yours, that he might not be eaten
- by the savages who knew not Jehovah. This was Mr. Whalon, and the
- date, Jan. 14, 1864.
-
- As to this friendly deed of mine in saving Mr. Whalon, its seed
- came from your great land, and was brought by certain of your
- countrymen, who had received the love of God. It was planted in
- Hawaii, and I brought it to plant in this land and in these dark
- regions, that they might receive the root of all that is good and
- true, which is LOVE.
-
- '1. Love to Jehovah.
-
- '2. Love to self.
-
- '3. Love to our neighbour.
-
- 'If a man have a sufficiency of these three, he is good and holy,
- like his God, Jehovah, in his triune character (Father, Son, and
- Holy Ghost), one-three, three-one. If he have two and wants one,
- it is not well; and if he have one and wants two, indeed, is not
- well; but if he cherishes all three, then is he holy, indeed, after
- the manner of the Bible.
-
- 'This is a great thing for your great nation to boast of, before
- all the nations of the earth. From your great land a most precious
- seed was brought to the land of darkness. It was planted here, not
- by means of guns and men-of-war and threatening. It was planted by
- means of the ignorant, the neglected, the despised. Such was the
- introduction of the word of the Almighty God into this group of
- Nuuhiwa. Great is my debt to Americans, who have taught me all
- things pertaining to this life and to that which is to come.
-
- 'How shall I repay your great kindness to me? Thus David asked of
- Jehovah, and thus I ask of you, the President of the United States.
- This is my only payment - that which I have received of the Lord,
- love - (aloha).'
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI - LONG-PIG - A CANNIBAL HIGH PLACE
-
-
-
- NOTHING more strongly arouses our disgust than cannibalism, nothing
- so surely unmortars a society; nothing, we might plausibly argue,
- will so harden and degrade the minds of those that practise it.
- And yet we ourselves make much the same appearance in the eyes of
- the Buddhist and the vegetarian. We consume the carcasses of
- creatures of like appetites, passions, and organs with ourselves;
- we feed on babes, though not our own; and the slaughter-house
- resounds daily with screams of pain and fear. We distinguish,
- indeed; but the unwillingness of many nations to eat the dog, an
- animal with whom we live on terms of the next intimacy, shows how
- precariously the distinction is grounded. The pig is the main
- element of animal food among the islands; and I had many occasions,
- my mind being quickened by my cannibal surroundings, to observe his
- character and the manner of his death. Many islanders live with
- their pigs as we do with our dogs; both crowd around the hearth
- with equal freedom; and the island pig is a fellow of activity,
- enterprise, and sense. He husks his own cocoa-nuts, and (I am
- told) rolls them into the sun to burst; he is the terror of the
- shepherd. Mrs. Stevenson, senior, has seen one fleeing to the
- woods with a lamb in his mouth; and I saw another come rapidly (and
- erroneously) to the conclusion that the CASCO was going down, and
- swim through the flush water to the rail in search of an escape.
- It was told us in childhood that pigs cannot swim; I have known one
- to leap overboard, swim five hundred yards to shore, and return to
- the house of his original owner. I was once, at Tautira, a pig-
- master on a considerable scale; at first, in my pen, the utmost
- good feeling prevailed; a little sow with a belly-ache came and
- appealed to us for help in the manner of a child; and there was one
- shapely black boar, whom we called Catholicus, for he was a
- particular present from the Catholics of the village, and who early
- displayed the marks of courage and friendliness; no other animal,
- whether dog or pig, was suffered to approach him at his food, and
- for human beings he showed a full measure of that toadying fondness
- so common in the lower animals, and possibly their chief title to
- the name. One day, on visiting my piggery, I was amazed to see
- Catholicus draw back from my approach with cries of terror; and if
- I was amazed at the change, I was truly embarrassed when I learnt
- its reason. One of the pigs had been that morning killed;
- Catholicus had seen the murder, he had discovered he was dwelling
- in the shambles, and from that time his confidence and his delight
- in life were ended. We still reserved him a long while, but he
- could not endure the sight of any two-legged creature, nor could
- we, under the circumstances, encounter his eye without confusion.
- I have assisted besides, by the ear, at the act of butchery itself;
- the victim's cries of pain I think I could have borne, but the
- execution was mismanaged, and his expression of terror was
- contagious: that small heart moved to the same tune with ours.
- Upon such 'dread foundations' the life of the European reposes, and
- yet the European is among the less cruel of races. The
- paraphernalia of murder, the preparatory brutalities of his
- existence, are all hid away; an extreme sensibility reigns upon the
- surface; and ladies will faint at the recital of one tithe of what
- they daily expect of their butchers. Some will be even crying out
- upon me in their hearts for the coarseness of this paragraph. And
- so with the island cannibals. They were not cruel; apart from this
- custom, they are a race of the most kindly; rightly speaking, to
- cut a man's flesh after he is dead is far less hateful than to
- oppress him whilst he lives; and even the victims of their appetite
- were gently used in life and suddenly and painlessly despatched at
- last. In island circles of refinement it was doubtless thought bad
- taste to expatiate on what was ugly in the practice.
-
- Cannibalism is traced from end to end of the Pacific, from the
- Marquesas to New Guinea, from New Zealand to Hawaii, here in the
- lively haunt of its exercise, there by scanty but significant
- survivals. Hawaii is the most doubtful. We find cannibalism
- chronicled in Hawaii, only in the history of a single war, where it
- seems to have been thought exception, as in the case of mountain
- outlaws, such as fell by the hand of Theseus. In Tahiti, a single
- circumstance survived, but that appears conclusive. In historic
- times, when human oblation was made in the marae, the eyes of the
- victim were formally offered to the chief: a delicacy to the
- leading guest. All Melanesia appears tainted. In Micronesia, in
- the Marshalls, with which my acquaintance is no more than that of a
- tourist, I could find no trace at all; and even in the Gilbert zone
- I long looked and asked in vain. I was told tales indeed of men
- who had been eaten in a famine; but these were nothing to my
- purpose, for the same thing is done under the same stress by all
- kindreds and generations of men. At last, in some manuscript notes
- of Dr. Turner's, which I was allowed to consult at Malua, I came on
- one damning evidence: on the island of Onoatoa the punishment for
- theft was to be killed and eaten. How shall we account for the
- universality of the practice over so vast an area, among people of
- such varying civilisation, and, with whatever intermixture, of such
- different blood? What circumstance is common to them all, but that
- they lived on islands destitute, or very nearly so, of animal food?
- I can never find it in my appetite that man was meant to live on
- vegetables only. When our stores ran low among the islands, I grew
- to weary for the recurrent day when economy allowed us to open
- another tin of miserable mutton. And in at least one ocean
- language, a particular word denotes that a man is 'hungry for
- fish,' having reached that stage when vegetables can no longer
- satisfy, and his soul, like those of the Hebrews in the desert,
- begins to lust after flesh-pots. Add to this the evidences of
- over-population and imminent famine already adduced, and I think we
- see some ground of indulgence for the island cannibal.
-
- It is right to look at both sides of any question; but I am far
- from making the apology of this worse than bestial vice. The
- higher Polynesian races, such as the Tahitians, Hawaiians, and
- Samoans, had one and all outgrown, and some of them had in part
- forgot, the practice, before Cook or Bougainville had shown a top-
- sail in their waters. It lingered only in some low islands where
- life was difficult to maintain, and among inveterate savages like
- the New-Zealanders or the Marquesans. The Marquesans intertwined
- man-eating with the whole texture of their lives; long-pig was in a
- sense their currency and sacrament; it formed the hire of the
- artist, illustrated public events, and was the occasion and
- attraction of a feast. To-day they are paying the penalty of this
- bloody commixture. The civil power, in its crusade against man-
- eating, has had to examine one after another all Marquesan arts and
- pleasures, has found them one after another tainted with a cannibal
- element, and one after another has placed them on the proscript
- list. Their art of tattooing stood by itself, the execution
- exquisite, the designs most beautiful and intricate; nothing more
- handsomely sets off a handsome man; it may cost some pain in the
- beginning, but I doubt if it be near so painful in the long-run,
- and I am sure it is far more becoming than the ignoble European
- practice of tight-lacing among women. And now it has been found
- needful to forbid the art. Their songs and dances were numerous
- (and the law has had to abolish them by the dozen). They now face
- empty-handed the tedium of their uneventful days; and who shall
- pity them? The least rigorous will say that they were justly
- served.
-
- Death alone could not satisfy Marquesan vengeance: the flesh must
- be eaten. The chief who seized Mr. Whalon preferred to eat him;
- and he thought he had justified the wish when he explained it was a
- vengeance. Two or three years ago, the people of a valley seized
- and slew a wretch who had offended them. His offence, it is to be
- supposed, was dire; they could not bear to leave their vengeance
- incomplete, and, under the eyes of the French, they did not dare to
- hold a public festival. The body was accordingly divided; and
- every man retired to his own house to consummate the rite in
- secret, carrying his proportion of the dreadful meat in a Swedish
- match-box. The barbarous substance of the drama and the European
- properties employed offer a seizing contrast to the imagination.
- Yet more striking is another incident of the very year when I was
- there myself, 1888. In the spring, a man and woman skulked about
- the school-house in Hiva-oa till they found a particular child
- alone. Him they approached with honeyed words and carneying
- manners - 'You are So-and-so, son of So-and-so?' they asked; and
- caressed and beguiled him deeper in the woods. Some instinct woke
- in the child's bosom, or some look betrayed the horrid purpose of
- his deceivers. He sought to break from them; he screamed; and
- they, casting off the mask, seized him the more strongly and began
- to run. His cries were heard; his schoolmates, playing not far
- off, came running to the rescue; and the sinister couple fled and
- vanished in the woods. They were never identified; no prosecution
- followed; but it was currently supposed they had some grudge
- against the boy's father, and designed to eat him in revenge. All
- over the islands, as at home among our own ancestors, it will be
- observed that the avenger takes no particular heed to strike an
- individual. A family, a class, a village, a whole valley or
- island, a whole race of mankind, share equally the guilt of any
- member. So, in the above story, the son was to pay the penalty for
- his father; so Mr. Whalon, the mate of an American whaler, was to
- bleed and be eaten for the misdeeds of a Peruvian slaver. I am
- reminded of an incident in Jaluit in the Marshall group, which was
- told me by an eye-witness, and which I tell here again for the
- strangeness of the scene. Two men had awakened the animosity of
- the Jaluit chiefs; and it was their wives who were selected to be
- punished. A single native served as executioner. Early in the
- morning, in the face of a large concourse of spectators, he waded
- out upon the reef between his victims. These neither complained
- nor resisted; accompanied their destroyer patiently; stooped down,
- when they had waded deep enough, at his command; and he (laying one
- hand upon the shoulders of each) held them under water till they
- drowned. Doubtless, although my informant did not tell me so,
- their families would be lamenting aloud upon the beach.
-
- It was from Hatiheu that I paid my first visit to a cannibal high
- place.
-
- The day was sultry and clouded. Drenching tropical showers
- succeeded bursts of sweltering sunshine. The green pathway of the
- road wound steeply upward. As we went, our little schoolboy guide
- a little ahead of us, Father Simeon had his portfolio in his hand,
- and named the trees for me, and read aloud from his notes the
- abstract of their virtues. Presently the road, mounting, showed us
- the vale of Hatiheu, on a larger scale; and the priest, with
- occasional reference to our guide, pointed out the boundaries and
- told me the names of the larger tribes that lived at perpetual war
- in the old days: one on the north-east, one along the beach, one
- behind upon the mountain. With a survivor of this latter clan
- Father Simeon had spoken; until the pacification he had never been
- to the sea's edge, nor, if I remember exactly, eaten of sea-fish.
- Each in its own district, the septs lived cantoned and beleaguered.
- One step without the boundaries was to affront death. If famine
- came, the men must out to the woods to gather chestnuts and small
- fruits; even as to this day, if the parents are backward in their
- weekly doles, school must be broken up and the scholars sent
- foraging. But in the old days, when there was trouble in one clan,
- there would be activity in all its neighbours; the woods would be
- laid full of ambushes; and he who went after vegetables for himself
- might remain to be a joint for his hereditary foes. Nor was the
- pointed occasion needful. A dozen different natural signs and
- social junctures called this people to the war-path and the
- cannibal hunt. Let one of chiefly rank have finished his
- tattooing, the wife of one be near upon her time, two of the
- debauching streams have deviated nearer on the beach of Hatiheu, a
- certain bird have been heard to sing, a certain ominous formation
- of cloud observed above the northern sea; and instantly the arms
- were oiled, and the man-hunters swarmed into the wood to lay their
- fratricidal ambuscades. It appears besides that occasionally,
- perhaps in famine, the priest would shut himself in his house,
- where he lay for a stated period like a person dead. When he came
- forth it was to run for three days through the territory of the
- clan, naked and starving, and to sleep at night alone in the high
- place. It was now the turn of the others to keep the house, for to
- encounter the priest upon his rounds was death. On the eve of the
- fourth day the time of the running was over; the priest returned to
- his roof, the laymen came forth, and in the morning the number of
- the victims was announced. I have this tale of the priest on one
- authority - I think a good one, - but I set it down with
- diffidence. The particulars are so striking that, had they been
- true, I almost think I must have heard them oftener referred to.
- Upon one point there seems to be no question: that the feast was
- sometimes furnished from within the clan. In times of scarcity,
- all who were not protected by their family connections - in the
- Highland expression, all the commons of the clan - had cause to
- tremble. It was vain to resist, it was useless to flee. They were
- begirt upon all hands by cannibals; and the oven was ready to smoke
- for them abroad in the country of their foes, or at home in the
- valley of their fathers.
-
- At a certain corner of the road our scholar-guide struck off to his
- left into the twilight of the forest. We were now on one of the
- ancient native roads, plunged in a high vault of wood, and
- clambering, it seemed, at random over boulders and dead trees; but
- the lad wound in and out and up and down without a check, for these
- paths are to the natives as marked as the king's highway is to us;
- insomuch that, in the days of the man-hunt, it was their labour
- rather to block and deface than to improve them. In the crypt of
- the wood the air was clammy and hot and cold; overhead, upon the
- leaves, the tropical rain uproariously poured, but only here and
- there, as through holes in a leaky roof, a single drop would fall,
- and make a spot upon my mackintosh. Presently the huge trunk of a
- banyan hove in sight, standing upon what seemed the ruins of an
- ancient fort; and our guide, halting and holding forth his arm,
- announced that we had reached the PAEPAE TAPU.
-
- PAEPAE signifies a floor or platform such as a native house is
- built on; and even such a paepae - a paepae hae - may be called a
- paepae tapu in a lesser sense when it is deserted and becomes the
- haunt of spirits; but the public high place, such as I was now
- treading, was a thing on a great scale. As far as my eyes could
- pierce through the dark undergrowth, the floor of the forest was
- all paved. Three tiers of terrace ran on the slope of the hill; in
- front, a crumbling parapet contained the main arena; and the
- pavement of that was pierced and parcelled out with several wells
- and small enclosures. No trace remained of any superstructure, and
- the scheme of the amphitheatre was difficult to seize. I visited
- another in Hiva-oa, smaller but more perfect, where it was easy to
- follow rows of benches, and to distinguish isolated seats of honour
- for eminent persons; and where, on the upper platform, a single
- joist of the temple or dead-house still remained, its uprights
- richly carved. In the old days the high place was sedulously
- tended. No tree except the sacred banyan was suffered to encroach
- upon its grades, no dead leaf to rot upon the pavement. The stones
- were smoothly set, and I am told they were kept bright with oil.
- On all sides the guardians lay encamped in their subsidiary huts to
- watch and cleanse it. No other foot of man was suffered to draw
- near; only the priest, in the days of his running, came there to
- sleep - perhaps to dream of his ungodly errand; but, in the time of
- the feast, the clan trooped to the high place in a body, and each
- had his appointed seat. There were places for the chiefs, the
- drummers, the dancers, the women, and the priests. The drums -
- perhaps twenty strong, and some of them twelve feet high -
- continuously throbbed in time. In time the singers kept up their
- long-drawn, lugubrious, ululating song; in time, too, the dancers,
- tricked out in singular finery, stepped, leaped, swayed, and
- gesticulated - their plumed fingers fluttering in the air like
- butterflies. The sense of time, in all these ocean races, is
- extremely perfect; and I conceive in such a festival that almost
- every sound and movement fell in one. So much the more unanimously
- must have grown the agitation of the feasters; so much the more
- wild must have been the scene to any European who could have beheld
- them there, in the strong sun and the strong shadow of the banyan,
- rubbed with saffron to throw in a more high relief the arabesque of
- the tattoo; the women bleached by days of confinement to a
- complexion almost European; the chiefs crowned with silver plumes
- of old men's beards and girt with kirtles of the hair of dead
- women. All manner of island food was meanwhile spread for the
- women and the commons; and, for those who were privileged to eat of
- it, there were carried up to the dead-house the baskets of long-
- pig. It is told that the feasts were long kept up; the people came
- from them brutishly exhausted with debauchery, and the chiefs heavy
- with their beastly food. There are certain sentiments which we
- call emphatically human - denying the honour of that name to those
- who lack them. In such feasts - particularly where the victim has
- been slain at home, and men banqueted on the poor clay of a comrade
- with whom they had played in infancy, or a woman whose favours they
- had shared - the whole body of these sentiments is outraged. To
- consider it too closely is to understand, if not to excuse, the
- fervours of self-righteous old ship-captains, who would man their
- guns, and open fire in passing, on a cannibal island.
-
- And yet it was strange. There, upon the spot, as I stood under the
- high, dripping vault of the forest, with the young priest on the
- one hand, in his kilted gown, and the bright-eyed Marquesan
- schoolboy on the other, the whole business appeared infinitely
- distant, and fallen in the cold perspective and dry light of
- history. The bearing of the priest, perhaps, affected me. He
- smiled; he jested with the boy, the heir both of these feasters and
- their meat; he clapped his hands, and gave me a stave of one of the
- old, ill-omened choruses. Centuries might have come and gone since
- this slimy theatre was last in operation; and I beheld the place
- with no more emotion than I might have felt in visiting Stonehenge.
- In Hiva-oa, as I began to appreciate that the thing was still
- living and latent about my footsteps, and that it was still within
- the bounds of possibility that I might hear the cry of the trapped
- victim, my historic attitude entirely failed, and I was sensible of
- some repugnance for the natives. But here, too, the priests
- maintained their jocular attitude: rallying the cannibals as upon
- an eccentricity rather absurd than horrible; seeking, I should say,
- to shame them from the practice by good-natured ridicule, as we
- shame a child from stealing sugar. We may here recognise the
- temperate and sagacious mind of Bishop Dordillon.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII - THE STORY OF A PLANTATION
-
-
-
- TAAHAUKU, on the south-westerly coast of the island of Hiva-oa -
- Tahuku, say the slovenly whites - may be called the port of Atuona.
- It is a narrow and small anchorage, set between low cliffy points,
- and opening above upon a woody valley: a little French fort, now
- disused and deserted, overhangs the valley and the inlet. Atuona
- itself, at the head of the next bay, is framed in a theatre of
- mountains, which dominate the more immediate settling of Taahauku
- and give the salient character of the scene. They are reckoned at
- no higher than four thousand feet; but Tahiti with eight thousand,
- and Hawaii with fifteen, can offer no such picture of abrupt,
- melancholy alps. In the morning, when the sun falls directly on
- their front, they stand like a vast wall: green to the summit, if
- by any chance the summit should be clear - water-courses here and
- there delineated on their face, as narrow as cracks. Towards
- afternoon, the light falls more obliquely, and the sculpture of the
- range comes in relief, huge gorges sinking into shadow, huge,
- tortuous buttresses standing edged with sun. At all hours of the
- day they strike the eye with some new beauty, and the mind with the
- same menacing gloom.
-
- The mountains, dividing and deflecting the endless airy deluge of
- the Trade, are doubtless answerable for the climate. A strong
- draught of wind blew day and night over the anchorage. Day and
- night the same fantastic and attenuated clouds fled across the
- heavens, the same dusky cap of rain and vapour fell and rose on the
- mountain. The land-breezes came very strong and chill, and the
- sea, like the air, was in perpetual bustle. The swell crowded into
- the narrow anchorage like sheep into a fold; broke all along both
- sides, high on the one, low on the other; kept a certain blowhole
- sounding and smoking like a cannon; and spent itself at last upon
- the beach.
-
- On the side away from Atuona, the sheltering promontory was a
- nursery of coco-trees. Some were mere infants, none had attained
- to any size, none had yet begun to shoot skyward with that whip-
- like shaft of the mature palm. In the young trees the colour
- alters with the age and growth. Now all is of a grass-like hue,
- infinitely dainty; next the rib grows golden, the fronds remaining
- green as ferns; and then, as the trunk continues to mount and to
- assume its final hue of grey, the fans put on manlier and more
- decided depths of verdure, stand out dark upon the distance,
- glisten against the sun, and flash like silver fountains in the
- assault of the wind. In this young wood of Taahauku, all these
- hues and combinations were exampled and repeated by the score. The
- trees grew pleasantly spaced upon a hilly sward, here and there
- interspersed with a rack for drying copra, or a tumble-down hut for
- storing it. Every here and there the stroller had a glimpse of the
- CASCO tossing in the narrow anchorage below; and beyond he had ever
- before him the dark amphitheatre of the Atuona mountains and the
- cliffy bluff that closes it to seaward. The trade-wind moving in
- the fans made a ceaseless noise of summer rain; and from time to
- time, with the sound of a sudden and distant drum-beat, the surf
- would burst in a sea-cave.
-
- At the upper end of the inlet, its low, cliffy lining sinks, at
- both sides, into a beach. A copra warehouse stands in the shadow
- of the shoreside trees, flitted about for ever by a clan of
- dwarfish swallows; and a line of rails on a high wooden staging
- bends back into the mouth of the valley. Walking on this, the new-
- landed traveller becomes aware of a broad fresh-water lagoon (one
- arm of which he crosses), and beyond, of a grove of noble palms,
- sheltering the house of the trader, Mr. Keane. Overhead, the cocos
- join in a continuous and lofty roof; blackbirds are heard lustily
- singing; the island cock springs his jubilant rattle and airs his
- golden plumage; cow-bells sound far and near in the grove; and when
- you sit in the broad verandah, lulled by this symphony, you may say
- to yourself, if you are able: 'Better fifty years of Europe . . .'
- Farther on, the floor of the valley is flat and green, and dotted
- here and there with stripling coco-palms. Through the midst, with
- many changes of music, the river trots and brawls; and along its
- course, where we should look for willows, puraos grow in clusters,
- and make shadowy pools after an angler's heart. A vale more rich
- and peaceful, sweeter air, a sweeter voice of rural sounds, I have
- found nowhere. One circumstance alone might strike the
- experienced: here is a convenient beach, deep soil, good water,
- and yet nowhere any paepaes, nowhere any trace of island
- habitation.
-
- It is but a few years since this valley was a place choked with
- jungle, the debatable land and battle-ground of cannibals. Two
- clans laid claim to it - neither could substantiate the claim, and
- the roads lay desert, or were only visited by men in arms. It is
- for this very reason that it wears now so smiling an appearance:
- cleared, planted, built upon, supplied with railways, boat-houses,
- and bath-houses. For, being no man's land, it was the more readily
- ceded to a stranger. The stranger was Captain John Hart: Ima
- Hati, 'Broken-arm,' the natives call him, because when he first
- visited the islands his arm was in a sling. Captain Hart, a man of
- English birth, but an American subject, had conceived the idea of
- cotton culture in the Marquesas during the American War, and was at
- first rewarded with success. His plantation at Anaho was highly
- productive; island cotton fetched a high price, and the natives
- used to debate which was the stronger power, Ima Hati or the
- French: deciding in favour of the captain, because, though the
- French had the most ships, he had the more money.
-
- He marked Taahauku for a suitable site, acquired it, and offered
- the superintendence to Mr. Robert Stewart, a Fifeshire man, already
- some time in the islands, who had just been ruined by a war on
- Tauata. Mr. Stewart was somewhat averse to the adventure, having
- some acquaintance with Atuona and its notorious chieftain, Moipu.
- He had once landed there, he told me, about dusk, and found the
- remains of a man and woman partly eaten. On his starting and
- sickening at the sight, one of Moipu's young men picked up a human
- foot, and provocatively staring at the stranger, grinned and
- nibbled at the heel. None need be surprised if Mr. Stewart fled
- incontinently to the bush, lay there all night in a great horror of
- mind, and got off to sea again by daylight on the morrow. 'It was
- always a bad place, Atuona,' commented Mr. Stewart, in his homely
- Fifeshire voice. In spite of this dire introduction, he accepted
- the captain's offer, was landed at Taahauku with three Chinamen,
- and proceeded to clear the jungle.
-
- War was pursued at that time, almost without interval, between the
- men of Atuona and the men of Haamau; and one day, from the opposite
- sides of the valley, battle - or I should rather say the noise of
- battle - raged all the afternoon: the shots and insults of the
- opposing clans passing from hill to hill over the heads of Mr.
- Stewart and his Chinamen. There was no genuine fighting; it was
- like a bicker of schoolboys, only some fool had given the children
- guns. One man died of his exertions in running, the only casualty.
- With night the shots and insults ceased; the men of Haamau
- withdrew; and victory, on some occult principle, was scored to
- Moipu. Perhaps, in consequence, there came a day when Moipu made a
- feast, and a party from Haamau came under safe-conduct to eat of
- it. These passed early by Taahauku, and some of Moipu's young men
- were there to be a guard of honour. They were not long gone before
- there came down from Haamau, a man, his wife, and a girl of twelve,
- their daughter, bringing fungus. Several Atuona lads were hanging
- round the store; but the day being one of truce none apprehended
- danger. The fungus was weighed and paid for; the man of Haamau
- proposed he should have his axe ground in the bargain; and Mr.
- Stewart demurring at the trouble, some of the Atuona lads offered
- to grind it for him, and set it on the wheel. While the axe was
- grinding, a friendly native whispered Mr. Stewart to have a care of
- himself, for there was trouble in hand; and, all at once, the man
- of Haamau was seized, and his head and arm stricken from his body,
- the head at one sweep of his own newly sharpened axe. In the first
- alert, the girl escaped among the cotton; and Mr. Stewart, having
- thrust the wife into the house and locked her in from the outside,
- supposed the affair was over. But the business had not passed
- without noise, and it reached the ears of an older girl who had
- loitered by the way, and who now came hastily down the valley,
- crying as she came for her father. Her, too, they seized and
- beheaded; I know not what they had done with the axe, it was a
- blunt knife that served their butcherly turn upon the girl; and the
- blood spurted in fountains and painted them from head to foot.
- Thus horrible from crime, the party returned to Atuona, carrying
- the heads to Moipu. It may be fancied how the feast broke up; but
- it is notable that the guests were honourably suffered to retire.
- These passed back through Taahauku in extreme disorder; a little
- after the valley began to be overrun with shouting and triumphing
- braves; and a letter of warning coming at the same time to Mr.
- Stewart, he and his Chinamen took refuge with the Protestant
- missionary in Atuona. That night the store was gutted, and the
- bodies cast in a pit and covered with leaves. Three days later the
- schooner had come in; and things appearing quieter, Mr. Stewart and
- the captain landed in Taahauku to compute the damage and to view
- the grave, which was already indicated by the stench. While they
- were so employed, a party of Moipu's young men, decked with red
- flannel to indicate martial sentiments, came over the hills from
- Atuona, dug up the bodies, washed them in the river, and carried
- them away on sticks. That night the feast began.
-
- Those who knew Mr. Stewart before this experience declare the man
- to be quite altered. He stuck, however, to his post; and somewhat
- later, when the plantation was already well established, and gave
- employment to sixty Chinamen and seventy natives, he found himself
- once more in dangerous times. The men of Haamau, it was reported,
- had sworn to plunder and erase the settlement; letters came
- continually from the Hawaiian missionary, who acted as intelligence
- department; and for six weeks Mr. Stewart and three other whites
- slept in the cotton-house at night in a rampart of bales, and (what
- was their best defence) ostentatiously practised rifle-shooting by
- day upon the beach. Natives were often there to watch them; the
- practice was excellent; and the assault was never delivered - if it
- ever was intended, which I doubt, for the natives are more famous
- for false rumours than for deeds of energy. I was told the late
- French war was a case in point; the tribes on the beach accusing
- those in the mountains of designs which they had never the
- hardihood to entertain. And the same testimony to their
- backwardness in open battle reached me from all sides. Captain
- Hart once landed after an engagement in a certain bay; one man had
- his hand hurt, an old woman and two children had been slain; and
- the captain improved the occasion by poulticing the hand, and
- taunting both sides upon so wretched an affair. It is true these
- wars were often merely formal - comparable with duels to the first
- blood. Captain Hart visited a bay where such a war was being
- carried on between two brothers, one of whom had been thought
- wanting in civility to the guests of the other. About one-half of
- the population served day about on alternate sides, so as to be
- well with each when the inevitable peace should follow. The forts
- of the belligerents were over against each other, and close by.
- Pigs were cooking. Well-oiled braves, with well-oiled muskets,
- strutted on the paepae or sat down to feast. No business, however
- needful, could be done, and all thoughts were supposed to be
- centred in this mockery of war. A few days later, by a regrettable
- accident, a man was killed; it was felt at once the thing had gone
- too far, and the quarrel was instantly patched up. But the more
- serious wars were prosecuted in a similar spirit; a gift of pigs
- and a feast made their inevitable end; the killing of a single man
- was a great victory, and the murder of defenceless solitaries
- counted a heroic deed.
-
- The foot of the cliffs, about all these islands, is the place of
- fishing. Between Taahauku and Atuona we saw men, but chiefly
- women, some nearly naked, some in thin white or crimson dresses,
- perched in little surf-beat promontories - the brown precipice
- overhanging them, and the convolvulus overhanging that, as if to
- cut them off the more completely from assistance. There they would
- angle much of the morning; and as fast as they caught any fish, eat
- them, raw and living, where they stood. It was such helpless ones
- that the warriors from the opposite island of Tauata slew, and
- carried home and ate, and were thereupon accounted mighty men of
- valour. Of one such exploit I can give the account of an eye-
- witness. 'Portuguese Joe,' Mr. Keane's cook, was once pulling an
- oar in an Atuona boat, when they spied a stranger in a canoe with
- some fish and a piece of tapu. The Atuona men cried upon him to
- draw near and have a smoke. He complied, because, I suppose, he
- had no choice; but he knew, poor devil, what he was coming to, and
- (as Joe said) 'he didn't seem to care about the smoke.' A few
- questions followed, as to where he came from, and what was his
- business. These he must needs answer, as he must needs draw at the
- unwelcome pipe, his heart the while drying in his bosom. And then,
- of a sudden, a big fellow in Joe's boat leaned over, plucked the
- stranger from his canoe, struck him with a knife in the neck -
- inward and downward, as Joe showed in pantomime more expressive
- than his words - and held him under water, like a fowl, until his
- struggles ceased. Whereupon the long-pig was hauled on board, the
- boat's head turned about for Atuona, and these Marquesan braves
- pulled home rejoicing. Moipu was on the beach and rejoiced with
- them on their arrival. Poor Joe toiled at his oar that day with a
- white face, yet he had no fear for himself. 'They were very good
- to me - gave me plenty grub: never wished to eat white man,' said
- he.
-
- If the most horrible experience was Mr. Stewart's, it was Captain
- Hart himself who ran the nearest danger. He had bought a piece of
- land from Timau, chief of a neighbouring bay, and put some Chinese
- there to work. Visiting the station with one of the Godeffroys, he
- found his Chinamen trooping to the beach in terror: Timau had
- driven them out, seized their effects, and was in war attire with
- his young men. A boat was despatched to Taahauku for
- reinforcement; as they awaited her return, they could see, from the
- deck of the schooner, Timau and his young men dancing the war-dance
- on the hill-top till past twelve at night; and so soon as the boat
- came (bringing three gendarmes, armed with chassepots, two white
- men from Taahauku station, and some native warriors) the party set
- out to seize the chief before he should awake. Day was not come,
- and it was a very bright moonlight morning, when they reached the
- hill-top where (in a house of palm-leaves) Timau was sleeping off
- his debauch. The assailants were fully exposed, the interior of
- the hut quite dark; the position far from sound. The gendarmes
- knelt with their pieces ready, and Captain Hart advanced alone. As
- he drew near the door he heard the snap of a gun cocking from
- within, and in sheer self-defence - there being no other escape -
- sprang into the house and grappled Timau. 'Timau, come with me!'
- he cried. But Timau - a great fellow, his eyes blood-red with the
- abuse of kava, six foot three in stature - cast him on one side;
- and the captain, instantly expecting to be either shot or brained,
- discharged his pistol in the dark. When they carried Timau out at
- the door into the moonlight, he was already dead, and, upon this
- unlooked-for termination of their sally, the whites appeared to
- have lost all conduct, and retreated to the boats, fired upon by
- the natives as they went. Captain Hart, who almost rivals Bishop
- Dordillon in popularity, shared with him the policy of extreme
- indulgence to the natives, regarding them as children, making light
- of their defects, and constantly in favour of mild measures. The
- death of Timau has thus somewhat weighed upon his mind; the more
- so, as the chieftain's musket was found in the house unloaded. To
- a less delicate conscience the matter will seem light. If a
- drunken savage elects to cock a fire-arm, a gentleman advancing
- towards him in the open cannot wait to make sure if it be charged.
-
- I have touched on the captain's popularity. It is one of the
- things that most strikes a stranger in the Marquesas. He comes
- instantly on two names, both new to him, both locally famous, both
- mentioned by all with affection and respect - the bishop's and the
- captain's. It gave me a strong desire to meet with the survivor,
- which was subsequently gratified - to the enrichment of these
- pages. Long after that again, in the Place Dolorous - Molokai - I
- came once more on the traces of that affectionate popularity.
- There was a blind white leper there, an old sailor - 'an old
- tough,' he called himself - who had long sailed among the eastern
- islands. Him I used to visit, and, being fresh from the scenes of
- his activity, gave him the news. This (in the true island style)
- was largely a chronicle of wrecks; and it chanced I mentioned the
- case of one not very successful captain, and how he had lost a
- vessel for Mr. Hart; thereupon the blind leper broke forth in
- lamentation. 'Did he lose a ship of John Hart's?' he cried; 'poor
- John Hart! Well, I'm sorry it was Hart's,' with needless force of
- epithet, which I neglect to reproduce.
-
- Perhaps, if Captain Hart's affairs had continued to prosper, his
- popularity might have been different. Success wins glory, but it
- kills affection, which misfortune fosters. And the misfortune
- which overtook the captain's enterprise was truly singular. He was
- at the top of his career. Ile Masse belonged to him, given by the
- French as an indemnity for the robberies at Taahauku. But the Ile
- Masse was only suitable for cattle; and his two chief stations were
- Anaho, in Nuka-hiva, facing the north-east, and Taahauku in Hiva-
- oa, some hundred miles to the southward, and facing the south-west.
- Both these were on the same day swept by a tidal wave, which was
- not felt in any other bay or island of the group. The south coast
- of Hiva-oa was bestrewn with building timber and camphor-wood
- chests, containing goods; which, on the promise of a reasonable
- salvage, the natives very honestly brought back, the chests
- apparently not opened, and some of the wood after it had been built
- into their houses. But the recovery of such jetsam could not
- affect the result. It was impossible the captain should withstand
- this partiality of fortune; and with his fall the prosperity of the
- Marquesas ended. Anaho is truly extinct, Taahauku but a shadow of
- itself; nor has any new plantation arisen in their stead.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII - CHARACTERS
-
-
-
- THERE was a certain traffic in our anchorage at Atuona; different
- indeed from the dead inertia and quiescence of the sister island,
- Nuka-hiva. Sails were seen steering from its mouth; now it would
- be a whale-boat manned with native rowdies, and heavy with copra
- for sale; now perhaps a single canoe come after commodities to buy.
- The anchorage was besides frequented by fishers; not only the lone
- females perched in niches of the cliff, but whole parties, who
- would sometimes camp and build a fire upon the beach, and sometimes
- lie in their canoes in the midst of the haven and jump by turns in
- the water; which they would cast eight or nine feet high, to drive,
- as we supposed, the fish into their nets. The goods the purchasers
- came to buy were sometimes quaint. I remarked one outrigger
- returning with a single ham swung from a pole in the stern. And
- one day there came into Mr. Keane's store a charming lad,
- excellently mannered, speaking French correctly though with a
- babyish accent; very handsome too, and much of a dandy, as was
- shown not only in his shining raiment, but by the nature of his
- purchases. These were five ship-biscuits, a bottle of scent, and
- two balls of washing blue. He was from Tauata, whither he returned
- the same night in an outrigger, daring the deep with these young-
- ladyish treasures. The gross of the native passengers were more
- ill-favoured: tall, powerful fellows, well tattooed, and with
- disquieting manners. Something coarse and jeering distinguished
- them, and I was often reminded of the slums of some great city.
- One night, as dusk was falling, a whale-boat put in on that part of
- the beach where I chanced to be alone. Six or seven ruffianly
- fellows scrambled out; all had enough English to give me 'good-
- bye,' which was the ordinary salutation; or 'good-morning,' which
- they seemed to regard as an intensitive; jests followed, they
- surrounded me with harsh laughter and rude looks, and I was glad to
- move away. I had not yet encountered Mr. Stewart, or I should have
- been reminded of his first landing at Atuona and the humorist who
- nibbled at the heel. But their neighbourhood depressed me; and I
- felt, if I had been there a castaway and out of reach of help, my
- heart would have been sick.
-
- Nor was the traffic altogether native. While we lay in the
- anchorage there befell a strange coincidence. A schooner was
- observed at sea and aiming to enter. We knew all the schooners in
- the group, but this appeared larger than any; she was rigged,
- besides, after the English manner; and, coming to an anchor some
- way outside the CASCO, showed at last the blue ensign. There were
- at that time, according to rumour, no fewer than four yachts in the
- Pacific; but it was strange that any two of them should thus lie
- side by side in that outlandish inlet: stranger still that in the
- owner of the NYANZA, Captain Dewar, I should find a man of the same
- country and the same county with myself, and one whom I had seen
- walking as a boy on the shores of the Alpes Maritimes.
-
- We had besides a white visitor from shore, who came and departed in
- a crowded whale-boat manned by natives; having read of yachts in
- the Sunday papers, and being fired with the desire to see one.
- Captain Chase, they called him, an old whaler-man, thickset and
- white-bearded, with a strong Indiana drawl; years old in the
- country, a good backer in battle, and one of those dead shots whose
- practice at the target struck terror in the braves of Haamau.
- Captain Chase dwelt farther east in a bay called Hanamate, with a
- Mr. M'Callum; or rather they had dwelt together once, and were now
- amicably separated. The captain is to be found near one end of the
- bay, in a wreck of a house, and waited on by a Chinese. At the
- point of the opposing corner another habitation stands on a tall
- paepae. The surf runs there exceeding heavy, seas of seven and
- eight feet high bursting under the walls of the house, which is
- thus continually filled with their clamour, and rendered fit only
- for solitary, or at least for silent, inmates. Here it is that Mr.
- M'Callum, with a Shakespeare and a Burns, enjoys the society of the
- breakers. His name and his Burns testify to Scottish blood; but he
- is an American born, somewhere far east; followed the trade of a
- ship-carpenter; and was long employed, the captain of a hundred
- Indians, breaking up wrecks about Cape Flattery. Many of the
- whites who are to be found scattered in the South Seas represent
- the more artistic portion of their class; and not only enjoy the
- poetry of that new life, but came there on purpose to enjoy it. I
- have been shipmates with a man, no longer young, who sailed upon
- that voyage, his first time to sea, for the mere love of Samoa; and
- it was a few letters in a newspaper that sent him on that
- pilgrimage. Mr. M'Callum was another instance of the same. He had
- read of the South Seas; loved to read of them; and let their image
- fasten in his heart: till at length he could refrain no longer -
- must set forth, a new Rudel, for that unseen homeland - and has now
- dwelt for years in Hiva-oa, and will lay his bones there in the end
- with full content; having no desire to behold again the places of
- his boyhood, only, perhaps - once, before he dies - the rude and
- wintry landscape of Cape Flattery. Yet he is an active man, full
- of schemes; has bought land of the natives; has planted five
- thousand coco-palms; has a desert island in his eye, which he
- desires to lease, and a schooner in the stocks, which he has laid
- and built himself, and even hopes to finish. Mr. M'Callum and I
- did not meet, but, like gallant troubadours, corresponded in verse.
- I hope he will not consider it a breach of copyright if I give here
- a specimen of his muse. He and Bishop Dordillon are the two
- European bards of the Marquesas.
-
-
- 'Sail, ho! Ahoy! CASCO,
- First among the pleasure fleet
- That came around to greet
- These isles from San Francisco,
-
- And first, too; only one
- Among the literary men
- That this way has ever been -
- Welcome, then, to Stevenson.
-
- Please not offended be
- At this little notice
- Of the CASCO, Captain Otis,
- With the novelist's family.
-
- AVOIR UNE VOYAGE MAGNIFICAL
- Is our wish sincere,
- That you'll have from here
- ALLANT SUR LA GRANDE PACIFICAL.'
-
-
- But our chief visitor was one Mapiao, a great Tahuku - which seems
- to mean priest, wizard, tattooer, practiser of any art, or, in a
- word, esoteric person - and a man famed for his eloquence on public
- occasions and witty talk in private. His first appearance was
- typical of the man. He came down clamorous to the eastern landing,
- where the surf was running very high; scorned all our signals to go
- round the bay; carried his point, was brought aboard at some hazard
- to our skiff, and set down in one corner of the cockpit to his
- appointed task. He had been hired, as one cunning in the art, to
- make my old men's beards into a wreath: what a wreath for Celia's
- arbour! His own beard (which he carried, for greater safety, in a
- sailor's knot) was not merely the adornment of his age, but a
- substantial piece of property. One hundred dollars was the
- estimated value; and as Brother Michel never knew a native to
- deposit a greater sum with Bishop Dordillon, our friend was a rich
- man in virtue of his chin. He had something of an East Indian
- cast, but taller and stronger: his nose hooked, his face narrow,
- his forehead very high, the whole elaborately tattooed. I may say
- I have never entertained a guest so trying. In the least
- particular he must be waited on; he would not go to the scuttle-
- butt for water; he would not even reach to get the glass, it must
- be given him in his hand; if aid were denied him, he would fold his
- arms, bow his head, and go without: only the work would suffer.
- Early the first forenoon he called aloud for biscuit and salmon;
- biscuit and ham were brought; he looked on them inscrutably, and
- signed they should be set aside. A number of considerations
- crowded on my mind; how the sort of work on which he was engaged
- was probably tapu in a high degree; should by rights, perhaps, be
- transacted on a tapu platform which no female might approach; and
- it was possible that fish might be the essential diet. Some salted
- fish I therefore brought him, and along with that a glass of rum:
- at sight of which Mapiao displayed extraordinary animation, pointed
- to the zenith, made a long speech in which I picked up UMATI - the
- word for the sun - and signed to me once more to place these
- dainties out of reach. At last I had understood, and every day the
- programme was the same. At an early period of the morning his
- dinner must be set forth on the roof of the house and at a proper
- distance, full in view but just out of reach; and not until the fit
- hour, which was the point of noon, would the artificer partake.
- This solemnity was the cause of an absurd misadventure. He was
- seated plaiting, as usual, at the beards, his dinner arrayed on the
- roof, and not far off a glass of water standing. It appears he
- desired to drink; was of course far too great a gentleman to rise
- and get the water for himself; and spying Mrs. Stevenson,
- imperiously signed to her to hand it. The signal was
- misunderstood; Mrs. Stevenson was, by this time, prepared for any
- eccentricity on the part of our guest; and instead of passing him
- the water, flung his dinner overboard. I must do Mapiao justice:
- all laughed, but his laughter rang the loudest.
-
- These troubles of service were at worst occasional; the
- embarrassment of the man's talk incessant. He was plainly a
- practised conversationalist; the nicety of his inflections, the
- elegance of his gestures, and the fine play of his expression, told
- us that. We, meanwhile, sat like aliens in a playhouse; we could
- see the actors were upon some material business and performing
- well, but the plot of the drama remained undiscoverable. Names of
- places, the name of Captain Hart, occasional disconnected words,
- tantalised without enlightening us; and the less we understood, the
- more gallantly, the more copiously, and with still the more
- explanatory gestures, Mapiao returned to the assault. We could see
- his vanity was on the rack; being come to a place where that fine
- jewel of his conversational talent could earn him no respect; and
- he had times of despair when he desisted from the endeavour, and
- instants of irritation when he regarded us with unconcealed
- contempt. Yet for me, as the practitioner of some kindred mystery
- to his own, he manifested to the last a measure of respect. As we
- sat under the awning in opposite corners of the cockpit, he
- braiding hairs from dead men's chins, I forming runes upon a sheet
- of folio paper, he would nod across to me as one Tahuku to another,
- or, crossing the cockpit, study for a while my shapeless scrawl and
- encourage me with a heartfelt 'MITAI! - good!' So might a deaf
- painter sympathise far off with a musician, as the slave and master
- of some uncomprehended and yet kindred art. A silly trade, he
- doubtless considered it; but a man must make allowance for
- barbarians - CHAQUE PAYS A SES COUTUMES - and he felt the principle
- was there.
-
- The time came at last when his labours, which resembled those
- rather of Penelope than Hercules, could be no more spun out, and
- nothing remained but to pay him and say farewell. After a long,
- learned argument in Marquesan, I gathered that his mind was set on
- fish-hooks; with three of which, and a brace of dollars, I thought
- he was not ill rewarded for passing his forenoons in our cockpit,
- eating, drinking, delivering his opinions, and pressing the ship's
- company into his menial service. For all that, he was a man of so
- high a bearing, and so like an uncle of my own who should have gone
- mad and got tattooed, that I applied to him, when we were both on
- shore, to know if he were satisfied. 'MITAI EHIPE?' I asked. And
- he, with rich unction, offering at the same time his hand - 'MITAI
- EHIPE, MITAI KAEHAE; KAOHA NUI!' - or, to translate freely: 'The
- ship is good, the victuals are up to the mark, and we part in
- friendship.' Which testimonial uttered, he set off along the beach
- with his head bowed and the air of one deeply injured.
-
- I saw him go, on my side, with relief. It would be more
- interesting to learn how our relation seemed to Mapiao. His
- exigence, we may suppose, was merely loyal. He had been hired by
- the ignorant to do a piece of work; and he was bound that he would
- do it the right way. Countless obstacles, continual ignorant
- ridicule, availed not to dissuade him. He had his dinner laid out;
- watched it, as was fit, the while he worked; ate it at the fit
- hour; was in all things served and waited on; and could take his
- hire in the end with a clear conscience, telling himself the
- mystery was performed duly, the beards rightfully braided, and we
- (in spite of ourselves) correctly served. His view of our
- stupidity, even he, the mighty talker, must have lacked language to
- express. He never interfered with my Tahuku work; civilly praised
- it, idle as it seemed; civilly supposed that I was competent in my
- own mystery: such being the attitude of the intelligent and the
- polite. And we, on the other hand - who had yet the most to gain
- or lose, since the product was to be ours - who had professed our
- disability by the very act of hiring him to do it - were never
- weary of impeding his own more important labours, and sometimes
- lacked the sense and the civility to refrain from laughter.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV - IN A CANNIBAL VALLEY
-
-
-
- THE road from Taahauku to Atuona skirted the north-westerly side of
- the anchorage, somewhat high up, edged, and sometimes shaded, by
- the splendid flowers of the FLAMBOYANT - its English name I do not
- know. At the turn of the hand, Atuona came in view: a long beach,
- a heavy and loud breach of surf, a shore-side village scattered
- among trees, and the guttered mountains drawing near on both sides
- above a narrow and rich ravine. Its infamous repute perhaps
- affected me; but I thought it the loveliest, and by far the most
- ominous and gloomy, spot on earth. Beautiful it surely was; and
- even more salubrious. The healthfulness of the whole group is
- amazing; that of Atuona almost in the nature of a miracle. In
- Atuona, a village planted in a shore-side marsh, the houses
- standing everywhere intermingled with the pools of a taro-garden,
- we find every condition of tropical danger and discomfort; and yet
- there are not even mosquitoes - not even the hateful day-fly of
- Nuka-hiva - and fever, and its concomitant, the island fe'efe'e,
- are unknown.
-
- This is the chief station of the French on the man-eating isle of
- Hiva-oa. The sergeant of gendarmerie enjoys the style of the vice-
- resident, and hoists the French colours over a quite extensive
- compound. A Chinaman, a waif from the plantation, keeps a
- restaurant in the rear quarters of the village; and the mission is
- well represented by the sister's school and Brother Michel's
- church. Father Orens, a wonderful octogenarian, his frame scarce
- bowed, the fire of his eye undimmed, has lived, and trembled, and
- suffered in this place since 1843. Again and again, when Moipu had
- made coco-brandy, he has been driven from his house into the woods.
- 'A mouse that dwelt in a cat's ear' had a more easy resting-place;
- and yet I have never seen a man that bore less mark of years. He
- must show us the church, still decorated with the bishop's artless
- ornaments of paper - the last work of industrious old hands, and
- the last earthly amusement of a man that was much of a hero. In
- the sacristy we must see his sacred vessels, and, in particular, a
- vestment which was a 'VRAIE CURIOSITE,' because it had been given
- by a gendarme. To the Protestant there is always something
- embarrassing in the eagerness with which grown and holy men regard
- these trifles; but it was touching and pretty to see Orens, his
- aged eyes shining in his head, display his sacred treasures.
-
- AUGUST 26. - The vale behind the village, narrowing swiftly to a
- mere ravine, was choked with profitable trees. A river gushed in
- the midst. Overhead, the tall coco-palms made a primary covering;
- above that, from one wall of the mountain to another, the ravine
- was roofed with cloud; so that we moved below, amid teeming
- vegetation, in a covered house of heat. On either hand, at every
- hundred yards, instead of the houseless, disembowelling paepaes of
- Nuka-hiva, populous houses turned out their inhabitants to cry
- 'Kaoha!' to the passers-by. The road, too, was busy: strings of
- girls, fair and foul, as in less favoured countries; men bearing
- breadfruit; the sisters, with a little guard of pupils; a fellow
- bestriding a horse - passed and greeted us continually; and now it
- was a Chinaman who came to the gate of his flower-yard, and gave us
- 'Good-day' in excellent English; and a little farther on it would
- be some natives who set us down by the wayside, made us a feast of
- mummy-apple, and entertained us as we ate with drumming on a tin
- case. With all this fine plenty of men and fruit, death is at work
- here also. The population, according to the highest estimate, does
- not exceed six hundred in the whole vale of Atuona; and yet, when I
- once chanced to put the question, Brother Michel counted up ten
- whom he knew to be sick beyond recovery. It was here, too, that I
- could at last gratify my curiosity with the sight of a native house
- in the very article of dissolution. It had fallen flat along the
- paepae, its poles sprawling ungainly; the rains and the mites
- contended against it; what remained seemed sound enough, but much
- was gone already; and it was easy to see how the insects consumed
- the walls as if they had been bread, and the air and the rain ate
- into them like vitriol.
-
- A little ahead of us, a young gentleman, very well tattooed, and
- dressed in a pair of white trousers and a flannel shirt, had been
- marching unconcernedly. Of a sudden, without apparent cause, he
- turned back, took us in possession, and led us undissuadably along
- a by-path to the river's edge. There, in a nook of the most
- attractive amenity, he bade us to sit down: the stream splashing
- at our elbow, a shock of nondescript greenery enshrining us from
- above; and thither, after a brief absence, he brought us a cocoa-
- nut, a lump of sandal-wood, and a stick he had begun to carve: the
- nut for present refreshment, the sandal-wood for a precious gift,
- and the stick - in the simplicity of his vanity - to harvest
- premature praise. Only one section was yet carved, although the
- whole was pencil-marked in lengths; and when I proposed to buy it,
- Poni (for that was the artist's name) recoiled in horror. But I
- was not to be moved, and simply refused restitution, for I had long
- wondered why a people who displayed, in their tattooing, so great a
- gift of arabesque invention, should display it nowhere else. Here,
- at last, I had found something of the same talent in another
- medium; and I held the incompleteness, in these days of world-wide
- brummagem, for a happy mark of authenticity. Neither my reasons
- nor my purpose had I the means of making clear to Poni; I could
- only hold on to the stick, and bid the artist follow me to the
- gendarmerie, where I should find interpreters and money; but we
- gave him, in the meanwhile, a boat-call in return for his sandal-
- wood. As he came behind us down the vale he sounded upon this
- continually. And continually, from the wayside houses, there
- poured forth little groups of girls in crimson, or of men in white.
- And to these must Poni pass the news of who the strangers were, of
- what they had been doing, of why it was that Poni had a boat-
- whistle; and of why he was now being haled to the vice-residency,
- uncertain whether to be punished or rewarded, uncertain whether he
- had lost a stick or made a bargain, but hopeful on the whole, and
- in the meanwhile highly consoled by the boat-whistle. Whereupon he
- would tear himself away from this particular group of inquirers,
- and once more we would hear the shrill call in our wake.
-
- AUGUST 27. - I made a more extended circuit in the vale with
- Brother Michel. We were mounted on a pair of sober nags, suitable
- to these rude paths; the weather was exquisite, and the company in
- which I found myself no less agreeable than the scenes through
- which I passed. We mounted at first by a steep grade along the
- summit of one of those twisted spurs that, from a distance, mark
- out provinces of sun and shade upon the mountain-side. The ground
- fell away on either hand with an extreme declivity. From either
- hand, out of profound ravines, mounted the song of falling water
- and the smoke of household fires. Here and there the hills of
- foliage would divide, and our eye would plunge down upon one of
- these deep-nested habitations. And still, high in front, arose the
- precipitous barrier of the mountain, greened over where it seemed
- that scarce a harebell could find root, barred with the zigzags of
- a human road where it seemed that not a goat could scramble. And
- in truth, for all the labour that it cost, the road is regarded
- even by the Marquesans as impassable; they will not risk a horse on
- that ascent; and those who lie to the westward come and go in their
- canoes. I never knew a hill to lose so little on a near approach:
- a consequence, I must suppose, of its surprising steepness. When
- we turned about, I was amazed to behold so deep a view behind, and
- so high a shoulder of blue sea, crowned by the whale-like island of
- Motane. And yet the wall of mountain had not visibly dwindled, and
- I could even have fancied, as I raised my eyes to measure it, that
- it loomed higher than before.
-
- We struck now into covert paths, crossed and heard more near at
- hand the bickering of the streams, and tasted the coolness of those
- recesses where the houses stood. The birds sang about us as we
- descended. All along our path my guide was being hailed by voices:
- 'Mikael - Kaoha, Mikael!' From the doorstep, from the cotton-
- patch, or out of the deep grove of island-chestnuts, these friendly
- cries arose, and were cheerily answered as we passed. In a sharp
- angle of a glen, on a rushing brook and under fathoms of cool
- foliage, we struck a house upon a well-built paepae, the fire
- brightly burning under the popoi-shed against the evening meal; and
- here the cries became a chorus, and the house folk, running out,
- obliged us to dismount and breathe. It seemed a numerous family:
- we saw eight at least; and one of these honoured me with a
- particular attention. This was the mother, a woman naked to the
- waist, of an aged countenance, but with hair still copious and
- black, and breasts still erect and youthful. On our arrival I
- could see she remarked me, but instead of offering any greeting,
- disappeared at once into the bush. Thence she returned with two
- crimson flowers. 'Good-bye!' was her salutation, uttered not
- without coquetry; and as she said it she pressed the flowers into
- my hand - 'Good-bye! I speak Inglis.' It was from a whaler-man,
- who (she informed me) was 'a plenty good chap,' that she had
- learned my language; and I could not but think how handsome she
- must have been in these times of her youth, and could not but guess
- that some memories of the dandy whaler-man prompted her attentions
- to myself. Nor could I refrain from wondering what had befallen
- her lover; in the rain and mire of what sea-ports he had tramped
- since then; in what close and garish drinking-dens had found his
- pleasure; and in the ward of what infirmary dreamed his last of the
- Marquesas. But she, the more fortunate, lived on in her green
- island. The talk, in this lost house upon the mountains, ran
- chiefly upon Mapiao and his visits to the CASCO: the news of which
- had probably gone abroad by then to all the island, so that there
- was no paepae in Hiva-oa where they did not make the subject of
- excited comment.
-
- Not much beyond we came upon a high place in the foot of the
- ravine. Two roads divided it, and met in the midst. Save for this
- intersection the amphitheatre was strangely perfect, and had a
- certain ruder air of things Roman. Depths of foliage and the bulk
- of the mountain kept it in a grateful shadow. On the benches
- several young folk sat clustered or apart. One of these, a girl
- perhaps fourteen years of age, buxom and comely, caught the eye of
- Brother Michel. Why was she not at school? - she was done with
- school now. What was she doing here? - she lived here now. Why
- so? - no answer but a deepening blush. There was no severity in
- Brother Michel's manner; the girl's own confusion told her story.
- 'ELLE A HONTE,' was the missionary's comment, as we rode away.
- Near by in the stream, a grown girl was bathing naked in a goyle
- between two stepping-stones; and it amused me to see with what
- alacrity and real alarm she bounded on her many-coloured under-
- clothes. Even in these daughters of cannibals shame was eloquent.
-
- It is in Hiva-oa, owing to the inveterate cannibalism of the
- natives, that local beliefs have been most rudely trodden
- underfoot. It was here that three religious chiefs were set under
- a bridge, and the women of the valley made to defile over their
- heads upon the road-way: the poor, dishonoured fellows sitting
- there (all observers agree) with streaming tears. Not only was one
- road driven across the high place, but two roads intersected in its
- midst. There is no reason to suppose that the last was done of
- purpose, and perhaps it was impossible entirely to avoid the
- numerous sacred places of the islands. But these things are not
- done without result. I have spoken already of the regard of
- Marquesans for the dead, making (as it does) so strange a contrast
- with their unconcern for death. Early on this day's ride, for
- instance, we encountered a petty chief, who inquired (of course)
- where we were going, and suggested by way of amendment. 'Why do
- you not rather show him the cemetery?' I saw it; it was but newly
- opened, the third within eight years. They are great builders here
- in Hiva-oa; I saw in my ride paepaes that no European dry-stone
- mason could have equalled, the black volcanic stones were laid so
- justly, the corners were so precise, the levels so true; but the
- retaining-wall of the new graveyard stood apart, and seemed to be a
- work of love. The sentiment of honour for the dead is therefore
- not extinct. And yet observe the consequence of violently
- countering men's opinions. Of the four prisoners in Atuona gaol,
- three were of course thieves; the fourth was there for sacrilege.
- He had levelled up a piece of the graveyard - to give a feast upon,
- as he informed the court - and declared he had no thought of doing
- wrong. Why should he? He had been forced at the point of the
- bayonet to destroy the sacred places of his own piety; when he had
- recoiled from the task, he had been jeered at for a superstitious
- fool. And now it is supposed he will respect our European
- superstitions as by second nature.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV - THE TWO CHIEFS OF ATUONA
-
-
-
- IT had chanced (as the CASCO beat through the Bordelais Straits for
- Taahauku) she approached on one board very near the land in the
- opposite isle of Tauata, where houses were to be seen in a grove of
- tall coco-palms. Brother Michel pointed out the spot. 'I am at
- home now,' said he. 'I believe I have a large share in these
- cocoa-nuts; and in that house madame my mother lives with her two
- husbands!' 'With two husbands?' somebody inquired. 'C'EST MA
- HONTE,' replied the brother drily.
-
- A word in passing on the two husbands. I conceive the brother to
- have expressed himself loosely. It seems common enough to find a
- native lady with two consorts; but these are not two husbands. The
- first is still the husband; the wife continues to be referred to by
- his name; and the position of the coadjutor, or PIKIO, although
- quite regular, appears undoubtedly subordinate. We had
- opportunities to observe one household of the sort. The PIKIO was
- recognised; appeared openly along with the husband when the lady
- was thought to be insulted, and the pair made common cause like
- brothers. At home the inequality was more apparent. The husband
- sat to receive and entertain visitors; the PIKIO was running the
- while to fetch cocoa-nuts like a hired servant, and I remarked he
- was sent on these errands in preference even to the son. Plainly
- we have here no second husband; plainly we have the tolerated
- lover. Only, in the Marquesas, instead of carrying his lady's fan
- and mantle, he must turn his hand to do the husband's housework.
-
- The sight of Brother Michel's family estate led the conversation
- for some while upon the method and consequence of artificial
- kinship. Our curiosity became extremely whetted; the brother
- offered to have the whole of us adopted, and some two days later we
- became accordingly the children of Paaaeua, appointed chief of
- Atuona. I was unable to be present at the ceremony, which was
- primitively simple. The two Mrs. Stevensons and Mr. Osbourne,
- along with Paaaeua, his wife, and an adopted child of theirs, son
- of a shipwrecked Austrian, sat down to an excellent island meal, of
- which the principal and the only necessary dish was pig. A
- concourse watched them through the apertures of the house; but
- none, not even Brother Michel, might partake; for the meal was
- sacramental, and either creative or declaratory of the new
- relationship. In Tahiti things are not so strictly ordered; when
- Ori and I 'made brothers,' both our families sat with us at table,
- yet only he and I, who had eaten with intention were supposed to be
- affected by the ceremony. For the adoption of an infant I believe
- no formality to be required; the child is handed over by the
- natural parents, and grows up to inherit the estates of the
- adoptive. Presents are doubtless exchanged, as at all junctures of
- island life, social or international; but I never heard of any
- banquet - the child's presence at the daily board perhaps
- sufficing. We may find the rationale in the ancient Arabian idea
- that a common diet makes a common blood, with its derivative axiom
- that 'he is the father who gives the child its morning draught.'
- In the Marquesan practice, the sense would thus be evanescent; from
- the Tahitian, a mere survival, it will have entirely fled. An
- interesting parallel will probably occur to many of my readers.
-
- What is the nature of the obligation assumed at such a festival?
- It will vary with the characters of those engaged, and with the
- circumstances of the case. Thus it would be absurd to take too
- seriously our adoption at Atuona. On the part of Paaaeua it was an
- affair of social ambition; when he agreed to receive us in his
- family the man had not so much as seen us, and knew only that we
- were inestimably rich and travelled in a floating palace. We, upon
- our side, ate of his baked meats with no true ANIMUS AFFILIANDI,
- but moved by the single sentiment of curiosity. The affair was
- formal, and a matter of parade, as when in Europe sovereigns call
- each other cousin. Yet, had we stayed at Atuona, Paaaeua would
- have held himself bound to establish us upon his land, and to set
- apart young men for our service, and trees for our support. I have
- mentioned the Austrian. He sailed in one of two sister ships,
- which left the Clyde in coal; both rounded the Horn, and both, at
- several hundred miles of distance, though close on the same point
- of time, took fire at sea on the Pacific. One was destroyed; the
- derelict iron frame of the second, after long, aimless cruising,
- was at length recovered, refitted, and hails to-day from San
- Francisco. A boat's crew from one of these disasters reached,
- after great hardships, the isle of Hiva-oa. Some of these men
- vowed they would never again confront the chances of the sea; but
- alone of them all the Austrian has been exactly true to his
- engagement, remains where he landed, and designs to die where he
- has lived. Now, with such a man, falling and taking root among
- islanders, the processes described may be compared to a gardener's
- graft. He passes bodily into the native stock; ceases wholly to be
- alien; has entered the commune of the blood, shares the prosperity
- and consideration of his new family, and is expected to impart with
- the same generosity the fruits of his European skill and knowledge.
- It is this implied engagement that so frequently offends the
- ingrafted white. To snatch an immediate advantage - to get (let us
- say) a station for his store - he will play upon the native custom
- and become a son or a brother for the day, promising himself to
- cast down the ladder by which he shall have ascended, and repudiate
- the kinship so soon as it shall grow burdensome. And he finds
- there are two parties to the bargain. Perhaps his Polynesian
- relative is simple, and conceived the blood-bond literally; perhaps
- he is shrewd, and himself entered the covenant with a view to gain.
- And either way the store is ravaged, the house littered with lazy
- natives; and the richer the man grows, the more numerous, the more
- idle, and the more affectionate he finds his native relatives.
- Most men thus circumstanced contrive to buy or brutally manage to
- enforce their independence; but many vegetate without hope,
- strangled by parasites.
-
- We had no cause to blush with Brother Michel. Our new parents were
- kind, gentle, well-mannered, and generous in gifts; the wife was a
- most motherly woman, the husband a man who stood justly high with
- his employers. Enough has been said to show why Moipu should be
- deposed; and in Paaaeua the French had found a reputable
- substitute. He went always scrupulously dressed, and looked the
- picture of propriety, like a dark, handsome, stupid, and probably
- religious young man hot from a European funeral. In character he
- seemed the ideal of what is known as the good citizen. He wore
- gravity like an ornament. None could more nicely represent the
- desired character as an appointed chief, the outpost of
- civilisation and reform. And yet, were the French to go and native
- manners to revive, fancy beholds him crowned with old men's beards
- and crowding with the first to a man-eating festival. But I must
- not seem to be unjust to Paaaeua. His respectability went deeper
- than the skin; his sense of the becoming sometimes nerved him for
- unexpected rigours.
-
- One evening Captain Otis and Mr. Osbourne were on shore in the
- village. All was agog; dancing had begun; it was plain it was to
- be a night of festival, and our adventurers were overjoyed at their
- good fortune. A strong fall of rain drove them for shelter to the
- house of Paaaeua, where they were made welcome, wiled into a
- chamber, and shut in. Presently the rain took off, the fun was to
- begin in earnest, and the young bloods of Atuona came round the
- house and called to my fellow-travellers through the interstices of
- the wall. Late into the night the calls were continued and
- resumed, and sometimes mingled with taunts; late into the night the
- prisoners, tantalised by the noises of the festival, renewed their
- efforts to escape. But all was vain; right across the door lay
- that god-fearing householder, Paaaeua, feigning sleep; and my
- friends had to forego their junketing. In this incident, so
- delightfully European, we thought we could detect three strands of
- sentiment. In the first place, Paaaeua had a charge of souls:
- these were young men, and he judged it right to withhold them from
- the primrose path. Secondly, he was a public character, and it was
- not fitting that his guests should countenance a festival of which
- he disapproved. So might some strict clergyman at home address a
- worldly visitor: 'Go to the theatre if you like, but, by your
- leave, not from my house!' Thirdly, Paaaeua was a man jealous, and
- with some cause (as shall be shown) for jealousy; and the feasters
- were the satellites of his immediate rival, Moipu.
-
- For the adoption had caused much excitement in the village; it made
- the strangers popular. Paaaeua, in his difficult posture of
- appointed chief, drew strength and dignity from their alliance, and
- only Moipu and his followers were malcontent. For some reason
- nobody (except myself) appears to dislike Moipu. Captain Hart, who
- has been robbed and threatened by him; Father Orens, whom he has
- fired at, and repeatedly driven to the woods; my own family, and
- even the French officials - all seemed smitten with an
- irrepressible affection for the man. His fall had been made soft;
- his son, upon his death, was to succeed Paaaeua in the chieftaincy;
- and he lived, at the time of our visit, in the shoreward part of
- the village in a good house, and with a strong following of young
- men, his late braves and pot-hunters. In this society, the coming
- of the CASCO, the adoption, the return feast on board, and the
- presents exchanged between the whites and their new parents, were
- doubtless eagerly and bitterly canvassed. It was felt that a few
- years ago the honours would have gone elsewhere. In this unwonted
- business, in this reception of some hitherto undreamed-of and
- outlandish potentate - some Prester John or old Assaracus - a few
- years back it would have been the part of Moipu to play the hero
- and the host, and his young men would have accompanied and adorned
- the various celebrations as the acknowledged leaders of society.
- And now, by a malign vicissitude of fortune, Moipu must sit in his
- house quite unobserved; and his young men could but look in at the
- door while their rivals feasted. Perhaps M. Grevy felt a touch of
- bitterness towards his successor when he beheld him figure on the
- broad stage of the centenary of eighty-nine; the visit of the CASCO
- which Moipu had missed by so few years was a more unusual occasion
- in Atuona than a centenary in France; and the dethroned chief
- determined to reassert himself in the public eye.
-
- Mr. Osbourne had gone into Atuona photographing; the population of
- the village had gathered together for the occasion on the place
- before the church, and Paaaeua, highly delighted with this new
- appearance of his family, played the master of ceremonies. The
- church had been taken, with its jolly architect before the door;
- the nuns with their pupils; sundry damsels in the ancient and
- singularly unbecoming robes of tapa; and Father Orens in the midst
- of a group of his parishioners. I know not what else was in hand,
- when the photographer became aware of a sensation in the crowd,
- and, looking around, beheld a very noble figure of a man appear
- upon the margin of a thicket and stroll nonchalantly near. The
- nonchalance was visibly affected; it was plain he came there to
- arouse attention, and his success was instant. He was introduced;
- he was civil, he was obliging, he was always ineffably superior and
- certain of himself; a well-graced actor. It was presently
- suggested that he should appear in his war costume; he gracefully
- consented; and returned in that strange, inappropriate and ill-
- omened array (which very well became his handsome person) to strut
- in a circle of admirers, and be thenceforth the centre of
- photography. Thus had Moipu effected his introduction, as by
- accident, to the white strangers, made it a favour to display his
- finery, and reduced his rival to a secondary ROLE on the theatre of
- the disputed village. Paaaeua felt the blow; and, with a spirit
- which we never dreamed he could possess, asserted his priority. It
- was found impossible that day to get a photograph of Moipu alone;
- for whenever he stood up before the camera his successor placed
- himself unbidden by his side, and gently but firmly held to his
- position. The portraits of the pair, Jacob and Esau, standing
- shoulder to shoulder, one in his careful European dress, one in his
- barbaric trappings, figure the past and present of their island. A
- graveyard with its humble crosses would be the aptest symbol of the
- future.
-
- We are all impressed with the belief that Moipu had planned his
- campaign from the beginning to the end. It is certain that he lost
- no time in pushing his advantage. Mr. Osbourne was inveigled to
- his house; various gifts were fished out of an old sea-chest;
- Father Orens was called into service as interpreter, and Moipu
- formally proposed to 'make brothers' with Mata-Galahi - Glass-Eyes,
- - the not very euphonious name under which Mr. Osbourne passed in
- the Marquesas. The feast of brotherhood took place on board the
- CASCO. Paaaeua had arrived with his family, like a plain man; and
- his presents, which had been numerous, had followed one another, at
- intervals through several days. Moipu, as if to mark at every
- point the opposition, came with a certain feudal pomp, attended by
- retainers bearing gifts of all descriptions, from plumes of old
- men's beard to little, pious, Catholic engravings.
-
- I had met the man before this in the village, and detested him on
- sight; there was something indescribably raffish in his looks and
- ways that raised my gorge; and when man-eating was referred to, and
- he laughed a low, cruel laugh, part boastful, part bashful, like
- one reminded of some dashing peccadillo, my repugnance was mingled
- with nausea. This is no very human attitude, nor one at all
- becoming in a traveller. And, seen more privately, the man
- improved. Something negroid in character and face was still
- displeasing; but his ugly mouth became attractive when he smiled,
- his figure and bearing were certainly noble, and his eyes superb.
- In his appreciation of jams and pickles, in is delight in the
- reverberating mirrors of the dining cabin, and consequent endless
- repetition of Moipus and Mata-Galahis, he showed himself engagingly
- a child. And yet I am not sure; and what seemed childishness may
- have been rather courtly art. His manners struck me as beyond the
- mark; they were refined and caressing to the point of grossness,
- and when I think of the serene absent-mindedness with which he
- first strolled in upon our party, and then recall him running on
- hands and knees along the cabin sofas, pawing the velvet, dipping
- into the beds, and bleating commendatory 'MITAIS' with exaggerated
- emphasis, like some enormous over-mannered ape, I feel the more
- sure that both must have been calculated. And I sometimes wonder
- next, if Moipu were quite alone in this polite duplicity, and ask
- myself whether the CASCO were quite so much admired in the
- Marquesas as our visitors desired us to suppose.
-
- I will complete this sketch of an incurable cannibal grandee with
- two incongruous traits. His favourite morsel was the human hand,
- of which he speaks to-day with an ill-favoured lustfulness. And
- when he said good-bye to Mrs. Stevenson, holding her hand, viewing
- her with tearful eyes, and chanting his farewell improvisation in
- the falsetto of Marquesan high society, he wrote upon her mind a
- sentimental impression which I try in vain to share.
-
-
-
-
- PART II: THE PAUMOTUS
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I - THE DANGEROUS ARCHIPELAGO - ATOLLS AT A DISTANCE
-
-
-
- IN the early morning of 4th September a whale-boat manned by
- natives dragged us down the green lane of the anchorage and round
- the spouting promontory. On the shore level it was a hot,
- breathless, and yet crystal morning; but high overhead the hills of
- Atuona were all cowled in cloud, and the ocean-river of the trades
- streamed without pause. As we crawled from under the immediate
- shelter of the land, we reached at last the limit of their
- influence. The wind fell upon our sails in puffs, which
- strengthened and grew more continuous; presently the CASCO heeled
- down to her day's work; the whale-boat, quite outstripped, clung
- for a noisy moment to her quarter; the stipulated bread, rum, and
- tobacco were passed in; a moment more and the boat was in our wake,
- and our late pilots were cheering our departure.
-
- This was the more inspiriting as we were bound for scenes so
- different, and though on a brief voyage, yet for a new province of
- creation. That wide field of ocean, called loosely the South Seas,
- extends from tropic to tropic, and from perhaps 123 degrees W. to
- 150 degrees E., a parallelogram of one hundred degrees by forty-
- seven, where degrees are the most spacious. Much of it lies
- vacant, much is closely sown with isles, and the isles are of two
- sorts. No distinction is so continually dwelt upon in South Sea
- talk as that between the 'low' and the 'high' island, and there is
- none more broadly marked in nature. The Himalayas are not more
- different from the Sahara. On the one hand, and chiefly in groups
- of from eight to a dozen, volcanic islands rise above the sea; few
- reach an altitude of less than 4000 feet; one exceeds 13,000; their
- tops are often obscured in cloud, they are all clothed with various
- forests, all abound in food, and are all remarkable for picturesque
- and solemn scenery. On the other hand, we have the atoll; a thing
- of problematic origin and history, the reputed creature of an
- insect apparently unidentified; rudely annular in shape; enclosing
- a lagoon; rarely extending beyond a quarter of a mile at its chief
- width; often rising at its highest point to less than the stature
- of a man - man himself, the rat and the land crab, its chief
- inhabitants; not more variously supplied with plants; and offering
- to the eye, even when perfect, only a ring of glittering beach and
- verdant foliage, enclosing and enclosed by the blue sea.
-
- In no quarter are the atolls so thickly congregated, in none are
- they so varied in size from the greatest to the least, and in none
- is navigation so beset with perils, as in that archipelago that we
- were now to thread. The huge system of the trades is, for some
- reason, quite confounded by this multiplicity of reefs, the wind
- intermits, squalls are frequent from the west and south-west,
- hurricanes are known. The currents are, besides, inextricably
- intermixed; dead reckoning becomes a farce; the charts are not to
- be trusted; and such is the number and similarity of these islands
- that, even when you have picked one up, you may be none the wiser.
- The reputation of the place is consequently infamous; insurance
- offices exclude it from their field, and it was not without
- misgiving that my captain risked the CASCO in such waters. I
- believe, indeed, it is almost understood that yachts are to avoid
- this baffling archipelago; and it required all my instances - and
- all Mr. Otis's private taste for adventure - to deflect our course
- across its midst.
-
- For a few days we sailed with a steady trade, and a steady westerly
- current setting us to leeward; and toward sundown of the seventh it
- was supposed we should have sighted Takaroa, one of Cook's so-
- called King George Islands. The sun set; yet a while longer the
- old moon - semi-brilliant herself, and with a silver belly, which
- was her successor - sailed among gathering clouds; she, too,
- deserted us; stars of every degree of sheen, and clouds of every
- variety of form disputed the sub-lustrous night; and still we gazed
- in vain for Takaroa. The mate stood on the bowsprit, his tall grey
- figure slashing up and down against the stars, and still
-
-
- 'nihil astra praeter
- Vidit et undas.
-
-
- The rest of us were grouped at the port anchor davit, staring with
- no less assiduity, but with far less hope on the obscure horizon.
- Islands we beheld in plenty, but they were of 'such stuff as dreams
- are made on,' and vanished at a wink, only to appear in other
- places; and by and by not only islands, but refulgent and revolving
- lights began to stud the darkness; lighthouses of the mind or of
- the wearied optic nerve, solemnly shining and winking as we passed.
- At length the mate himself despaired, scrambled on board again from
- his unrestful perch, and announced that we had missed our
- destination. He was the only man of practice in these waters, our
- sole pilot, shipped for that end at Tai-o-hae. If he declared we
- had missed Takaroa, it was not for us to quarrel with the fact,
- but, if we could, to explain it. We had certainly run down our
- southing. Our canted wake upon the sea and our somewhat drunken-
- looking course upon the chart both testified with no less certainty
- to an impetuous westward current. We had no choice but to conclude
- we were again set down to leeward; and the best we could do was to
- bring the CASCO to the wind, keep a good watch, and expect morning.
-
- I slept that night, as was then my somewhat dangerous practice, on
- deck upon the cockpit bench. A stir at last awoke me, to see all
- the eastern heaven dyed with faint orange, the binnacle lamp
- already dulled against the brightness of the day, and the steersman
- leaning eagerly across the wheel. 'There it is, sir!' he cried,
- and pointed in the very eyeball of the dawn. For awhile I could
- see nothing but the bluish ruins of the morning bank, which lay far
- along the horizon, like melting icebergs. Then the sun rose,
- pierced a gap in these DEBRIS of vapours, and displayed an
- inconsiderable islet, flat as a plate upon the sea, and spiked with
- palms of disproportioned altitude.
-
- So far, so good. Here was certainly an atoll; and we were
- certainly got among the archipelago. But which? And where? The
- isle was too small for either Takaroa: in all our neighbourhood,
- indeed, there was none so inconsiderable, save only Tikei; and
- Tikei, one of Roggewein's so-called Pernicious Islands, seemed
- beside the question. At that rate, instead of drifting to the
- west, we must have fetched up thirty miles to windward. And how
- about the current? It had been setting us down, by observation,
- all these days: by the deflection of our wake, it should be
- setting us down that moment. When had it stopped? When had it
- begun again? and what kind of torrent was that which had swept us
- eastward in the interval? To these questions, so typical of
- navigation in that range of isles, I have no answer. Such were at
- least the facts; Tikei our island turned out to be; and it was our
- first experience of the dangerous archipelago, to make our landfall
- thirty miles out.
-
- The sight of Tikei, thrown direct against the splendour of the
- morning, robbed of all its colour, and deformed with
- disproportioned trees like bristles on a broom, had scarce prepared
- us to be much in love with atolls. Later the same day we saw under
- more fit conditions the island of Taiaro. LOST IN THE SEA is
- possibly the meaning of the name. And it was so we saw it; lost in
- blue sea and sky: a ring of white beach, green underwood, and
- tossing palms, gem-like in colour; of a fairy, of a heavenly
- prettiness. The surf ran all around it, white as snow, and broke
- at one point, far to seaward, on what seems an uncharted reef.
- There was no smoke, no sign of man; indeed, the isle is not
- inhabited, only visited at intervals. And yet a trader (Mr. Narii
- Salmon) was watching from the shore and wondering at the unexpected
- ship. I have spent since then long months upon low islands; I know
- the tedium of their undistinguished days; I know the burden of
- their diet. With whatever envy we may have looked from the deck on
- these green coverts, it was with a tenfold greater that Mr. Salmon
- and his comrades saw us steer, in our trim ship, to seaward.
-
- The night fell lovely in the extreme. After the moon went down,
- the heaven was a thing to wonder at for stars. And as I lay in the
- cockpit and looked upon the steersman I was haunted by Emerson's
- verses:
-
-
- 'And the lone seaman all the night
- Sails astonished among stars.'
-
-
- By this glittering and imperfect brightness, about four bells in
- the first watch we made our third atoll, Raraka. The low line of
- the isle lay straight along the sky; so that I was at first
- reminded of a towpath, and we seemed to be mounting some engineered
- and navigable stream. Presently a red star appeared, about the
- height and brightness of a danger signal, and with that my simile
- was changed; we seemed rather to skirt the embankment of a railway,
- and the eye began to look instinctively for the telegraph-posts,
- and the ear to expect the coming of a train. Here and there, but
- rarely, faint tree-tops broke the level. And the sound of the surf
- accompanied us, now in a drowsy monotone, now with a menacing
- swing.
-
- The isle lay nearly east and west, barring our advance on Fakarava.
- We must, therefore, hug the coast until we gained the western end,
- where, through a passage eight miles wide, we might sail southward
- between Raraka and the next isle, Kauehi. We had the wind free, a
- lightish air; but clouds of an inky blackness were beginning to
- arise, and at times it lightened - without thunder. Something, I
- know not what, continually set us up upon the island. We lay more
- and more to the nor'ard; and you would have thought the shore
- copied our manoeuvre and outsailed us. Once and twice Raraka headed
- us again - again, in the sea fashion, the quite innocent steersman
- was abused - and again the CASCO kept away. Had I been called on,
- with no more light than that of our experience, to draw the
- configuration of that island, I should have shown a series of bow-
- window promontories, each overlapping the other to the nor'ard, and
- the trend of the land from the south-east to the north-west, and
- behold, on the chart it lay near east and west in a straight line.
-
- We had but just repeated our manoeuvre and kept away - for not more
- than five minutes the railway embankment had been lost to view and
- the surf to hearing - when I was aware of land again, not only on
- the weather bow, but dead ahead. I played the part of the
- judicious landsman, holding my peace till the last moment; and
- presently my mariners perceived it for themselves.
-
- 'Land ahead!' said the steersman.
-
- 'By God, it's Kauehi!' cried the mate.
-
- And so it was. And with that I began to be sorry for
- cartographers. We were scarce doing three and a half; and they
- asked me to believe that (in five minutes) we had dropped an
- island, passed eight miles of open water, and run almost high and
- dry upon the next. But my captain was more sorry for himself to be
- afloat in such a labyrinth; laid the CASCO to, with the log line up
- and down, and sat on the stern rail and watched it till the
- morning. He had enough of night in the Paumotus.
-
- By daylight on the 9th we began to skirt Kauehi, and had now an
- opportunity to see near at hand the geography of atolls. Here and
- there, where it was high, the farther side loomed up; here and
- there the near side dipped entirely and showed a broad path of
- water into the lagoon; here and there both sides were equally
- abased, and we could look right through the discontinuous ring to
- the sea horizon on the south. Conceive, on a vast scale, the
- submerged hoop of the duck-hunter, trimmed with green rushes to
- conceal his head - water within, water without - you have the image
- of the perfect atoll. Conceive one that has been partly plucked of
- its rush fringe; you have the atoll of Kauehi. And for either
- shore of it at closer quarters, conceive the line of some old Roman
- highway traversing a wet morass, and here sunk out of view and
- there re-arising, crowned with a green tuft of thicket; only
- instead of the stagnant waters of a marsh, the live ocean now
- boiled against, now buried the frail barrier. Last night's
- impression in the dark was thus confirmed by day, and not
- corrected. We sailed indeed by a mere causeway in the sea, of
- nature's handiwork, yet of no greater magnitude than many of the
- works of man.
-
- The isle was uninhabited; it was all green brush and white sand,
- set in transcendently blue water; even the coco-palms were rare,
- though some of these completed the bright harmony of colour by
- hanging out a fan of golden yellow. For long there was no sign of
- life beyond the vegetable, and no sound but the continuous grumble
- of the surf. In silence and desertion these fair shores slipped
- past, and were submerged and rose again with clumps of thicket from
- the sea. And then a bird or two appeared, hovering and crying;
- swiftly these became more numerous, and presently, looking ahead,
- we were aware of a vast effervescence of winged life. In this
- place the annular isle was mostly under water, carrying here and
- there on its submerged line a wooded islet. Over one of these the
- birds hung and flew with an incredible density like that of gnats
- or hiving bees; the mass flashed white and black, and heaved and
- quivered, and the screaming of the creatures rose over the voice of
- the surf in a shrill clattering whirr. As you descend some inland
- valley a not dissimilar sound announces the nearness of a mill and
- pouring river. Some stragglers, as I said, came to meet our
- approach; a few still hung about the ship as we departed. The
- crying died away, the last pair of wings was left behind, and once
- more the low shores of Kauehi streamed past our eyes in silence
- like a picture. I supposed at the time that the birds lived, like
- ants or citizens, concentred where we saw them. I have been told
- since (I know not if correctly) that the whole isle, or much of it,
- is similarly peopled; and that the effervescence at a single spot
- would be the mark of a boat's crew of egg-hunters from one of the
- neighbouring inhabited atolls. So that here at Kauehi, as the day
- before at Taiaro, the CASCO sailed by under the fire of unsuspected
- eyes. And one thing is surely true, that even on these ribbons of
- land an army might lie hid and no passing mariner divine its
- presence.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II - FAKARAVA: AN ATOLL AT HAND
-
-
-
- BY a little before noon we were running down the coast of our
- destination, Fakarava: the air very light, the sea near smooth;
- though still we were accompanied by a continuous murmur from the
- beach, like the sound of a distant train. The isle is of a huge
- longitude, the enclosed lagoon thirty miles by ten or twelve, and
- the coral tow-path, which they call the land, some eighty or ninety
- miles by (possibly) one furlong. That part by which we sailed was
- all raised; the underwood excellently green, the topping wood of
- coco-palms continuous - a mark, if I had known it, of man's
- intervention. For once more, and once more unconsciously, we were
- within hail of fellow-creatures, and that vacant beach was but a
- pistol-shot from the capital city of the archipelago. But the life
- of an atoll, unless it be enclosed, passes wholly on the shores of
- the lagoon; it is there the villages are seated, there the canoes
- ply and are drawn up; and the beach of the ocean is a place
- accursed and deserted, the fit scene only for wizardry and
- shipwreck, and in the native belief a haunting ground of murderous
- spectres.
-
- By and by we might perceive a breach in the low barrier; the woods
- ceased; a glittering point ran into the sea, tipped with an emerald
- shoal the mark of entrance. As we drew near we met a little run of
- sea - the private sea of the lagoon having there its origin and
- end, and here, in the jaws of the gateway, trying vain conclusions
- with the more majestic heave of the Pacific. The CASCO scarce
- avowed a shock; but there are times and circumstances when these
- harbour mouths of inland basins vomit floods, deflecting, burying,
- and dismasting ships. For, conceive a lagoon perfectly sealed but
- in the one point, and that of merely navigable width; conceive the
- tide and wind to have heaped for hours together in that coral fold
- a superfluity of waters, and the tide to change and the wind fall -
- the open sluice of some great reservoirs at home will give an image
- of the unstemmable effluxion.
-
- We were scarce well headed for the pass before all heads were
- craned over the rail. For the water, shoaling under our board,
- became changed in a moment to surprising hues of blue and grey; and
- in its transparency the coral branched and blossomed, and the fish
- of the inland sea cruised visibly below us, stained and striped,
- and even beaked like parrots. I have paid in my time to view many
- curiosities; never one so curious as that first sight over the
- ship's rail in the lagoon of Fakarava. But let not the reader be
- deceived with hope. I have since entered, I suppose, some dozen
- atolls in different parts of the Pacific, and the experience has
- never been repeated. That exquisite hue and transparency of
- submarine day, and these shoals of rainbow fish, have not
- enraptured me again.
-
- Before we could raise our eyes from that engaging spectacle the
- schooner had slipped betwixt the pierheads of the reef, and was
- already quite committed to the sea within. The containing shores
- are so little erected, and the lagoon itself is so great, that, for
- the more part, it seemed to extend without a check to the horizon.
- Here and there, indeed, where the reef carried an inlet, like a
- signet-ring upon a finger, there would be a pencilling of palms;
- here and there, the green wall of wood ran solid for a length of
- miles; and on the port hand, under the highest grove of trees, a
- few houses sparkled white - Rotoava, the metropolitan settlement of
- the Paumotus. Hither we beat in three tacks, and came to an anchor
- close in shore, in the first smooth water since we had left San
- Francisco, five fathoms deep, where a man might look overboard all
- day at the vanishing cable, the coral patches, and the many-
- coloured fish.
-
- Fakarava was chosen to be the seat of Government from nautical
- considerations only. It is eccentrically situate; the productions,
- even for a low island, poor; the population neither many nor - for
- Low Islanders - industrious. But the lagoon has two good passages,
- one to leeward, one to windward, so that in all states of the wind
- it can be left and entered, and this advantage, for a government of
- scattered islands, was decisive. A pier of coral, landing-stairs,
- a harbour light upon a staff and pillar, and two spacious
- Government bungalows in a handsome fence, give to the northern end
- of Rotoava a great air of consequence. This is confirmed on the
- one hand by an empty prison, on the other by a gendarmerie pasted
- over with hand-bills in Tahitian, land-law notices from Papeete,
- and republican sentiments from Paris, signed (a little after date)
- 'Jules Grevy, PERIHIDENTE.' Quite at the far end a belfried
- Catholic chapel concludes the town; and between, on a smooth floor
- of white coral sand and under the breezy canopy of coco-palms, the
- houses of the natives stand irregularly scattered, now close on the
- lagoon for the sake of the breeze, now back under the palms for
- love of shadow.
-
- Not a soul was to be seen. But for the thunder of the surf on the
- far side, it seemed you might have heard a pin drop anywhere about
- that capital city. There was something thrilling in the unexpected
- silence, something yet more so in the unexpected sound. Here
- before us a sea reached to the horizon, rippling like an inland
- mere; and behold! close at our back another sea assaulted with
- assiduous fury the reverse of the position. At night the lantern
- was run up and lit a vacant pier. In one house lights were seen
- and voices heard, where the population (I was told) sat playing
- cards. A little beyond, from deep in the darkness of the palm-
- grove, we saw the glow and smelt the aromatic odour of a coal of
- cocoa-nut husk, a relic of the evening kitchen. Crickets sang;
- some shrill thing whistled in a tuft of weeds; and the mosquito
- hummed and stung. There was no other trace that night of man,
- bird, or insect in the isle. The moon, now three days old, and as
- yet but a silver crescent on a still visible sphere, shone through
- the palm canopy with vigorous and scattered lights. The alleys
- where we walked were smoothed and weeded like a boulevard; here and
- there were plants set out; here and there dusky cottages clustered
- in the shadow, some with verandahs. A public garden by night, a
- rich and fashionable watering-place in a by-season, offer sights
- and vistas not dissimilar. And still, on the one side, stretched
- the lapping mere, and from the other the deep sea still growled in
- the night. But it was most of all on board, in the dead hours,
- when I had been better sleeping, that the spell of Fakarava seized
- and held me. The moon was down. The harbour lantern and two of
- the greater planets drew vari-coloured wakes on the lagoon. From
- shore the cheerful watch-cry of cocks rang out at intervals above
- the organ-point of surf. And the thought of this depopulated
- capital, this protracted thread of annular island with its crest of
- coco-palms and fringe of breakers, and that tranquil inland sea
- that stretched before me till it touched the stars, ran in my head
- for hours with delight.
-
- So long as I stayed upon that isle these thoughts were constant. I
- lay down to sleep, and woke again with an unblunted sense of my
- surroundings. I was never weary of calling up the image of that
- narrow causeway, on which I had my dwelling, lying coiled like a
- serpent, tail to mouth, in the outrageous ocean, and I was never
- weary of passing - a mere quarter-deck parade - from the one side
- to the other, from the shady, habitable shores of the lagoon to the
- blinding desert and uproarious breakers of the opposite beach. The
- sense of insecurity in such a thread of residence is more than
- fanciful. Hurricanes and tidal waves over-leap these humble
- obstacles; Oceanus remembers his strength, and, where houses stood
- and palms flourished, shakes his white beard again over the barren
- coral. Fakarava itself has suffered; the trees immediately beyond
- my house were all of recent replantation; and Anaa is only now
- recovered from a heavier stroke. I knew one who was then dwelling
- in the isle. He told me that he and two ship captains walked to
- the sea beach. There for a while they viewed the on-coming
- breakers, till one of the captains clapped suddenly his hand before
- his eyes and cried aloud that he could endure no longer to behold
- them. This was in the afternoon; in the dark hours of the night
- the sea burst upon the island like a flood; the settlement was
- razed all but the church and presbytery; and, when day returned,
- the survivors saw themselves clinging in an abattis of uprooted
- coco-palms and ruined houses.
-
- Danger is but a small consideration. But men are more nicely
- sensible of a discomfort; and the atoll is a discomfortable home.
- There are some, and these probably ancient, where a deep soil has
- formed and the most valuable fruit-trees prosper. I have walked in
- one, with equal admiration and surprise, through a forest of huge
- breadfruits, eating bananas and stumbling among taro as I went.
- This was in the atoll of Namorik in the Marshall group, and stands
- alone in my experience. To give the opposite extreme, which is yet
- far more near the average, I will describe the soil and productions
- of Fakarava. The surface of that narrow strip is for the more part
- of broken coral lime-stone, like volcanic clinkers, and
- excruciating to the naked foot; in some atolls, I believe, not in
- Fakarava, it gives a fine metallic ring when struck. Here and
- there you come upon a bank of sand, exceeding fine and white, and
- these parts are the least productive. The plants (such as they
- are) spring from and love the broken coral, whence they grow with
- that wonderful verdancy that makes the beauty of the atoll from the
- sea. The coco-palm in particular luxuriates in that stern SOLUM,
- striking down his roots to the brackish, percolated water, and
- bearing his green head in the wind with every evidence of health
- and pleasure. And yet even the coco-palm must be helped in infancy
- with some extraneous nutriment, and through much of the low
- archipelago there is planted with each nut a piece of ship's
- biscuit and a rusty nail. The pandanus comes next in importance,
- being also a food tree; and he, too, does bravely. A green bush
- called MIKI runs everywhere; occasionally a purao is seen; and
- there are several useless weeds. According to M. Cuzent, the whole
- number of plants on an atoll such as Fakarava will scarce exceed,
- even if it reaches to, one score. Not a blade of grass appears;
- not a grain of humus, save when a sack or two has been imported to
- make the semblance of a garden; such gardens as bloom in cities on
- the window-sill. Insect life is sometimes dense; a cloud o'
- mosquitoes, and, what is far worse, a plague of flies blackening
- our food, has sometimes driven us from a meal on Apemama; and even
- in Fakarava the mosquitoes were a pest. The land crab may be seen
- scuttling to his hole, and at night the rats besiege the houses and
- the artificial gardens. The crab is good eating; possibly so is
- the rat; I have not tried. Pandanus fruit is made, in the
- Gilberts, into an agreeable sweetmeat, such as a man may trifle
- with at the end of a long dinner; for a substantial meal I have no
- use for it. The rest of the food-supply, in a destitute atoll such
- as Fakarava, can be summed up in the favourite jest of the
- archipelago - cocoa-nut beefsteak. Cocoa-nut green, cocoa-nut
- ripe, cocoa-nut germinated; cocoa-nut to eat and cocoa-nut to
- drink; cocoa-nut raw and cooked, cocoa-nut hot and cold - such is
- the bill of fare. And some of the entrees are no doubt delicious.
- The germinated nut, cooked in the shell and eaten with a spoon,
- forms a good pudding; cocoa-nut milk - the expressed juice of a
- ripe nut, not the water of a green one - goes well in coffee, and
- is a valuable adjunct in cookery through the South Seas; and cocoa-
- nut salad, if you be a millionaire, and can afford to eat the value
- of a field of corn for your dessert, is a dish to be remembered
- with affection. But when all is done there is a sameness, and the
- Israelites of the low islands murmur at their manna.
-
- The reader may think I have forgot the sea. The two beaches do
- certainly abound in life, and they are strangely different. In the
- lagoon the water shallows slowly on a bottom of the fine slimy
- sand, dotted with clumps of growing coral. Then comes a strip of
- tidal beach on which the ripples lap. In the coral clumps the
- great holy-water clam (TRIDACNA) grows plentifully; a little deeper
- lie the beds of the pearl-oyster and sail the resplendent fish that
- charmed us at our entrance; and these are all more or less
- vigorously coloured. But the other shells are white like lime, or
- faintly tinted with a little pink, the palest possible display;
- many of them dead besides, and badly rolled. On the ocean side, on
- the mounds of the steep beach, over all the width of the reef right
- out to where the surf is bursting, in every cranny, under every
- scattered fragment of the coral, an incredible plenty of marine
- life displays the most wonderful variety and brilliancy of hues.
- The reef itself has no passage of colour but is imitated by some
- shell. Purple and red and white, and green and yellow, pied and
- striped and clouded, the living shells wear in every combination
- the livery of the dead reef - if the reef be dead - so that the eye
- is continually baffled and the collector continually deceived. I
- have taken shells for stones and stones for shells, the one as
- often as the other. A prevailing character of the coral is to be
- dotted with small spots of red, and it is wonderful how many
- varieties of shell have adopted the same fashion and donned the
- disguise of the red spot. A shell I had found in plenty in the
- Marquesas I found here also unchanged in all things else, but there
- were the red spots. A lively little crab wore the same markings.
- The case of the hermit or soldier crab was more conclusive, being
- the result of conscious choice. This nasty little wrecker,
- scavenger, and squatter has learned the value of a spotted house;
- so it be of the right colour he will choose the smallest shard,
- tuck himself in a mere corner of a broken whorl, and go about the
- world half naked; but I never found him in this imperfect armour
- unless it was marked with the red spot.
-
- Some two hundred yards distant is the beach of the lagoon. Collect
- the shells from each, set them side by side, and you would suppose
- they came from different hemispheres; the one so pale, the other so
- brilliant; the one prevalently white, the other of a score of hues,
- and infected with the scarlet spot like a disease. This seems the
- more strange, since the hermit crabs pass and repass the island,
- and I have met them by the Residency well, which is about central,
- journeying either way. Without doubt many of the shells in the
- lagoon are dead. But why are they dead? Without doubt the living
- shells have a very different background set for imitation. But why
- are these so different? We are only on the threshold of the
- mysteries.
-
- Either beach, I have said, abounds with life. On the sea-side and
- in certain atolls this profusion of vitality is even shocking: the
- rock under foot is mined with it. I have broken off - notably in
- Funafuti and Arorai - great lumps of ancient weathered rock that
- rang under my blows like iron, and the fracture has been full of
- pendent worms as long as my hand, as thick as a child's finger, of
- a slightly pinkish white, and set as close as three or even four to
- the square inch. Even in the lagoon, where certain shell-fish seem
- to sicken, others (it is notorious) prosper exceedingly and make
- the riches of these islands. Fish, too, abound; the lagoon is a
- closed fish-pond, such as might rejoice the fancy of an abbot;
- sharks swarm there, and chiefly round the passages, to feast upon
- this plenty, and you would suppose that man had only to prepare his
- angle. Alas! it is not so. Of these painted fish that came in
- hordes about the entering CASCO, some bore poisonous spines, and
- others were poisonous if eaten. The stranger must refrain, or take
- his chance of painful and dangerous sickness. The native, on his
- own isle, is a safe guide; transplant him to the next, and he is
- helpless as yourself. For it is a question both of time and place.
- A fish caught in a lagoon may be deadly; the same fish caught the
- same day at sea, and only a few hundred yards without the passage,
- will be wholesome eating: in a neighbouring isle perhaps the case
- will be reversed; and perhaps a fortnight later you shall be able
- to eat of them indifferently from within and from without.
- According to the natives, these bewildering vicissitudes are ruled
- by the movement of the heavenly bodies. The beautiful planet Venus
- plays a great part in all island tales and customs; and among other
- functions, some of them more awful, she regulates the season of
- good fish. With Venus in one phase, as we had her, certain fish
- were poisonous in the lagoon: with Venus in another, the same fish
- was harmless and a valued article of diet. White men explain these
- changes by the phases of the coral.
-
- It adds a last touch of horror to the thought of this precarious
- annular gangway in the sea, that even what there is of it is not of
- honest rock, but organic, part alive, part putrescent; even the
- clean sea and the bright fish about it poisoned, the most stubborn
- boulder burrowed in by worms, the lightest dust venomous as an
- apothecary's drugs.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III - A HOUSE TO LET IN A LOW ISLAND
-
-
-
- NEVER populous, it was yet by a chapter of accidents that I found
- the island so deserted that no sound of human life diversified the
- hours; that we walked in that trim public garden of a town, among
- closed houses, without even a lodging-bill in a window to prove
- some tenancy in the back quarters; and, when we visited the
- Government bungalow, that Mr. Donat, acting Vice-Resident, greeted
- us alone, and entertained us with cocoa-nut punches in the Sessions
- Hall and seat of judgment of that widespread archipelago, our
- glasses standing arrayed with summonses and census returns. The
- unpopularity of a late Vice-Resident had begun the movement of
- exodus, his native employes resigning court appointments and
- retiring each to his own coco-patch in the remoter districts of the
- isle. Upon the back of that, the Governor in Papeete issued a
- decree: All land in the Paumotus must be defined and registered by
- a certain date. Now, the folk of the archipelago are half nomadic;
- a man can scarce be said to belong to a particular atoll; he
- belongs to several, perhaps holds a stake and counts cousinship in
- half a score; and the inhabitants of Rotoava in particular, man,
- woman, and child, and from the gendarme to the Mormon prophet and
- the schoolmaster, owned - I was going to say land - owned at least
- coral blocks and growing coco-palms in some adjacent isle. Thither
- - from the gendarme to the babe in arms, the pastor followed by his
- flock, the schoolmaster carrying along with him his scholars, and
- the scholars with their books and slates - they had taken ship some
- two days previous to our arrival, and were all now engaged
- disputing boundaries. Fancy overhears the shrillness of their
- disputation mingle with the surf and scatter sea-fowl. It was
- admirable to observe the completeness of their flight, like that of
- hibernating birds; nothing left but empty houses, like old nests to
- be reoccupied in spring; and even the harmless necessary dominie
- borne with them in their transmigration. Fifty odd set out, and
- only seven, I was informed, remained. But when I made a feast on
- board the CASCO, more than seven, and nearer seven times seven,
- appeared to be my guests. Whence they appeared, how they were
- summoned, whither they vanished when the feast was eaten, I have no
- guess. In view of Low Island tales, and that awful frequentation
- which makes men avoid the seaward beaches of an atoll, some two
- score of those that ate with us may have returned, for the
- occasion, from the kingdom of the dead.
-
- It was this solitude that put it in our minds to hire a house, and
- become, for the time being, indwellers of the isle - a practice I
- have ever since, when it was possible, adhered to. Mr. Donat
- placed us, with that intent, under the convoy of one Taniera
- Mahinui, who combined the incongruous characters of catechist and
- convict. The reader may smile, but I affirm he was well qualified
- for either part. For that of convict, first of all, by a good
- substantial felony, such as in all lands casts the perpetrator in
- chains and dungeons. Taniera was a man of birth - the chief a
- while ago, as he loved to tell, of a district in Anaa of 800 souls.
- In an evil hour it occurred to the authorities in Papeete to charge
- the chiefs with the collection of the taxes. It is a question if
- much were collected; it is certain that nothing was handed on; and
- Taniera, who had distinguished himself by a visit to Papeete and
- some high living in restaurants, was chosen for the scapegoat. The
- reader must understand that not Taniera but the authorities in
- Papeete were first in fault. The charge imposed was
- disproportioned. I have not yet heard of any Polynesian capable of
- such a burden; honest and upright Hawaiians - one in particular,
- who was admired even by the whites as an inflexible magistrate -
- have stumbled in the narrow path of the trustee. And Taniera, when
- the pinch came, scorned to denounce accomplices; others had shared
- the spoil, he bore the penalty alone. He was condemned in five
- years. The period, when I had the pleasure of his friendship, was
- not yet expired; he still drew prison rations, the sole and not
- unwelcome reminder of his chains, and, I believe, looked forward to
- the date of his enfranchisement with mere alarm. For he had no
- sense of shame in the position; complained of nothing but the
- defective table of his place of exile; regretted nothing but the
- fowls and eggs and fish of his own more favoured island. And as
- for his parishioners, they did not think one hair the less of him.
- A schoolboy, mulcted in ten thousand lines of Greek and dwelling
- sequestered in the dormitories, enjoys unabated consideration from
- his fellows. So with Taniera: a marked man, not a dishonoured;
- having fallen under the lash of the unthinkable gods; a Job,
- perhaps, or say a Taniera in the den of lions. Songs are likely
- made and sung about this saintly Robin Hood. On the other hand, he
- was even highly qualified for his office in the Church; being by
- nature a grave, considerate, and kindly man; his face rugged and
- serious, his smile bright; the master of several trades, a builder
- both of boats and houses; endowed with a fine pulpit voice; endowed
- besides with such a gift of eloquence that at the grave of the late
- chief of Fakarava he set all the assistants weeping. I never met a
- man of a mind more ecclesiastical; he loved to dispute and to
- inform himself of doctrine and the history of sects; and when I
- showed him the cuts in a volume of Chambers's ENCYCLOPAEDIA -
- except for one of an ape - reserved his whole enthusiasm for
- cardinals' hats, censers, candlesticks, and cathedrals. Methought
- when he looked upon the cardinal's hat a voice said low in his ear:
- 'Your foot is on the ladder.'
-
- Under the guidance of Taniera we were soon installed in what I
- believe to have been the best-appointed private house in Fakarava.
- It stood just beyond the church in an oblong patch of cultivation.
- More than three hundred sacks of soil were imported from Tahiti for
- the Residency garden; and this must shortly be renewed, for the
- earth blows away, sinks in crevices of the coral, and is sought for
- at last in vain. I know not how much earth had gone to the garden
- of my villa; some at least, for an alley of prosperous bananas ran
- to the gate, and over the rest of the enclosure, which was covered
- with the usual clinker-like fragments of smashed coral, not only
- coco-palms and mikis but also fig-trees flourished, all of a
- delicious greenness. Of course there was no blade of grass. In
- front a picket fence divided us from the white road, the palm-
- fringed margin of the lagoon, and the lagoon itself, reflecting
- clouds by day and stars by night. At the back, a bulwark of
- uncemented coral enclosed us from the narrow belt of bush and the
- nigh ocean beach where the seas thundered, the roar and wash of
- them still humming in the chambers of the house.
-
- This itself was of one story, verandahed front and back. It
- contained three rooms, three sewing-machines, three sea-chests,
- chairs, tables, a pair of beds, a cradle, a double-barrelled gun, a
- pair of enlarged coloured photographs, a pair of coloured prints
- after Wilkie and Mulready, and a French lithograph with the legend:
- 'LE BRIGADE DU GENERAL LEPASSET BRULANT SON DRAPEAU DEVANT METZ.'
- Under the stilts of the house a stove was rusting, till we drew it
- forth and put it in commission. Not far off was the burrow in the
- coral whence we supplied ourselves with brackish water. There was
- live stock, besides, on the estate - cocks and hens and a brace of
- ill-regulated cats, whom Taniera came every morning with the sun to
- feed on grated cocoa-nut. His voice was our regular reveille,
- ringing pleasantly about the garden: 'Pooty - pooty - poo - poo -
- poo!'
-
- Far as we were from the public offices, the nearness of the chapel
- made our situation what is called eligible in advertisements, and
- gave us a side look on some native life. Every morning, as soon as
- he had fed the fowls, Taniera set the bell agoing in the small
- belfry; and the faithful, who were not very numerous, gathered to
- prayers. I was once present: it was the Lord's day, and seven
- females and eight males composed the congregation. A woman played
- precentor, starting with a longish note; the catechist joined in
- upon the second bar; and then the faithful in a body. Some had
- printed hymn-books which they followed; some of the rest filled up
- with 'eh - eh - eh,' the Paumotuan tol-de-rol. After the hymn, we
- had an antiphonal prayer or two; and then Taniera rose from the
- front bench, where he had been sitting in his catechist's robes,
- passed within the altar-rails, opened his Tahitian Bible, and began
- to preach from notes. I understood one word - the name of God; but
- the preacher managed his voice with taste, used rare and expressive
- gestures, and made a strong impression of sincerity. The plain
- service, the vernacular Bible, the hymn-tunes mostly on an English
- pattern - 'God save the Queen,' I was informed, a special
- favourite, - all, save some paper flowers upon the altar, seemed
- not merely but austerely Protestant. It is thus the Catholics have
- met their low island proselytes half-way.
-
- Taniera had the keys of our house; it was with him I made my
- bargain, if that could be called a bargain in which all was
- remitted to my generosity; it was he who fed the cats and poultry,
- he who came to call and pick a meal with us like an acknowledged
- friend; and we long fondly supposed he was our landlord. This
- belief was not to bear the test of experience; and, as my chapter
- has to relate, no certainty succeeded it.
-
- We passed some days of airless quiet and great heat; shell-
- gatherers were warned from the ocean beach, where sunstroke waited
- them from ten till four; the highest palm hung motionless, there
- was no voice audible but that of the sea on the far side. At last,
- about four of a certain afternoon, long cat's-paws flawed the face
- of the lagoon; and presently in the tree-tops there awoke the
- grateful bustle of the trades, and all the houses and alleys of the
- island were fanned out. To more than one enchanted ship, that had
- lain long becalmed in view of the green shore, the wind brought
- deliverance; and by daylight on the morrow a schooner and two
- cutters lay moored in the port of Rotoava. Not only in the outer
- sea, but in the lagoon itself, a certain traffic woke with the
- reviving breeze; and among the rest one Francois, a half-blood, set
- sail with the first light in his own half-decked cutter. He had
- held before a court appointment; being, I believe, the Residency
- sweeper-out. Trouble arising with the unpopular Vice-Resident, he
- had thrown his honours down, and fled to the far parts of the atoll
- to plant cabbages - or at least coco-palms. Thence he was now
- driven by such need as even a Cincinnatus must acknowledge, and
- fared for the capital city, the seat of his late functions, to
- exchange half a ton of copra for necessary flour. And here, for a
- while, the story leaves to tell of his voyaging.
-
- It must tell, instead, of our house, where, toward seven at night,
- the catechist came suddenly in with his pleased air of being
- welcome; armed besides with a considerable bunch of keys. These he
- proceeded to try on the sea-chests, drawing each in turn from its
- place against the wall. Heads of strangers appeared in the doorway
- and volunteered suggestions. All in vain. Either they were the
- wrong keys or the wrong boxes, or the wrong man was trying them.
- For a little Taniera fumed and fretted; then had recourse to the
- more summary method of the hatchet; one of the chests was broken
- open, and an armful of clothing, male and female, baled out and
- handed to the strangers on the verandah.
-
- These were Francois, his wife, and their child. About eight a.m.,
- in the midst of the lagoon, their cutter had capsized in jibbing.
- They got her righted, and though she was still full of water put
- the child on board. The mainsail had been carried away, but the
- jib still drew her sluggishly along, and Francois and the woman
- swam astern and worked the rudder with their hands. The cold was
- cruel; the fatigue, as time went on, became excessive; and in that
- preserve of sharks, fear hunted them. Again and again, Francois,
- the half-breed, would have desisted and gone down; but the woman,
- whole blood of an amphibious race, still supported him with
- cheerful words. I am reminded of a woman of Hawaii who swam with
- her husband, I dare not say how many miles, in a high sea, and came
- ashore at last with his dead body in her arms. It was about five
- in the evening, after nine hours' swimming, that Francois and his
- wife reached land at Rotoava. The gallant fight was won, and
- instantly the more childish side of native character appears. They
- had supped, and told and retold their story, dripping as they came;
- the flesh of the woman, whom Mrs. Stevenson helped to shift, was
- cold as stone; and Francois, having changed to a dry cotton shirt
- and trousers, passed the remainder of the evening on my floor and
- between open doorways, in a thorough draught. Yet Francois, the
- son of a French father, speaks excellent French himself and seems
- intelligent.
-
- It was our first idea that the catechist, true to his evangelical
- vocation, was clothing the naked from his superfluity. Then it
- came out that Francois was but dealing with his own. The clothes
- were his, so was the chest, so was the house. Francois was in fact
- the landlord. Yet you observe he had hung back on the verandah
- while Taniera tried his 'prentice hand upon the locks: and even
- now, when his true character appeared, the only use he made of the
- estate was to leave the clothes of his family drying on the fence.
- Taniera was still the friend of the house, still fed the poultry,
- still came about us on his daily visits, Francois, during the
- remainder of his stay, holding bashfully aloof. And there was
- stranger matter. Since Francois had lost the whole load of his
- cutter, the half ton of copra, an axe, bowls, knives, and clothes -
- since he had in a manner to begin the world again, and his
- necessary flour was not yet bought or paid for - I proposed to
- advance him what he needed on the rent. To my enduring amazement
- he refused, and the reason he gave - if that can be called a reason
- which but darkens counsel - was that Taniera was his friend. His
- friend, you observe; not his creditor. I inquired into that, and
- was assured that Taniera, an exile in a strange isle, might
- possibly be in debt himself, but certainly was no man's creditor.
-
- Very early one morning we were awakened by a bustling presence in
- the yard, and found our camp had been surprised by a tall, lean old
- native lady, dressed in what were obviously widow's weeds. You
- could see at a glance she was a notable woman, a housewife, sternly
- practical, alive with energy, and with fine possibilities of
- temper. Indeed, there was nothing native about her but the skin;
- and the type abounds, and is everywhere respected, nearer home. It
- did us good to see her scour the grounds, examining the plants and
- chickens; watering, feeding, trimming them; taking angry, purpose-
- like possession. When she neared the house our sympathy abated;
- when she came to the broken chest I wished I were elsewhere. We
- had scarce a word in common; but her whole lean body spoke for her
- with indignant eloquence. 'My chest!' it cried, with a stress on
- the possessive. 'My chest - broken open! This is a fine state of
- things!' I hastened to lay the blame where it belonged - on
- Francois and his wife - and found I had made things worse instead
- of better. She repeated the names at first with incredulity, then
- with despair. A while she seemed stunned, next fell to
- disembowelling the box, piling the goods on the floor, and visibly
- computing the extent of Francois's ravages; and presently after she
- was observed in high speech with Taniera, who seemed to hang an ear
- like one reproved.
-
- Here, then, by all known marks, should be my land-lady at last;
- here was every character of the proprietor fully developed. Should
- I not approach her on the still depending question of my rent? I
- carried the point to an adviser. 'Nonsense!' he cried. 'That's
- the old woman, the mother. It doesn't belong to her. I believe
- that's the man the house belongs to,' and he pointed to one of the
- coloured photographs on the wall. On this I gave up all desire of
- understanding; and when the time came for me to leave, in the
- judgment-hall of the archipelago, and with the awful countenance of
- the acting Governor, I duly paid my rent to Taniera. He was
- satisfied, and so was I. But what had he to do with it? Mr.
- Donat, acting magistrate and a man of kindred blood, could throw no
- light upon the mystery; a plain private person, with a taste for
- letters, cannot be expected to do more.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV - TRAITS AND SECTS IN THE PAUMOTUS
-
-
-
- THE MOST careless reader must have remarked a change of air since
- the Marquesas. The house, crowded with effects, the bustling
- housewife counting her possessions, the serious, indoctrinated
- island pastor, the long fight for life in the lagoon: here are
- traits of a new world. I read in a pamphlet (I will not give the
- author's name) that the Marquesan especially resembles the
- Paumotuan. I should take the two races, though so near in
- neighbourhood, to be extremes of Polynesian diversity. The
- Marquesan is certainly the most beautiful of human races, and one
- of the tallest - the Paumotuan averaging a good inch shorter, and
- not even handsome; the Marquesan open-handed, inert, insensible to
- religion, childishly self-indulgent - the Paumotuan greedy, hardy,
- enterprising, a religious disputant, and with a trace of the
- ascetic character.
-
- Yet a few years ago, and the people of the archipelago were crafty
- savages. Their isles might be called sirens' isles, not merely
- from the attraction they exerted on the passing mariner, but from
- the perils that awaited him on shore. Even to this day, in certain
- outlying islands, danger lingers; and the civilized Paumotuan
- dreads to land and hesitates to accost his backward brother. But,
- except in these, to-day the peril is a memory. When our generation
- were yet in the cradle and playroom it was still a living fact.
- Between 1830 and 1840, Hao, for instance, was a place of the most
- dangerous approach, where ships were seized and crews kidnapped.
- As late as 1856, the schooner SARAH ANN sailed from Papeete and was
- seen no more. She had women on board, and children, the captain's
- wife, a nursemaid, a baby, and the two young sons of a Captain
- Steven on their way to the mainland for schooling. All were
- supposed to have perished in a squall. A year later, the captain
- of the JULIA, coasting along the island variously called Bligh,
- Lagoon, and Tematangi saw armed natives follow the course of his
- schooner, clad in many-coloured stuffs. Suspicion was at once
- aroused; the mother of the lost children was profuse of money; and
- one expedition having found the place deserted, and returned
- content with firing a few shots, she raised and herself accompanied
- another. None appeared to greet or to oppose them; they roamed a
- while among abandoned huts and empty thickets; then formed two
- parties and set forth to beat, from end to end, the pandanus jungle
- of the island. One man remained alone by the landing-place -
- Teina, a chief of Anaa, leader of the armed natives who made the
- strength of the expedition. Now that his comrades were departed
- this way and that, on their laborious exploration, the silence fell
- profound; and this silence was the ruin of the islanders. A sound
- of stones rattling caught the ear of Teina. He looked, thinking to
- perceive a crab, and saw instead the brown hand of a human being
- issue from a fissure in the ground. A shout recalled the search
- parties and announced their doom to the buried caitiffs. In the
- cave below, sixteen were found crouching among human bones and
- singular and horrid curiosities. One was a head of golden hair,
- supposed to be a relic of the captain's wife; another was half of
- the body of a European child, sun-dried and stuck upon a stick,
- doubtless with some design of wizardry.
-
- The Paumotuan is eager to be rich. He saves, grudges, buries
- money, fears not work. For a dollar each, two natives passed the
- hours of daylight cleaning our ship's copper. It was strange to
- see them so indefatigable and so much at ease in the water -
- working at times with their pipes lighted, the smoker at times
- submerged and only the glowing bowl above the surface; it was
- stranger still to think they were next congeners to the incapable
- Marquesan. But the Paumotuan not only saves, grudges, and works,
- he steals besides; or, to be more precise, he swindles. He will
- never deny a debt, he only flees his creditor. He is always keen
- for an advance; so soon as he has fingered it he disappears. He
- knows your ship; so soon as it nears one island, he is off to
- another. You may think you know his name; he has already changed
- it. Pursuit in that infinity of isles were fruitless. The result
- can be given in a nutshell. It has been actually proposed in a
- Government report to secure debts by taking a photograph of the
- debtor; and the other day in Papeete credits on the Paumotus to the
- amount of sixteen thousand pounds were sold for less than forty -
- QUATRE CENT MILLE FRANCS POUR MOINS DE MILLE FRANCS. Even so, the
- purchase was thought hazardous; and only the man who made it and
- who had special opportunities could have dared to give so much.
-
- The Paumotuan is sincerely attached to those of his own blood and
- household. A touching affection sometimes unites wife and husband.
- Their children, while they are alive, completely rule them; after
- they are dead, their bones or their mummies are often jealously
- preserved and carried from atoll to atoll in the wanderings of the
- family. I was told there were many houses in Fakarava with the
- mummy of a child locked in a sea-chest; after I heard it, I would
- glance a little jealously at those by my own bed; in that cupboard,
- also, it was possible there was a tiny skeleton.
-
- The race seems in a fair way to survive. From fifteen islands,
- whose rolls I had occasion to consult, I found a proportion of 59
- births to 47 deaths for 1887. Dropping three out of the fifteen,
- there remained for the other twelve the comfortable ratio of 50
- births to 32 deaths. Long habits of hardship and activity
- doubtless explain the contrast with Marquesan figures. But the
- Paumotuan displays, besides, a certain concern for health and the
- rudiments of a sanitary discipline. Public talk with these free-
- spoken people plays the part of the Contagious Diseases Act; in-
- comers to fresh islands anxiously inquire if all be well; and
- syphilis, when contracted, is successfully treated with indigenous
- herbs. Like their neighbours of Tahiti, from whom they have
- perhaps imbibed the error, they regard leprosy with comparative
- indifference, elephantiasis with disproportionate fear. But,
- unlike indeed to the Tahitian, their alarm puts on the guise of
- self-defence. Any one stricken with this painful and ugly malady
- is confined to the ends of villages, denied the use of paths and
- highways, and condemned to transport himself between his house and
- coco-patch by water only, his very footprint being held infectious.
- Fe'efe'e, being a creature of marshes and the sequel of malarial
- fever, is not original in atolls. On the single isle of Makatea,
- where the lagoon is now a marsh, the disease has made a home. Many
- suffer; they are excluded (if Mr. Wilmot be right) from much of the
- comfort of society; and it is believed they take a secret
- vengeance. The defections of the sick are considered highly
- poisonous. Early in the morning, it is narrated, aged and
- malicious persons creep into the sleeping village, and stealthily
- make water at the doors of the houses of young men. Thus they
- propagate disease; thus they breathe on and obliterate comeliness
- and health, the objects of their envy. Whether horrid fact or more
- abominable legend, it equally depicts that something bitter and
- energetic which distinguishes Paumotuan man.
-
- The archipelago is divided between two main religions, Catholic and
- Mormon. They front each other proudly with a false air of
- permanence; yet are but shapes, their membership in a perpetual
- flux. The Mormon attends mass with devotion: the Catholic sits
- attentive at a Mormon sermon, and to-morrow each may have
- transferred allegiance. One man had been a pillar of the Church of
- Rome for fifteen years; his wife dying, he decided that must be a
- poor religion that could not save a man his wife, and turned
- Mormon. According to one informant, Catholicism was the more
- fashionable in health, but on the approach of sickness it was
- judged prudent to secede. As a Mormon, there were five chances out
- of six you might recover; as a Catholic, your hopes were small; and
- this opinion is perhaps founded on the comfortable rite of unction.
-
- We all know what Catholics are, whether in the Paumotus or at home.
- But the Paumotuan Mormon seemed a phenomenon apart. He marries but
- the one wife, uses the Protestant Bible, observes Protestant forms
- of worship, forbids the use of liquor and tobacco, practises adult
- baptism by immersion, and after every public sin, rechristens the
- backslider. I advised with Mahinui, whom I found well informed in
- the history of the American Mormons, and he declared against the
- least connection. 'POUR MOI,' said he, with a fine charity, 'LES
- MORMONS ICI UN PETIT CATHOLIQUES.' Some months later I had an
- opportunity to consult an orthodox fellow-countryman, an old
- dissenting Highlander, long settled in Tahiti, but still breathing
- of the heather of Tiree. 'Why do they call themselves Mormons?' I
- asked. 'My dear, and that is my question!' he exclaimed. 'For by
- all that I can hear of their doctrine, I have nothing to say
- against it, and their life, it is above reproach.' And for all
- that, Mormons they are, but of the earlier sowing: the so-called
- Josephites, the followers of Joseph Smith, the opponents of Brigham
- Young.
-
- Grant, then, the Mormons to be Mormons. Fresh points at once
- arise: What are the Israelites? and what the Kanitus? For a long
- while back the sect had been divided into Mormons proper and so-
- called Israelites, I never could hear why. A few years since there
- came a visiting missionary of the name of Williams, who made an
- excellent collection, and retired, leaving fresh disruption
- imminent. Something irregular (as I was told) in his way of
- 'opening the service' had raised partisans and enemies; the church
- was once more rent asunder; and a new sect, the Kanitu, issued from
- the division. Since then Kanitus and Israelites, like the
- Cameronians and the United Presbyterians, have made common cause;
- and the ecclesiastical history of the Paumotus is, for the moment,
- uneventful. There will be more doing before long, and these isles
- bid fair to be the Scotland of the South. Two things I could never
- learn. The nature of the innovations of the Rev. Mr. Williams none
- would tell me, and of the meaning of the name Kanitu none had a
- guess. It was not Tahitian, it was not Marquesan; it formed no
- part of that ancient speech of the Paumotus, now passing swiftly
- into obsolescence. One man, a priest, God bless him! said it was
- the Latin for a little dog. I have found it since as the name of a
- god in New Guinea; it must be a bolder man than I who should hint
- at a connection. Here, then, is a singular thing: a brand-new
- sect, arising by popular acclamation, and a nonsense word invented
- for its name.
-
- The design of mystery seems obvious, and according to a very
- intelligent observer, Mr. Magee of Mangareva, this element of the
- mysterious is a chief attraction of the Mormon Church. It enjoys
- some of the status of Freemasonry at home, and there is for the
- convert some of the exhilaration of adventure. Other attractions
- are certainly conjoined. Perpetual rebaptism, leading to a
- succession of baptismal feasts, is found, both from the social and
- the spiritual side, a pleasing feature. More important is the fact
- that all the faithful enjoy office; perhaps more important still,
- the strictness of the discipline. 'The veto on liquor,' said Mr.
- Magee, 'brings them plenty members.' There is no doubt these
- islanders are fond of drink, and no doubt they refrain from the
- indulgence; a bout on a feast-day, for instance, may be followed by
- a week or a month of rigorous sobriety. Mr. Wilmot attributes this
- to Paumotuan frugality and the love of hoarding; it goes far
- deeper. I have mentioned that I made a feast on board the CASCO.
- To wash down ship's bread and jam, each guest was given the choice
- of rum or syrup, and out of the whole number only one man voted -
- in a defiant tone, and amid shouts of mirth - for 'Trum'! This was
- in public. I had the meanness to repeat the experiment, whenever I
- had a chance, within the four walls of my house; and three at
- least, who had refused at the festival, greedily drank rum behind a
- door. But there were others thoroughly consistent. I said the
- virtues of the race were bourgeois and puritan; and how bourgeois
- is this! how puritanic! how Scottish! and how Yankee! - the
- temptation, the resistance, the public hypocritical conformity, the
- Pharisees, the Holy Willies, and the true disciples. With such a
- people the popularity of an ascetic Church appears legitimate; in
- these strict rules, in this perpetual supervision, the weak find
- their advantage, the strong a certain pleasure; and the doctrine of
- rebaptism, a clean bill and a fresh start, will comfort many
- staggering professors.
-
- There is yet another sect, or what is called a sect - no doubt
- improperly - that of the Whistlers. Duncan Cameron, so clear in
- favour of the Mormons, was no less loud in condemnation of the
- Whistlers. Yet I do not know; I still fancy there is some
- connection, perhaps fortuitous, probably disavowed. Here at least
- are some doings in the house of an Israelite clergyman (or prophet)
- in the island of Anaa, of which I am equally sure that Duncan would
- disclaim and the Whistlers hail them for an imitation of their own.
- My informant, a Tahitian and a Catholic, occupied one part of the
- house; the prophet and his family lived in the other. Night after
- night the Mormons, in the one end, held their evening sacrifice of
- song; night after night, in the other, the wife of the Tahitian lay
- awake and listened to their singing with amazement. At length she
- could contain herself no longer, woke her husband, and asked him
- what he heard. 'I hear several persons singing hymns,' said he.
- 'Yes,' she returned, 'but listen again! Do you not hear something
- supernatural?' His attention thus directed, he was aware of a
- strange buzzing voice - and yet he declared it was beautiful -
- which justly accompanied the singers. The next day he made
- inquiries. 'It is a spirit,' said the prophet, with entire
- simplicity, 'which has lately made a practice of joining us at
- family worship.' It did not appear the thing was visible, and like
- other spirits raised nearer home in these degenerate days, it was
- rudely ignorant, at first could only buzz, and had only learned of
- late to bear a part correctly in the music.
-
- The performances of the Whistlers are more business-like. Their
- meetings are held publicly with open doors, all being 'cordially
- invited to attend.' The faithful sit about the room - according to
- one informant, singing hymns; according to another, now singing and
- now whistling; the leader, the wizard - let me rather say, the
- medium - sits in the midst, enveloped in a sheet and silent; and
- presently, from just above his head, or sometimes from the midst of
- the roof, an aerial whistling proceeds, appalling to the
- inexperienced. This, it appears, is the language of the dead; its
- purport is taken down progressively by one of the experts, writing,
- I was told, 'as fast as a telegraph operator'; and the
- communications are at last made public. They are of the baldest
- triviality; a schooner is, perhaps, announced, some idle gossip
- reported of a neighbour, or if the spirit shall have been called to
- consultation on a case of sickness, a remedy may be suggested. One
- of these, immersion in scalding water, not long ago proved fatal to
- the patient. The whole business is very dreary, very silly, and
- very European; it has none of the picturesque qualities of similar
- conjurations in New Zealand; it seems to possess no kernel of
- possible sense, like some that I shall describe among the Gilbert
- islanders. Yet I was told that many hardy, intelligent natives
- were inveterate Whistlers. 'Like Mahinui?' I asked, willing to
- have a standard; and I was told 'Yes.' Why should I wonder? Men
- more enlightened than my convict-catechist sit down at home to
- follies equally sterile and dull.
-
- The medium is sometimes female. It was a woman, for instance, who
- introduced these practices on the north coast of Taiarapu, to the
- scandal of her own connections, her brother-in-law in particular
- declaring she was drunk. But what shocked Tahiti might seem fit
- enough in the Paumotus, the more so as certain women there possess,
- by the gift of nature, singular and useful powers. They say they
- are honest, well-intentioned ladies, some of them embarrassed by
- their weird inheritance. And indeed the trouble caused by this
- endowment is so great, and the protection afforded so
- infinitesimally small, that I hesitate whether to call it a gift or
- a hereditary curse. You may rob this lady's coco-patch, steal her
- canoes, burn down her house, and slay her family scatheless; but
- one thing you must not do: you must not lay a hand upon her
- sleeping-mat, or your belly will swell, and you can only be cured
- by the lady or her husband. Here is the report of an eye-witness,
- Tasmanian born, educated, a man who has made money - certainly no
- fool. In 1886 he was present in a house on Makatea, where two lads
- began to skylark on the mats, and were (I think) ejected.
- Instantly after, their bellies began to swell; pains took hold on
- them; all manner of island remedies were exhibited in vain, and
- rubbing only magnified their sufferings. The man of the house was
- called, explained the nature of the visitation, and prepared the
- cure. A cocoa-nut was husked, filled with herbs, and with all the
- ceremonies of a launch, and the utterance of spells in the
- Paumotuan language, committed to the sea. From that moment the
- pains began to grow more easy and the swelling to subside. The
- reader may stare. I can assure him, if he moved much among old
- residents of the archipelago, he would be driven to admit one thing
- of two - either that there is something in the swollen bellies or
- nothing in the evidence of man.
-
- I have not met these gifted ladies; but I had an experience of my
- own, for I have played, for one night only, the part of the
- whistling spirit. It had been blowing wearily all day, but with
- the fall of night the wind abated, and the moon, which was then
- full, rolled in a clear sky. We went southward down the island on
- the side of the lagoon, walking through long-drawn forest aisles of
- palm, and on a floor of snowy sand. No life was abroad, nor sound
- of life; till in a clear part of the isle we spied the embers of a
- fire, and not far off, in a dark house, heard natives talking
- softly. To sit without a light, even in company, and under cover,
- is for a Paumotuan a somewhat hazardous extreme. The whole scene -
- the strong moonlight and crude shadows on the sand, the scattered
- coals, the sound of the low voices from the house, and the lap of
- the lagoon along the beach - put me (I know not how) on thoughts of
- superstition. I was barefoot, I observed my steps were noiseless,
- and drawing near to the dark house, but keeping well in shadow,
- began to whistle. 'The Heaving of the Lead' was my air - no very
- tragic piece. With the first note the conversation and all
- movement ceased; silence accompanied me while I continued; and when
- I passed that way on my return I found the lamp was lighted in the
- house, but the tongues were still mute. All night, as I now think,
- the wretches shivered and were silent. For indeed, I had no guess
- at the time at the nature and magnitude of the terrors I inflicted,
- or with what grisly images the notes of that old song had peopled
- the dark house.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V - A PAUMOTUAN FUNERAL
-
-
-
- NO, I had no guess of these men's terrors. Yet I had received ere
- that a hint, if I had understood; and the occasion was a funeral.
-
- A little apart in the main avenue of Rotoava, in a low hut of
- leaves that opened on a small enclosure, like a pigsty on a pen, an
- old man dwelt solitary with his aged wife. Perhaps they were too
- old to migrate with the others; perhaps they were too poor, and had
- no possessions to dispute. At least they had remained behind; and
- it thus befell that they were invited to my feast. I dare say it
- was quite a piece of politics in the pigsty whether to come or not
- to come, and the husband long swithered between curiosity and age,
- till curiosity conquered, and they came, and in the midst of that
- last merrymaking death tapped him on the shoulder. For some days,
- when the sky was bright and the wind cool, his mat would be spread
- in the main highway of the village, and he was to be seen lying
- there inert, a mere handful of a man, his wife inertly seated by
- his head. They seemed to have outgrown alike our needs and
- faculties; they neither spoke nor listened; they suffered us to
- pass without a glance; the wife did not fan, she seemed not to
- attend upon her husband, and the two poor antiques sat juxtaposed
- under the high canopy of palms, the human tragedy reduced to its
- bare elements, a sight beyond pathos, stirring a thrill of
- curiosity. And yet there was one touch of the pathetic haunted me:
- that so much youth and expectation should have run in these starved
- veins, and the man should have squandered all his lees of life on a
- pleasure party.
-
- On the morning of 17th September the sufferer died, and, time
- pressing, he was buried the same day at four. The cemetery lies to
- seaward behind Government House; broken coral, like so much road-
- metal, forms the surface; a few wooden crosses, a few
- inconsiderable upright stones, designate graves; a mortared wall,
- high enough to lean on, rings it about; a clustering shrub
- surrounds it with pale leaves. Here was the grave dug that
- morning, doubtless by uneasy diggers, to the sound of the nigh sea
- and the cries of sea-birds; meanwhile the dead man waited in his
- house, and the widow and another aged woman leaned on the fence
- before the door, no speech upon their lips, no speculation in their
- eyes.
-
- Sharp at the hour the procession was in march, the coffin wrapped
- in white and carried by four bearers; mourners behind - not many,
- for not many remained in Rotoava, and not many in black, for these
- were poor; the men in straw hats, white coats, and blue trousers or
- the gorgeous parti-coloured pariu, the Tahitian kilt; the women,
- with a few exceptions, brightly habited. Far in the rear came the
- widow, painfully carrying the dead man's mat; a creature aged
- beyond humanity, to the likeness of some missing link.
-
- The dead man had been a Mormon; but the Mormon clergyman was gone
- with the rest to wrangle over boundaries in the adjacent isle, and
- a layman took his office. Standing at the head of the open grave,
- in a white coat and blue pariu, his Tahitian Bible in his hand and
- one eye bound with a red handkerchief, he read solemnly that
- chapter in Job which has been read and heard over the bones of so
- many of our fathers, and with a good voice offered up two prayers.
- The wind and the surf bore a burthen. By the cemetery gate a
- mother in crimson suckled an infant rolled in blue. In the midst
- the widow sat upon the ground and polished one of the coffin-
- stretchers with a piece of coral; a little later she had turned her
- back to the grave and was playing with a leaf. Did she understand?
- God knows. The officiant paused a moment, stooped, and gathered
- and threw reverently on the coffin a handful of rattling coral.
- Dust to dust: but the grains of this dust were gross like
- cherries, and the true dust that was to follow sat near by, still
- cohering (as by a miracle) in the tragic semblance of a female ape.
-
- So far, Mormon or not, it was a Christian funeral. The well-known
- passage had been read from Job, the prayers had been rehearsed, the
- grave was filled, the mourners straggled homeward. With a little
- coarser grain of covering earth, a little nearer outcry of the sea,
- a stronger glare of sunlight on the rude enclosure, and some
- incongruous colours of attire, the well-remembered form had been
- observed.
-
- By rights it should have been otherwise. The mat should have been
- buried with its owner; but, the family being poor, it was thriftily
- reserved for a fresh service. The widow should have flung herself
- upon the grave and raised the voice of official grief, the
- neighbours have chimed in, and the narrow isle rung for a space
- with lamentation. But the widow was old; perhaps she had
- forgotten, perhaps never understood, and she played like a child
- with leaves and coffin-stretchers. In all ways my guest was buried
- with maimed rites. Strange to think that his last conscious
- pleasure was the CASCO and my feast; strange to think that he had
- limped there, an old child, looking for some new good. And the
- good thing, rest, had been allotted him.
-
- But though the widow had neglected much, there was one part she
- must not utterly neglect. She came away with the dispersing
- funeral; but the dead man's mat was left behind upon the grave, and
- I learned that by set of sun she must return to sleep there. This
- vigil is imperative. From sundown till the rising of the morning
- star the Paumotuan must hold his watch above the ashes of his
- kindred. Many friends, if the dead have been a man of mark, will
- keep the watchers company; they will be well supplied with
- coverings against the weather; I believe they bring food, and the
- rite is persevered in for two weeks. Our poor survivor, if,
- indeed, she properly survived, had little to cover, and few to sit
- with her; on the night of the funeral a strong squall chased her
- from her place of watch; for days the weather held uncertain and
- outrageous; and ere seven nights were up she had desisted, and
- returned to sleep in her low roof. That she should be at the pains
- of returning for so short a visit to a solitary house, that this
- borderer of the grave should fear a little wind and a wet blanket,
- filled me at the time with musings. I could not say she was
- indifferent; she was so far beyond me in experience that the court
- of my criticism waived jurisdiction; but I forged excuses, telling
- myself she had perhaps little to lament, perhaps suffered much,
- perhaps understood nothing. And lo! in the whole affair there was
- no question whether of tenderness or piety, and the sturdy return
- of this old remnant was a mark either of uncommon sense or of
- uncommon fortitude.
-
- Yet one thing had occurred that partly set me on the trail. I have
- said the funeral passed much as at home. But when all was over,
- when we were trooping in decent silence from the graveyard gate and
- down the path to the settlement, a sudden inbreak of a different
- spirit startled and perhaps dismayed us. Two people walked not far
- apart in our procession: my friend Mr. Donat - Donat-Rimarau:
- 'Donat the much-handed' - acting Vice-Resident, present ruler of
- the archipelago, by far the man of chief importance on the scene,
- but known besides for one of an unshakable good temper; and a
- certain comely, strapping young Paumotuan woman, the comeliest on
- the isle, not (let us hope) the bravest or the most polite. Of a
- sudden, ere yet the grave silence of the funeral was broken, she
- made a leap at the Resident, with pointed finger, shrieked a few
- words, and fell back again with a laughter, not a natural mirth.
- 'What did she say to you?' I asked. 'She did not speak to ME,'
- said Donat, a shade perturbed; 'she spoke to the ghost of the dead
- man.' And the purport of her speech was this: 'See there! Donat
- will be a fine feast for you to-night.'
-
- 'M. Donat called it a jest,' I wrote at the time in my diary. 'It
- seemed to me more in the nature of a terrified conjuration, as
- though she would divert the ghost's attention from herself. A
- cannibal race may well have cannibal phantoms.' The guesses of the
- traveller appear foredoomed to be erroneous; yet in these I was
- precisely right. The woman had stood by in terror at the funeral,
- being then in a dread spot, the graveyard. She looked on in terror
- to the coming night, with that ogre, a new spirit, loosed upon the
- isle. And the words she had cried in Donat's face were indeed a
- terrified conjuration, basely to shield herself, basely to dedicate
- another in her stead. One thing is to be said in her excuse.
- Doubtless she partly chose Donat because he was a man of great
- good-nature, but partly, too, because he was a man of the half-
- caste. For I believe all natives regard white blood as a kind of
- talisman against the powers of hell. In no other way can they
- explain the unpunished recklessness of Europeans.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI - GRAVEYARD STORIES
-
-
-
- WITH my superstitious friend, the islander, I fear I am not wholly
- frank, often leading the way with stories of my own, and being
- always a grave and sometimes an excited hearer. But the deceit is
- scarce mortal, since I am as pleased to hear as he to tell, as
- pleased with the story as he with the belief; and, besides, it is
- entirely needful. For it is scarce possible to exaggerate the
- extent and empire of his superstitions; they mould his life, they
- colour his thinking; and when he does not speak to me of ghosts,
- and gods, and devils, he is playing the dissembler and talking only
- with his lips. With thoughts so different, one must indulge the
- other; and I would rather that I should indulge his superstition
- than he my incredulity. Of one thing, besides, I may be sure: Let
- me indulge it as I please, I shall not hear the whole; for he is
- already on his guard with me, and the amount of the lore is
- boundless.
-
- I will give but a few instances at random, chiefly from my own
- doorstep in Upolu, during the past month (October 1890). One of my
- workmen was sent the other day to the banana patch, there to dig;
- this is a hollow of the mountain, buried in woods, out of all sight
- and cry of mankind; and long before dusk Lafaele was back again
- beside the cook-house with embarrassed looks; he dared not longer
- stay alone, he was afraid of 'spirits in the bush.' It seems these
- are the souls of the unburied dead, haunting where they fell, and
- wearing woodland shapes of pig, or bird, or insect; the bush is
- full of them, they seem to eat nothing, slay solitary wanderers
- apparently in spite, and at times, in human form, go down to
- villages and consort with the inhabitants undetected. So much I
- learned a day or so after, walking in the bush with a very
- intelligent youth, a native. It was a little before noon; a grey
- day and squally; and perhaps I had spoken lightly. A dark squall
- burst on the side of the mountain; the woods shook and cried; the
- dead leaves rose from the ground in clouds, like butterflies; and
- my companion came suddenly to a full stop. He was afraid, he said,
- of the trees falling; but as soon as I had changed the subject of
- our talk he proceeded with alacrity. A day or two before a
- messenger came up the mountain from Apia with a letter; I was in
- the bush, he must await my return, then wait till I had answered:
- and before I was done his voice sounded shrill with terror of the
- coming night and the long forest road. These are the commons.
- Take the chiefs. There has been a great coming and going of signs
- and omens in our group. One river ran down blood; red eels were
- captured in another; an unknown fish was thrown upon the coast, an
- ominous word found written on its scales. So far we might be
- reading in a monkish chronicle; now we come on a fresh note, at
- once modern and Polynesian. The gods of Upolu and Savaii, our two
- chief islands, contended recently at cricket. Since then they are
- at war. Sounds of battle are heard to roll along the coast. A
- woman saw a man swim from the high seas and plunge direct into the
- bush; he was no man of that neighbourhood; and it was known he was
- one of the gods, speeding to a council. Most perspicuous of all, a
- missionary on Savaii, who is also a medical man, was disturbed late
- in the night by knocking; it was no hour for the dispensary, but at
- length he woke his servant and sent him to inquire; the servant,
- looking from a window, beheld crowds of persons, all with grievous
- wounds, lopped limbs, broken heads, and bleeding bullet-holes; but
- when the door was opened all had disappeared. They were gods from
- the field of battle. Now these reports have certainly
- significance; it is not hard to trace them to political grumblers
- or to read in them a threat of coming trouble; from that merely
- human side I found them ominous myself. But it was the spiritual
- side of their significance that was discussed in secret council by
- my rulers. I shall best depict this mingled habit of the
- Polynesian mind by two connected instances. I once lived in a
- village, the name of which I do not mean to tell. The chief and
- his sister were persons perfectly intelligent: gentlefolk, apt of
- speech. The sister was very religious, a great church-goer, one
- that used to reprove me if I stayed away; I found afterwards that
- she privately worshipped a shark. The chief himself was somewhat
- of a freethinker; at the least, a latitudinarian: he was a man,
- besides, filled with European knowledge and accomplishments; of an
- impassive, ironical habit; and I should as soon have expected
- superstition in Mr. Herbert Spencer. Hear the sequel. I had
- discovered by unmistakable signs that they buried too shallow in
- the village graveyard, and I took my friend, as the responsible
- authority, to task. 'There is something wrong about your
- graveyard,' said I, 'which you must attend to, or it may have very
- bad results.' 'Something wrong? What is it?' he asked, with an
- emotion that surprised me. 'If you care to go along there any
- evening about nine o'clock you can see for yourself,' said I. He
- stepped backward. 'A ghost!' he cried.
-
- In short, in the whole field of the South Seas, there is not one to
- blame another. Half blood and whole, pious and debauched,
- intelligent and dull, all men believe in ghosts, all men combine
- with their recent Christianity fear of and a lingering faith in the
- old island deities. So, in Europe, the gods of Olympus slowly
- dwindled into village bogies; so to-day, the theological Highlander
- sneaks from under the eye of the Free Church divine to lay an
- offering by a sacred well.
-
- I try to deal with the whole matter here because of a particular
- quality in Paumotuan superstitions. It is true I heard them told
- by a man with a genius for such narrations. Close about our
- evening lamp, within sound of the island surf, we hung on his
- words, thrilling. The reader, in far other scenes, must listen
- close for the faint echo.
-
- This bundle of weird stories sprang from the burial and the woman's
- selfish conjuration. I was dissatisfied with what I heard, harped
- upon questions, and struck at last this vein of metal. It is from
- sundown to about four in the morning that the kinsfolk camp upon
- the grave; and these are the hours of the spirits' wanderings. At
- any time of the night - it may be earlier, it may be later - a
- sound is to be heard below, which is the noise of his liberation;
- at four sharp, another and a louder marks the instant of the re-
- imprisonment; between-whiles, he goes his malignant rounds. 'Did
- you ever see an evil spirit?' was once asked of a Paumotuan.
- 'Once.' 'Under what form?' 'It was in the form of a crane.' 'And
- how did you know that crane to be a spirit?' was asked. 'I will
- tell you,' he answered; and this was the purport of his
- inconclusive narrative. His father had been dead nearly a
- fortnight; others had wearied of the watch; and as the sun was
- setting, he found himself by the grave alone. It was not yet dark,
- rather the hour of the afterglow, when he was aware of a snow-white
- crane upon the coral mound; presently more cranes came, some white,
- some black; then the cranes vanished, and he saw in their place a
- white cat, to which there was silently joined a great company of
- cats of every hue conceivable; then these also disappeared, and he
- was left astonished.
-
- This was an anodyne appearance. Take instead the experience of
- Rua-a-mariterangi on the isle of Katiu. He had a need for some
- pandanus, and crossed the isle to the sea-beach, where it chiefly
- flourishes. The day was still, and Rua was surprised to hear a
- crashing sound among the thickets, and then the fall of a
- considerable tree. Here must be some one building a canoe; and he
- entered the margin of the wood to find and pass the time of day
- with this chance neighbour. The crashing sounded more at hand; and
- then he was aware of something drawing swiftly near among the tree-
- tops. It swung by its heels downward, like an ape, so that its
- hands were free for murder; it depended safely by the slightest
- twigs; the speed of its coming was incredible; and soon Rua
- recognised it for a corpse, horrible with age, its bowels hanging
- as it came. Prayer was the weapon of Christian in the Valley of
- the Shadow, and it is to prayer that Rua-a-mariterangi attributes
- his escape. No merely human expedition had availed.
-
- This demon was plainly from the grave; yet you will observe he was
- abroad by day. And inconsistent as it may seem with the hours of
- the night watch and the many references to the rising of the
- morning star, it is no singular exception. I could never find a
- case of another who had seen this ghost, diurnal and arboreal in
- its habits; but others have heard the fall of the tree, which seems
- the signal of its coming. Mr. Donat was once pearling on the
- uninhabited isle of Haraiki. It was a day without a breath of
- wind, such as alternate in the archipelago with days of
- contumelious breezes. The divers were in the midst of the lagoon
- upon their employment; the cook, a boy of ten, was over his pots in
- the camp. Thus were all souls accounted for except a single native
- who accompanied Donat into the wood in quest of sea-fowls' eggs.
- In a moment, out of the stillness, came the sound of the fall of a
- great tree. Donat would have passed on to find the cause. 'No,'
- cried his companion, 'that was no tree. It was something NOT
- RIGHT. Let us go back to camp.' Next Sunday the divers were
- turned on, all that part of the isle was thoroughly examined, and
- sure enough no tree had fallen. A little later Mr. Donat saw one
- of his divers flee from a similar sound, in similar unaffected
- panic, on the same isle. But neither would explain, and it was not
- till afterwards, when he met with Rua, that he learned the occasion
- of their terrors.
-
- But whether by day or night, the purpose of the dead in these
- abhorred activities is still the same. In Samoa, my informant had
- no idea of the food of the bush spirits; no such ambiguity would
- exist in the mind of a Paumotuan. In that hungry archipelago,
- living and dead must alike toil for nutriment; and the race having
- been cannibal in the past, the spirits are so still. When the
- living ate the dead, horrified nocturnal imagination drew the
- shocking inference that the dead might eat the living. Doubtless
- they slay men, doubtless even mutilate them, in mere malice.
- Marquesan spirits sometimes tear out the eyes of travellers; but
- even that may be more practical than appears, for the eye is a
- cannibal dainty. And certainly the root-idea of the dead, at least
- in the far eastern islands, is to prowl for food. It was as a
- dainty morsel for a meal that the woman denounced Donat at the
- funeral. There are spirits besides who prey in particular not on
- the bodies but on the souls of the dead. The point is clearly made
- in a Tahitian story. A child fell sick, grew swiftly worse, and at
- last showed signs of death. The mother hastened to the house of a
- sorcerer, who lived hard by. 'You are yet in time,' said he; 'a
- spirit has just run past my door carrying the soul of your child
- wrapped in the leaf of a purao; but I have a spirit stronger and
- swifter who will run him down ere he has time to eat it.' Wrapped
- in a leaf: like other things edible and corruptible.
-
- Or take an experience of Mr. Donat's on the island of Anaa. It was
- a night of a high wind, with violent squalls; his child was very
- sick, and the father, though he had gone to bed, lay wakeful,
- hearkening to the gale. All at once a fowl was violently dashed on
- the house wall. Supposing he had forgot to put it in shelter with
- the rest, Donat arose, found the bird (a cock) lying on the
- verandah, and put it in the hen-house, the door of which he
- securely fastened. Fifteen minutes later the business was
- repeated, only this time, as it was being dashed against the wall,
- the bird crew. Again Donat replaced it, examining the hen-house
- thoroughly and finding it quite perfect; as he was so engaged the
- wind puffed out his light, and he must grope back to the door a
- good deal shaken. Yet a third time the bird was dashed upon the
- wall; a third time Donat set it, now near dead, beside its mates;
- and he was scarce returned before there came a rush, like that of a
- furious strong man, against the door, and a whistle as loud as that
- of a railway engine rang about the house. The sceptical reader may
- here detect the finger of the tempest; but the women gave up all
- for lost and clustered on the beds lamenting. Nothing followed,
- and I must suppose the gale somewhat abated, for presently after a
- chief came visiting. He was a bold man to be abroad so late, but
- doubtless carried a bright lantern. And he was certainly a man of
- counsel, for as soon as he heard the details of these disturbances
- he was in a position to explain their nature. 'Your child,' said
- he, 'must certainly die. This is the evil spirit of our island who
- lies in wait to eat the spirits of the newly dead.' And then he
- went on to expatiate on the strangeness of the spirit's conduct.
- He was not usually, he explained, so open of assault, but sat
- silent on the house-top waiting, in the guise of a bird, while
- within the people tended the dying and bewailed the dead, and had
- no thought of peril. But when the day came and the doors were
- opened, and men began to go abroad, blood-stains on the wall
- betrayed the tragedy.
-
- This is the quality I admire in Paumotuan legend. In Tahiti the
- spirit-eater is said to assume a vesture which has much more of
- pomp, but how much less of horror. It has been seen by all sorts
- and conditions, native and foreign; only the last insist it is a
- meteor. My authority was not so sure. He was riding with his wife
- about two in the morning; both were near asleep, and the horses not
- much better. It was a brilliant and still night, and the road
- wound over a mountain, near by a deserted marae (old Tahitian
- temple). All at once the appearance passed above them: a form of
- light; the head round and greenish; the body long, red, and with a
- focus of yet redder brilliancy about the midst. A buzzing hoot
- accompanied its passage; it flew direct out of one marae, and
- direct for another down the mountain side. And this, as my
- informant argued, is suggestive. For why should a mere meteor
- frequent the altars of abominable gods? The horses, I should say,
- were equally dismayed with their riders. Now I am not dismayed at
- all - not even agreeably. Give me rather the bird upon the house-
- top and the morning blood-gouts on the wall.
-
- But the dead are not exclusive in their diet. They carry with them
- to the grave, in particular, the Polynesian taste for fish, and
- enter at times with the living into a partnership in fishery. Rua-
- a-mariterangi is again my authority; I feel it diminishes the
- credit of the fact, but how it builds up the image of this
- inveterate ghost-seer! He belongs to the miserably poor island of
- Taenga, yet his father's house was always well supplied. As Rua
- grew up he was called at last to go a-fishing with this fortunate
- parent. They rowed the lagoon at dusk, to an unlikely place, and
- the lay down in the stern, and the father began vainly to cast his
- line over the bows. It is to be supposed that Rua slept; and when
- he awoke there was the figure of another beside his father, and his
- father was pulling in the fish hand over hand. 'Who is that man,
- father?' Rua asked. 'It is none of your business,' said the
- father; and Rua supposed the stranger had swum off to them from
- shore. Night after night they fared into the lagoon, often to the
- most unlikely places; night after night the stranger would suddenly
- be seen on board, and as suddenly be missed; and morning after
- morning the canoe returned laden with fish. 'My father is a very
- lucky man,' thought Rua. At last, one fine day, there came first
- one boat party and then another, who must be entertained; father
- and son put off later than usual into the lagoon; and before the
- canoe was landed it was four o'clock, and the morning star was
- close on the horizon. Then the stranger appeared seized with some
- distress; turned about, showing for the first time his face, which
- was that of one long dead, with shining eyes; stared into the east,
- set the tips of his fingers to his mouth like one a-cold, uttered a
- strange, shuddering sound between a whistle and a moan - a thing to
- freeze the blood; and, the day-star just rising from the sea, he
- suddenly was not. Then Rua understood why his father prospered,
- why his fishes rotted early in the day, and why some were always
- carried to the cemetery and laid upon the graves. My informant is
- a man not certainly averse to superstition, but he keeps his head,
- and takes a certain superior interest, which I may be allowed to
- call scientific. The last point reminding him of some parallel
- practice in Tahiti, he asked Rua if the fish were left, or carried
- home again after a formal dedication. It appears old Mariterangi
- practised both methods; sometimes treating his shadowy partner to a
- mere oblation, sometimes honestly leaving his fish to rot upon the
- grave.
-
- It is plain we have in Europe stories of a similar complexion; and
- the Polynesian VARUA INO or AITU O LE VAO is clearly the near
- kinsman of the Transylvanian vampire. Here is a tale in which the
- kinship appears broadly marked. On the atoll of Penrhyn, then
- still partly savage, a certain chief was long the salutary terror
- of the natives. He died, he was buried; and his late neighbours
- had scarce tasted the delights of licence ere his ghost appeared
- about the village. Fear seized upon all; a council was held of the
- chief men and sorcerers; and with the approval of the Rarotongan
- missionary, who was as frightened as the rest, and in the presence
- of several whites - my friend Mr. Ben Hird being one - the grave
- was opened, deepened until water came, and the body re-interred
- face down. The still recent staking of suicides in England and the
- decapitation of vampires in the east of Europe form close
- parallels.
-
- So in Samoa only the spirits of the unburied awake fear. During
- the late war many fell in the bush; their bodies, sometimes
- headless, were brought back by native pastors and interred; but
- this (I know not why) was insufficient, and the spirit still
- lingered on the theatre of death. When peace returned a singular
- scene was enacted in many places, and chiefly round the high gorges
- of Lotoanuu, where the struggle was long centred and the loss had
- been severe. Kinswomen of the dead came carrying a mat or sheet
- and guided by survivors of the fight. The place of death was
- earnestly sought out; the sheet was spread upon the ground; and the
- women, moved with pious anxiety, sat about and watched it. If any
- living thing alighted it was twice brushed away; upon the third
- coming it was known to be the spirit of the dead, was folded in,
- carried home and buried beside the body; and the aitu rested. The
- rite was practised beyond doubt in simple piety; the repose of the
- soul was its object: its motive, reverent affection. The present
- king disowns indeed all knowledge of a dangerous aitu; he declares
- the souls of the unburied were only wanderers in limbo, lacking an
- entrance to the proper country of the dead, unhappy, nowise
- hurtful. And this severely classic opinion doubtless represents
- the views of the enlightened. But the flight of my Lafaele marks
- the grosser terrors of the ignorant.
-
- This belief in the exorcising efficacy of funeral rites perhaps
- explains a fact, otherwise amazing, that no Polynesian seems at all
- to share our European horror of human bones and mummies. Of the
- first they made their cherished ornaments; they preserved them in
- houses or in mortuary caves; and the watchers of royal sepulchres
- dwelt with their children among the bones of generations. The
- mummy, even in the making, was as little feared. In the Marquesas,
- on the extreme coast, it was made by the household with continual
- unction and exposure to the sun; in the Carolines, upon the
- farthest west, it is still cured in the smoke of the family hearth.
- Head-hunting, besides, still lives around my doorstep in Samoa.
- And not ten years ago, in the Gilberts, the widow must disinter,
- cleanse, polish, and thenceforth carry about her, by day and night,
- the head of her dead husband. In all these cases we may suppose
- the process, whether of cleansing or drying, to have fully
- exorcised the aitu.
-
- But the Paumotuan belief is more obscure. Here the man is duly
- buried, and he has to be watched. He is duly watched, and the
- spirit goes abroad in spite of watches. Indeed, it is not the
- purpose of the vigils to prevent these wanderings; only to mollify
- by polite attention the inveterate malignity of the dead. Neglect
- (it is supposed) may irritate and thus invite his visits, and the
- aged and weakly sometimes balance risks and stay at home. Observe,
- it is the dead man's kindred and next friends who thus deprecate
- his fury with nocturnal watchings. Even the placatory vigil is
- held perilous, except in company, and a boy was pointed out to me
- in Rotoava, because he had watched alone by his own father. Not
- the ties of the dead, nor yet their proved character, affect the
- issue. A late Resident, who died in Fakarava of sunstroke, was
- beloved in life and is still remembered with affection; none the
- less his spirit went about the island clothed with terrors, and the
- neighbourhood of Government House was still avoided after dark. We
- may sum up the cheerful doctrine thus: All men become vampires,
- and the vampire spares none. And here we come face to face with a
- tempting inconsistency. For the whistling spirits are notoriously
- clannish; I understood them to wait upon and to enlighten kinsfolk
- only, and that the medium was always of the race of the
- communicating spirit. Here, then, we have the bonds of the family,
- on the one hand, severed at the hour of death; on the other,
- helpfully persisting.
-
- The child's soul in the Tahitian tale was wrapped in leaves. It is
- the spirits of the newly dead that are the dainty. When they are
- slain, the house is stained with blood. Rua's dead fisherman was
- decomposed; so - and horribly - was his arboreal demon. The
- spirit, then, is a thing material; and it is by the material
- ensigns of corruption that he is distinguished from the living man.
- This opinion is widespread, adds a gross terror to the more ugly
- Polynesian tales, and sometimes defaces the more engaging with a
- painful and incongruous touch. I will give two examples
- sufficiently wide apart, one from Tahiti, one from Samoa.
-
- And first from Tahiti. A man went to visit the husband of his
- sister, then some time dead. In her life the sister had been
- dainty in the island fashion, and went always adorned with a
- coronet of flowers. In the midst of the night the brother awoke
- and was aware of a heavenly fragrance going to and fro in the dark
- house. The lamp I must suppose to have burned out; no Tahitian
- would have lain down without one lighted. A while he lay wondering
- and delighted; then called upon the rest. 'Do none of you smell
- flowers?' he asked. 'O,' said his brother-in-law, 'we are used to
- that here.' The next morning these two men went walking, and the
- widower confessed that his dead wife came about the house
- continually, and that he had even seen her. She was shaped and
- dressed and crowned with flowers as in her lifetime; only she moved
- a few inches above the earth with a very easy progress, and flitted
- dryshod above the surface of the river. And now comes my point:
- It was always in a back view that she appeared; and these brothers-
- in-law, debating the affair, agreed that this was to conceal the
- inroads of corruption.
-
- Now for the Samoan story. I owe it to the kindness of Dr. F. Otto
- Sierich, whose collection of folk-tales I expect with a high degree
- of interest. A man in Manu'a was married to two wives and had no
- issue. He went to Savaii, married there a third, and was more
- fortunate. When his wife was near her time he remembered he was in
- a strange island, like a poor man; and when his child was born he
- must be shamed for lack of gifts. It was in vain his wife
- dissuaded him. He returned to his father in Manu'a seeking help;
- and with what he could get he set off in the night to re-embark.
- Now his wives heard of his coming; they were incensed that he did
- not stay to visit them; and on the beach, by his canoe, intercepted
- and slew him. Now the third wife lay asleep in Savaii; - her babe
- was born and slept by her side; and she was awakened by the spirit
- of her husband. 'Get up,' he said, 'my father is sick in Manu'a
- and we must go to visit him.' 'It is well,' said she; 'take you
- the child, while I carry its mats.' 'I cannot carry the child,'
- said the spirit; 'I am too cold from the sea.' When they were got
- on board the canoe the wife smelt carrion. 'How is this?' she
- said. 'What have you in the canoe that I should smell carrion?'
- 'It is nothing in the canoe,' said the spirit. 'It is the land-
- wind blowing down the mountains, where some beast lies dead.' It
- appears it was still night when they reached Manu'a - the swiftest
- passage on record - and as they entered the reef the bale-fires
- burned in the village. Again she asked him to carry the child; but
- now he need no more dissemble. 'I cannot carry your child,' said
- he, 'for I am dead, and the fires you see are burning for my
- funeral.'
-
- The curious may learn in Dr. Sierich's book the unexpected sequel
- of the tale. Here is enough for my purpose. Though the man was
- but new dead, the ghost was already putrefied, as though
- putrefaction were the mark and of the essence of a spirit. The
- vigil on the Paumotuan grave does not extend beyond two weeks, and
- they told me this period was thought to coincide with that of the
- resolution of the body. The ghost always marked with decay - the
- danger seemingly ending with the process of dissolution - here is
- tempting matter for the theorist. But it will not do. The lady of
- the flowers had been long dead, and her spirit was still supposed
- to bear the brand of perishability. The Resident had been more
- than a fortnight buried, and his vampire was still supposed to go
- the rounds.
-
- Of the lost state of the dead, from the lurid Mangaian legend, in
- which infernal deities hocus and destroy the souls of all, to the
- various submarine and aerial limbos where the dead feast, float
- idle, or resume the occupations of their life on earth, it would be
- wearisome to tell. One story I give, for it is singular in itself,
- is well-known in Tahiti, and has this of interest, that it is post-
- Christian, dating indeed from but a few years back. A princess of
- the reigning house died; was transported to the neighbouring isle
- of Raiatea; fell there under the empire of a spirit who condemned
- her to climb coco-palms all day and bring him the nuts; was found
- after some time in this miserable servitude by a second spirit, one
- of her own house; and by him, upon her lamentations, reconveyed to
- Tahiti, where she found her body still waked, but already swollen
- with the approaches of corruption. It is a lively point in the
- tale that, on the sight of this dishonoured tabernacle, the
- princess prayed she might continue to be numbered with the dead.
- But it seems it was too late, her spirit was replaced by the least
- dignified of entrances, and her startled family beheld the body
- move. The seemingly purgatorial labours, the helpful kindred
- spirit, and the horror of the princess at the sight of her tainted
- body, are all points to be remarked.
-
- The truth is, the tales are not necessarily consistent in
- themselves; and they are further darkened for the stranger by an
- ambiguity of language. Ghosts, vampires, spirits, and gods are all
- confounded. And yet I seem to perceive that (with exceptions)
- those whom we would count gods were less maleficent. Permanent
- spirits haunt and do murder in corners of Samoa; but those
- legitimate gods of Upolu and Savaii, whose wars and cricketings of
- late convulsed society, I did not gather to be dreaded, or not with
- a like fear. The spirit of Aana that ate souls is certainly a
- fearsome inmate; but the high gods, even of the archipelago, seem
- helpful. Mahinui - from whom our convict-catechist had been named
- - the spirit of the sea, like a Proteus endowed with endless
- avatars, came to the assistance of the shipwrecked and carried them
- ashore in the guise of a ray fish. The same divinity bore priests
- from isle to isle about the archipelago, and by his aid, within the
- century, persons have been seen to fly. The tutelar deity of each
- isle is likewise helpful, and by a particular form of wedge-shaped
- cloud on the horizon announces the coming of a ship.
-
- To one who conceives of these atolls, so narrow, so barren, so
- beset with sea, here would seem a superfluity of ghostly denizens.
- And yet there are more. In the various brackish pools and ponds,
- beautiful women with long red hair are seen to rise and bathe; only
- (timid as mice) on the first sound of feet upon the coral they dive
- again for ever. They are known to be healthy and harmless living
- people, dwellers of an underworld; and the same fancy is current in
- Tahiti, where also they have the hair red. TETEA is the Tahitian
- name; the Paumotuan, MOKUREA.
-
-
-
-
- PART III: THE GILBERTS
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I - BUTARITARI
-
-
-
- AT Honolulu we had said farewell to the CASCO and to Captain Otis,
- and our next adventure was made in changed conditions. Passage was
- taken for myself, my wife, Mr. Osbourne, and my China boy, Ah Fu,
- on a pigmy trading schooner, the EQUATOR, Captain Dennis Reid; and
- on a certain bright June day in 1889, adorned in the Hawaiian
- fashion with the garlands of departure, we drew out of port and
- bore with a fair wind for Micronesia.
-
- The whole extent of the South Seas is a desert of ships; more
- especially that part where we were now to sail. No post runs in
- these islands; communication is by accident; where you may have
- designed to go is one thing, where you shall be able to arrive
- another. It was my hope, for instance, to have reached the
- Carolines, and returned to the light of day by way of Manila and
- the China ports; and it was in Samoa that we were destined to re-
- appear and be once more refreshed with the sight of mountains.
- Since the sunset faded from the peaks of Oahu six months had
- intervened, and we had seen no spot of earth so high as an ordinary
- cottage. Our path had been still on the flat sea, our dwellings
- upon unerected coral, our diet from the pickle-tub or out of tins;
- I had learned to welcome shark's flesh for a variety; and a
- mountain, an onion, an Irish potato or a beef-steak, had been long
- lost to sense and dear to aspiration.
-
- The two chief places of our stay, Butaritari and Apemama, lie near
- the line; the latter within thirty miles. Both enjoy a superb
- ocean climate, days of blinding sun and bracing wind, nights of a
- heavenly brightness. Both are somewhat wider than Fakarava,
- measuring perhaps (at the widest) a quarter of a mile from beach to
- beach. In both, a coarse kind of TARO thrives; its culture is a
- chief business of the natives, and the consequent mounds and
- ditches make miniature scenery and amuse the eye. In all else they
- show the customary features of an atoll: the low horizon, the
- expanse of the lagoon, the sedge-like rim of palm-tops, the
- sameness and smallness of the land, the hugely superior size and
- interest of sea and sky. Life on such islands is in many points
- like life on shipboard. The atoll, like the ship, is soon taken
- for granted; and the islanders, like the ship's crew, become soon
- the centre of attention. The isles are populous, independent,
- seats of kinglets, recently civilised, little visited. In the last
- decade many changes have crept in; women no longer go unclothed
- till marriage; the widow no longer sleeps at night and goes abroad
- by day with the skull of her dead husband; and, fire-arms being
- introduced, the spear and the shark-tooth sword are sold for
- curiosities. Ten years ago all these things and practices were to
- be seen in use; yet ten years more, and the old society will have
- entirely vanished. We came in a happy moment to see its
- institutions still erect and (in Apemama) scarce decayed.
-
- Populous and independent - warrens of men, ruled over with some
- rustic pomp - such was the first and still the recurring impression
- of these tiny lands. As we stood across the lagoon for the town of
- Butaritari, a stretch of the low shore was seen to be crowded with
- the brown roofs of houses; those of the palace and king's summer
- parlour (which are of corrugated iron) glittered near one end
- conspicuously bright; the royal colours flew hard by on a tall
- flagstaff; in front, on an artificial islet, the gaol played the
- part of a martello. Even upon this first and distant view, the
- place had scarce the air of what it truly was, a village; rather of
- that which it was also, a petty metropolis, a city rustic and yet
- royal.
-
- The lagoon is shoal. The tide being out, we waded for some quarter
- of a mile in tepid shallows, and stepped ashore at last into a
- flagrant stagnancy of sun and heat. The lee side of a line island
- after noon is indeed a breathless place; on the ocean beach the
- trade will be still blowing, boisterous and cool; out in the lagoon
- it will be blowing also, speeding the canoes; but the screen of
- bush completely intercepts it from the shore, and sleep and silence
- and companies of mosquitoes brood upon the towns.
-
- We may thus be said to have taken Butaritari by surprise. A few
- inhabitants were still abroad in the north end, at which we landed.
- As we advanced, we were soon done with encounter, and seemed to
- explore a city of the dead. Only, between the posts of open
- houses, we could see the townsfolk stretched in the siesta,
- sometimes a family together veiled in a mosquito-net, sometimes a
- single sleeper on a platform like a corpse on a bier.
-
- The houses were of all dimensions, from those of toys to those of
- churches. Some might hold a battalion, some were so minute they
- could scarce receive a pair of lovers; only in the playroom, when
- the toys are mingled, do we meet such incongruities of scale. Many
- were open sheds; some took the form of roofed stages; others were
- walled and the walls pierced with little windows. A few were
- perched on piles in the lagoon; the rest stood at random on a
- green, through which the roadway made a ribbon of sand, or along
- the embankments of a sheet of water like a shallow dock. One and
- all were the creatures of a single tree; palm-tree wood and palm-
- tree leaf their materials; no nail had been driven, no hammer
- sounded, in their building, and they were held together by lashings
- of palm-tree sinnet.
-
- In the midst of the thoroughfare, the church stands like an island,
- a lofty and dim house with rows of windows; a rich tracery of
- framing sustains the roof; and through the door at either end the
- street shows in a vista. The proportions of the place, in such
- surroundings, and built of such materials, appeared august; and we
- threaded the nave with a sentiment befitting visitors in a
- cathedral. Benches run along either side. In the midst, on a
- crazy dais, two chairs stand ready for the king and queen when they
- shall choose to worship; over their heads a hoop, apparently from a
- hogshead, depends by a strip of red cotton; and the hoop (which
- hangs askew) is dressed with streamers of the same material, red
- and white.
-
- This was our first advertisement of the royal dignity, and
- presently we stood before its seat and centre. The palace is built
- of imported wood upon a European plan; the roof of corrugated iron,
- the yard enclosed with walls, the gate surmounted by a sort of
- lych-house. It cannot be called spacious; a labourer in the States
- is sometimes more commodiously lodged; but when we had the chance
- to see it within, we found it was enriched (beyond all island
- expectation) with coloured advertisements and cuts from the
- illustrated papers. Even before the gate some of the treasures of
- the crown stand public: a bell of a good magnitude, two pieces of
- cannon, and a single shell. The bell cannot be rung nor the guns
- fired; they are curiosities, proofs of wealth, a part of the parade
- of the royalty, and stand to be admired like statues in a square.
- A straight gut of water like a canal runs almost to the palace
- door; the containing quay-walls excellently built of coral; over
- against the mouth, by what seems an effect of landscape art, the
- martello-like islet of the gaol breaks the lagoon. Vassal chiefs
- with tribute, neighbour monarchs come a-roving, might here sail in,
- view with surprise these extensive public works, and be awed by
- these mouths of silent cannon. It was impossible to see the place
- and not to fancy it designed for pageantry. But the elaborate
- theatre then stood empty; the royal house deserted, its doors and
- windows gaping; the whole quarter of the town immersed in silence.
- On the opposite bank of the canal, on a roofed stage, an ancient
- gentleman slept publicly, sole visible inhabitant; and beyond on
- the lagoon a canoe spread a striped lateen, the sole thing moving.
-
- The canal is formed on the south by a pier or causeway with a
- parapet. At the far end the parapet stops, and the quay expands
- into an oblong peninsula in the lagoon, the breathing-place and
- summer parlour of the king. The midst is occupied by an open house
- or permanent marquee - called here a maniapa, or, as the word is
- now pronounced, a maniap' - at the lowest estimation forty feet by
- sixty. The iron roof, lofty but exceedingly low-browed, so that a
- woman must stoop to enter, is supported externally on pillars of
- coral, within by a frame of wood. The floor is of broken coral,
- divided in aisles by the uprights of the frame; the house far
- enough from shore to catch the breeze, which enters freely and
- disperses the mosquitoes; and under the low eaves the sun is seen
- to glitter and the waves to dance on the lagoon.
-
- It was now some while since we had met any but slumberers; and when
- we had wandered down the pier and stumbled at last into this bright
- shed, we were surprised to find it occupied by a society of wakeful
- people, some twenty souls in all, the court and guardsmen of
- Butaritari. The court ladies were busy making mats; the guardsmen
- yawned and sprawled. Half a dozen rifles lay on a rock and a
- cutlass was leaned against a pillar: the armoury of these drowsy
- musketeers. At the far end, a little closed house of wood
- displayed some tinsel curtains, and proved, upon examination, to be
- a privy on the European model. In front of this, upon some mats,
- lolled Tebureimoa, the king; behind him, on the panels of the
- house, two crossed rifles represented fasces. He wore pyjamas
- which sorrowfully misbecame his bulk; his nose was hooked and
- cruel, his body overcome with sodden corpulence, his eye timorous
- and dull: he seemed at once oppressed with drowsiness and held
- awake by apprehension: a pepper rajah muddled with opium, and
- listening for the march of a Dutch army, looks perhaps not
- otherwise. We were to grow better acquainted, and first and last I
- had the same impression; he seemed always drowsy, yet always to
- hearken and start; and, whether from remorse or fear, there is no
- doubt he seeks a refuge in the abuse of drugs.
-
- The rajah displayed no sign of interest in our coming. But the
- queen, who sat beside him in a purple sacque, was more accessible;
- and there was present an interpreter so willing that his volubility
- became at last the cause of our departure. He had greeted us upon
- our entrance:- 'That is the honourable King, and I am his
- interpreter,' he had said, with more stateliness than truth. For
- he held no appointment in the court, seemed extremely ill-
- acquainted with the island language, and was present, like
- ourselves, upon a visit of civility. Mr. Williams was his name:
- an American darkey, runaway ship's cook, and bar-keeper at THE LAND
- WE LIVE IN tavern, Butaritari. I never knew a man who had more
- words in his command or less truth to communicate; neither the
- gloom of the monarch, nor my own efforts to be distant, could in
- the least abash him; and when the scene closed, the darkey was left
- talking.
-
- The town still slumbered, or had but just begun to turn and stretch
- itself; it was still plunged in heat and silence. So much the more
- vivid was the impression that we carried away of the house upon the
- islet, the Micronesian Saul wakeful amid his guards, and his
- unmelodious David, Mr. Williams, chattering through the drowsy
- hours.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II - THE FOUR BROTHERS
-
-
-
- THE kingdom of Tebureimoa includes two islands, Great and Little
- Makin; some two thousand subjects pay him tribute, and two semi-
- independent chieftains do him qualified homage. The importance of
- the office is measured by the man; he may be a nobody, he may be
- absolute; and both extremes have been exemplified within the memory
- of residents.
-
- On the death of king Tetimararoa, Tebureimoa's father, Nakaeia, the
- eldest son, succeeded. He was a fellow of huge physical strength,
- masterful, violent, with a certain barbaric thrift and some
- intelligence of men and business. Alone in his islands, it was he
- who dealt and profited; he was the planter and the merchant; and
- his subjects toiled for his behoof in servitude. When they wrought
- long and well their taskmaster declared a holiday, and supplied and
- shared a general debauch. The scale of his providing was at times
- magnificent; six hundred dollars' worth of gin and brandy was set
- forth at once; the narrow land resounded with the noise of revelry:
- and it was a common thing to see the subjects (staggering
- themselves) parade their drunken sovereign on the fore-hatch of a
- wrecked vessel, king and commons howling and singing as they went.
- At a word from Nakaeia's mouth the revel ended; Makin became once
- more an isle of slaves and of teetotalers; and on the morrow all
- the population must be on the roads or in the taro-patches toiling
- under his bloodshot eye.
-
- The fear of Nakaeia filled the land. No regularity of justice was
- affected; there was no trial, there were no officers of the law; it
- seems there was but one penalty, the capital; and daylight assault
- and midnight murder were the forms of process. The king himself
- would play the executioner: and his blows were dealt by stealth,
- and with the help and countenance of none but his own wives. These
- were his oarswomen; one that caught a crab, he slew incontinently
- with the tiller; thus disciplined, they pulled him by night to the
- scene of his vengeance, which he would then execute alone and
- return well-pleased with his connubial crew. The inmates of the
- harem held a station hard for us to conceive. Beasts of draught,
- and driven by the fear of death, they were yet implicitly trusted
- with their sovereign's life; they were still wives and queens, and
- it was supposed that no man should behold their faces. They killed
- by the sight like basilisks; a chance view of one of those
- boatwomen was a crime to be wiped out with blood. In the days of
- Nakaeia the palace was beset with some tall coco-palms which
- commanded the enclosure. It chanced one evening, while Nakaeia sat
- below at supper with his wives, that the owner of the grove was in
- a tree-top drawing palm-tree wine; it chanced that he looked down,
- and the king at the same moment looking up, their eyes encountered.
- Instant flight preserved the involuntary criminal. But during the
- remainder of that reign he must lurk and be hid by friends in
- remote parts of the isle; Nakaeia hunted him without remission,
- although still in vain; and the palms, accessories to the fact,
- were ruthlessly cut down. Such was the ideal of wifely purity in
- an isle where nubile virgins went naked as in paradise. And yet
- scandal found its way into Nakaeia's well-guarded harem. He was at
- that time the owner of a schooner, which he used for a pleasure-
- house, lodging on board as she lay anchored; and thither one day he
- summoned a new wife. She was one that had been sealed to him; that
- is to say (I presume), that he was married to her sister, for the
- husband of an elder sister has the call of the cadets. She would
- be arrayed for the occasion; she would come scented, garlanded,
- decked with fine mats and family jewels, for marriage, as her
- friends supposed; for death, as she well knew. 'Tell me the man's
- name, and I will spare you,' said Nakaeia. But the girl was
- staunch; she held her peace, saved her lover and the queens
- strangled her between the mats.
-
- Nakaeia was feared; it does not appear that he was hated. Deeds
- that smell to us of murder wore to his subjects the reverend face
- of justice; his orgies made him popular; natives to this day recall
- with respect the firmness of his government; and even the whites,
- whom he long opposed and kept at arm's-length, give him the name
- (in the canonical South Sea phrase) of 'a perfect gentleman when
- sober.'
-
- When he came to lie, without issue, on the bed of death, he
- summoned his next brother, Nanteitei, made him a discourse on royal
- policy, and warned him he was too weak to reign. The warning was
- taken to heart, and for some while the government moved on the
- model of Nakaeia's. Nanteitei dispensed with guards, and walked
- abroad alone with a revolver in a leather mail-bag. To conceal his
- weakness he affected a rude silence; you might talk to him all day;
- advice, reproof, appeal, and menace alike remained unanswered.
-
- The number of his wives was seventeen, many of them heiresses; for
- the royal house is poor, and marriage was in these days a chief
- means of buttressing the throne. Nakaeia kept his harem busy for
- himself; Nanteitei hired it out to others. In his days, for
- instance, Messrs. Wightman built a pier with a verandah at the
- north end of the town. The masonry was the work of the seventeen
- queens, who toiled and waded there like fisher lasses; but the man
- who was to do the roofing durst not begin till they had finished,
- lest by chance he should look down and see them.
-
- It was perhaps the last appearance of the harem gang. For some
- time already Hawaiian missionaries had been seated at Butaritari -
- Maka and Kanoa, two brave childlike men. Nakaeia would none of
- their doctrine; he was perhaps jealous of their presence; being
- human, he had some affection for their persons. In the house,
- before the eyes of Kanoa, he slew with his own hand three sailors
- of Oahu, crouching on their backs to knife them, and menacing the
- missionary if he interfered; yet he not only spared him at the
- moment, but recalled him afterwards (when he had fled) with some
- expressions of respect. Nanteitei, the weaker man, fell more
- completely under the spell. Maka, a light-hearted, lovable, yet in
- his own trade very rigorous man, gained and improved an influence
- on the king which soon grew paramount. Nanteitei, with the royal
- house, was publicly converted; and, with a severity which liberal
- missionaries disavow, the harem was at once reduced. It was a
- compendious act. The throne was thus impoverished, its influence
- shaken, the queen's relatives mortified, and sixteen chief women
- (some of great possessions) cast in a body on the market. I have
- been shipmates with a Hawaiian sailor who was successively married
- to two of these IMPROMPTU widows, and successively divorced by both
- for misconduct. That two great and rich ladies (for both of these
- were rich) should have married 'a man from another island' marks
- the dissolution of society. The laws besides were wholly
- remodelled, not always for the better. I love Maka as a man; as a
- legislator he has two defects: weak in the punishment of crime,
- stern to repress innocent pleasures.
-
- War and revolution are the common successors of reform; yet
- Nanteitei died (of an overdose of chloroform), in quiet possession
- of the throne, and it was in the reign of the third brother,
- Nabakatokia, a man brave in body and feeble of character, that the
- storm burst. The rule of the high chiefs and notables seems to
- have always underlain and perhaps alternated with monarchy. The
- Old Men (as they were called) have a right to sit with the king in
- the Speak House and debate: and the king's chief superiority is a
- form of closure - 'The Speaking is over.' After the long monocracy
- of Nakaeia and the changes of Nanteitei, the Old Men were doubtless
- grown impatient of obscurity, and they were beyond question jealous
- of the influence of Maka. Calumny, or rather caricature, was
- called in use; a spoken cartoon ran round society; Maka was
- reported to have said in church that the king was the first man in
- the island and himself the second; and, stung by the supposed
- affront, the chiefs broke into rebellion and armed gatherings. In
- the space of one forenoon the throne of Nakaeia was humbled in the
- dust. The king sat in the maniap' before the palace gate expecting
- his recruits; Maka by his side, both anxious men; and meanwhile, in
- the door of a house at the north entry of the town, a chief had
- taken post and diverted the succours as they came. They came
- singly or in groups, each with his gun or pistol slung about his
- neck. 'Where are you going?' asked the chief. 'The king called
- us,' they would reply. 'Here is your place. Sit down,' returned
- the chief. With incredible disloyalty, all obeyed; and sufficient
- force being thus got together from both sides, Nabakatokia was
- summoned and surrendered. About this period, in almost every part
- of the group, the kings were murdered; and on Tapituea, the
- skeleton of the last hangs to this day in the chief Speak House of
- the isle, a menace to ambition. Nabakatokia was more fortunate;
- his life and the royal style were spared to him, but he was
- stripped of power. The Old Men enjoyed a festival of public
- speaking; the laws were continually changed, never enforced; the
- commons had an opportunity to regret the merits of Nakaeia; and the
- king, denied the resource of rich marriages and the service of a
- troop of wives, fell not only in disconsideration but in debt.
-
- He died some months before my arrival on the islands, and no one
- regretted him; rather all looked hopefully to his successor. This
- was by repute the hero of the family. Alone of the four brothers,
- he had issue, a grown son, Natiata, and a daughter three years old;
- it was to him, in the hour of the revolution, that Nabakatokia
- turned too late for help; and in earlier days he had been the right
- hand of the vigorous Nakaeia. Nontemat', MR. CORPSE, was his
- appalling nickname, and he had earned it well. Again and again, at
- the command of Nakaeia, he had surrounded houses in the dead of
- night, cut down the mosquito bars and butchered families. Here was
- the hand of iron; here was Nakaeia REDUX. He came, summoned from
- the tributary rule of Little Makin: he was installed, he proved a
- puppet and a trembler, the unwieldy shuttlecock of orators; and the
- reader has seen the remains of him in his summer parlour under the
- name of Tebureimoa.
-
- The change in the man's character was much commented on in the
- island, and variously explained by opium and Christianity. To my
- eyes, there seemed no change at all, rather an extreme consistency.
- Mr. Corpse was afraid of his brother: King Tebureimoa is afraid of
- the Old Men. Terror of the first nerved him for deeds of
- desperation; fear of the second disables him for the least act of
- government. He played his part of bravo in the past, following the
- line of least resistance, butchering others in his own defence:
- to-day, grown elderly and heavy, a convert, a reader of the Bible,
- perhaps a penitent, conscious at least of accumulated hatreds, and
- his memory charged with images of violence and blood, he
- capitulates to the Old Men, fuddles himself with opium, and sits
- among his guards in dreadful expectation. The same cowardice that
- put into his hand the knife of the assassin deprives him of the
- sceptre of a king.
-
- A tale that I was told, a trifling incident that fell in my
- observation, depicts him in his two capacities. A chief in Little
- Makin asked, in an hour of lightness, 'Who is Kaeia?' A bird
- carried the saying; and Nakaeia placed the matter in the hands of a
- committee of three. Mr. Corpse was chairman; the second
- commissioner died before my arrival; the third was yet alive and
- green, and presented so venerable an appearance that we gave him
- the name of Abou ben Adhem. Mr. Corpse was troubled with a
- scruple; the man from Little Makin was his adopted brother; in such
- a case it was not very delicate to appear at all, to strike the
- blow (which it seems was otherwise expected of him) would be worse
- than awkward. 'I will strike the blow,' said the venerable Abou;
- and Mr. Corpse (surely with a sigh) accepted the compromise. The
- quarry was decoyed into the bush; he was set to carrying a log; and
- while his arms were raised Abou ripped up his belly at a blow.
- Justice being thus done, the commission, in a childish horror,
- turned to flee. But their victim recalled them to his side. 'You
- need not run away now,' he said. 'You have done this thing to me.
- Stay.' He was some twenty minutes dying, and his murderers sat
- with him the while: a scene for Shakespeare. All the stages of a
- violent death, the blood, the failing voice, the decomposing
- features, the changed hue, are thus present in the memory of Mr.
- Corpse; and since he studied them in the brother he betrayed, he
- has some reason to reflect on the possibilities of treachery. I
- was never more sure of anything than the tragic quality of the
- king's thoughts; and yet I had but the one sight of him at
- unawares. I had once an errand for his ear. It was once more the
- hour of the siesta; but there were loiterers abroad, and these
- directed us to a closed house on the bank of the canal where
- Tebureimoa lay unguarded. We entered without ceremony, being in
- some haste. He lay on the floor upon a bed of mats, reading in his
- Gilbert Island Bible with compunction. On our sudden entrance the
- unwieldy man reared himself half-sitting so that the Bible rolled
- on the floor, stared on us a moment with blank eyes, and, having
- recognised his visitors, sank again upon the mats. So Eglon looked
- on Ehud.
-
- The justice of facts is strange, and strangely just; Nakaeia, the
- author of these deeds, died at peace discoursing on the craft of
- kings; his tool suffers daily death for his enforced complicity.
- Not the nature, but the congruity of men's deeds and circumstances
- damn and save them; and Tebureimoa from the first has been
- incongruously placed. At home, in a quiet bystreet of a village,
- the man had been a worthy carpenter, and, even bedevilled as he is,
- he shows some private virtues. He has no lands, only the use of
- such as are impignorate for fines; he cannot enrich himself in the
- old way by marriages; thrift is the chief pillar of his future, and
- he knows and uses it. Eleven foreign traders pay him a patent of a
- hundred dollars, some two thousand subjects pay capitation at the
- rate of a dollar for a man, half a dollar for a woman, and a
- shilling for a child: allowing for the exchange, perhaps a total
- of three hundred pounds a year. He had been some nine months on
- the throne: had bought his wife a silk dress and hat, figure
- unknown, and himself a uniform at three hundred dollars; had sent
- his brother's photograph to be enlarged in San Francisco at two
- hundred and fifty dollars; had greatly reduced that brother's
- legacy of debt and had still sovereigns in his pocket. An
- affectionate brother, a good economist; he was besides a handy
- carpenter, and cobbled occasionally on the woodwork of the palace.
- It is not wonderful that Mr. Corpse has virtues; that Tebureimoa
- should have a diversion filled me with surprise.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III - AROUND OUR HOUSE
-
-
-
- WHEN we left the palace we were still but seafarers ashore; and
- within the hour we had installed our goods in one of the six
- foreign houses of Butaritari, namely, that usually occupied by
- Maka, the Hawaiian missionary. Two San Francisco firms are here
- established, Messrs. Crawford and Messrs. Wightman Brothers; the
- first hard by the palace of the mid town, the second at the north
- entry; each with a store and bar-room. Our house was in the
- Wightman compound, betwixt the store and bar, within a fenced
- enclosure. Across the road a few native houses nestled in the
- margin of the bush, and the green wall of palms rose solid,
- shutting out the breeze. A little sandy cove of the lagoon ran in
- behind, sheltered by a verandah pier, the labour of queens' hands.
- Here, when the tide was high, sailed boats lay to be loaded; when
- the tide was low, the boats took ground some half a mile away, and
- an endless series of natives descended the pier stair, tailed
- across the sand in strings and clusters, waded to the waist with
- the bags of copra, and loitered backward to renew their charge.
- The mystery of the copra trade tormented me, as I sat and watched
- the profits drip on the stair and the sands.
-
- In front, from shortly after four in the morning until nine at
- night, the folk of the town streamed by us intermittingly along the
- road: families going up the island to make copra on their lands;
- women bound for the bush to gather flowers against the evening
- toilet; and, twice a day, the toddy-cutters, each with his knife
- and shell. In the first grey of the morning, and again late in the
- afternoon, these would straggle past about their tree-top business,
- strike off here and there into the bush, and vanish from the face
- of the earth. At about the same hour, if the tide be low in the
- lagoon, you are likely to be bound yourself across the island for a
- bath, and may enter close at their heels alleys of the palm wood.
- Right in front, although the sun is not yet risen, the east is
- already lighted with preparatory fires, and the huge accumulations
- of the trade-wind cloud glow with and heliograph the coming day.
- The breeze is in your face; overhead in the tops of the palms, its
- playthings, it maintains a lively bustle; look where you will,
- above or below, there is no human presence, only the earth and
- shaken forest. And right overhead the song of an invisible singer
- breaks from the thick leaves; from farther on a second tree-top
- answers; and beyond again, in the bosom of the woods, a still more
- distant minstrel perches and sways and sings. So, all round the
- isle, the toddy-cutters sit on high, and are rocked by the trade,
- and have a view far to seaward, where they keep watch for sails,
- and like huge birds utter their songs in the morning. They sing
- with a certain lustiness and Bacchic glee; the volume of sound and
- the articulate melody fall unexpected from the tree-top, whence we
- anticipate the chattering of fowls. And yet in a sense these songs
- also are but chatter; the words are ancient, obsolete, and sacred;
- few comprehend them, perhaps no one perfectly; but it was
- understood the cutters 'prayed to have good toddy, and sang of
- their old wars.' The prayer is at least answered; and when the
- foaming shell is brought to your door, you have a beverage well
- 'worthy of a grace.' All forenoon you may return and taste; it
- only sparkles, and sharpens, and grows to be a new drink, not less
- delicious; but with the progress of the day the fermentation
- quickens and grows acid; in twelve hours it will be yeast for
- bread, in two days more a devilish intoxicant, the counsellor of
- crime.
-
- The men are of a marked Arabian cast of features, often bearded and
- mustached, often gaily dressed, some with bracelets and anklets,
- all stalking hidalgo-like, and accepting salutations with a haughty
- lip. The hair (with the dandies of either sex) is worn turban-wise
- in a frizzled bush; and like the daggers of the Japanese a pointed
- stick (used for a comb) is thrust gallantly among the curls. The
- women from this bush of hair look forth enticingly: the race
- cannot be compared with the Tahitian for female beauty; I doubt
- even if the average be high; but some of the prettiest girls, and
- one of the handsomest women I ever saw, were Gilbertines.
- Butaritari, being the commercial centre of the group, is
- Europeanised; the coloured sacque or the white shift are common
- wear, the latter for the evening; the trade hat, loaded with
- flowers, fruit, and ribbons, is unfortunately not unknown; and the
- characteristic female dress of the Gilberts no longer universal.
- The RIDI is its name: a cutty petticoat or fringe of the smoked
- fibre of cocoa-nut leaf, not unlike tarry string: the lower edge
- not reaching the mid-thigh, the upper adjusted so low upon the
- haunches that it seems to cling by accident. A sneeze, you think,
- and the lady must surely be left destitute. 'The perilous,
- hairbreadth ridi' was our word for it; and in the conflict that
- rages over women's dress it has the misfortune to please neither
- side, the prudish condemning it as insufficient, the more frivolous
- finding it unlovely in itself. Yet if a pretty Gilbertine would
- look her best, that must be her costume. In that and naked
- otherwise, she moves with an incomparable liberty and grace and
- life, that marks the poetry of Micronesia. Bundle her in a gown,
- the charm is fled, and she wriggles like an Englishwoman.
-
- Towards dusk the passers-by became more gorgeous. The men broke
- out in all the colours of the rainbow - or at least of the trade-
- room, - and both men and women began to be adorned and scented with
- new flowers. A small white blossom is the favourite, sometimes
- sown singly in a woman's hair like little stars, now composed in a
- thick wreath. With the night, the crowd sometimes thickened in the
- road, and the padding and brushing of bare feet became continuous;
- the promenades mostly grave, the silence only interrupted by some
- giggling and scampering of girls; even the children quiet. At
- nine, bed-time struck on a bell from the cathedral, and the life of
- the town ceased. At four the next morning the signal is repeated
- in the darkness, and the innocent prisoners set free; but for seven
- hours all must lie - I was about to say within doors, of a place
- where doors, and even walls, are an exception - housed, at least,
- under their airy roofs and clustered in the tents of the mosquito-
- nets. Suppose a necessary errand to occur, suppose it imperative
- to send abroad, the messenger must then go openly, advertising
- himself to the police with a huge brand of cocoa-nut, which flares
- from house to house like a moving bonfire. Only the police
- themselves go darkling, and grope in the night for misdemeanants.
- I used to hate their treacherous presence; their captain in
- particular, a crafty old man in white, lurked nightly about my
- premises till I could have found it in my heart to beat him. But
- the rogue was privileged.
-
- Not one of the eleven resident traders came to town, no captain
- cast anchor in the lagoon, but we saw him ere the hour was out.
- This was owing to our position between the store and the bar - the
- SANS SOUCI, as the last was called. Mr. Rick was not only Messrs.
- Wightman's manager, but consular agent for the States; Mrs. Rick
- was the only white woman on the island, and one of the only two in
- the archipelago; their house besides, with its cool verandahs, its
- bookshelves, its comfortable furniture, could not be rivalled
- nearer than Jaluit or Honolulu. Every one called in consequence,
- save such as might be prosecuting a South Sea quarrel, hingeing on
- the price of copra and the odd cent, or perhaps a difference about
- poultry. Even these, if they did not appear upon the north, would
- be presently visible to the southward, the SANS SOUCI drawing them
- as with cords. In an island with a total population of twelve
- white persons, one of the two drinking-shops might seem
- superfluous: but every bullet has its billet, and the double
- accommodation of Butaritari is found in practice highly convenient
- by the captains and the crews of ships: THE LAND WE LIVE IN being
- tacitly resigned to the forecastle, the SANS SOUCI tacitly reserved
- for the afterguard. So aristocratic were my habits, so commanding
- was my fear of Mr. Williams, that I have never visited the first;
- but in the other, which was the club or rather the casino of the
- island, I regularly passed my evenings. It was small, but neatly
- fitted, and at night (when the lamp was lit) sparkled with glass
- and glowed with coloured pictures like a theatre at Christmas. The
- pictures were advertisements, the glass coarse enough, the
- carpentry amateur; but the effect, in that incongruous isle, was of
- unbridled luxury and inestimable expense. Here songs were sung,
- tales told, tricks performed, games played. The Ricks, ourselves,
- Norwegian Tom the bar-keeper, a captain or two from the ships, and
- perhaps three or four traders come down the island in their boats
- or by the road on foot, made up the usual company. The traders,
- all bred to the sea, take a humorous pride in their new business;
- 'South Sea Merchants' is the title they prefer. 'We are all
- sailors here' - 'Merchants, if you please' - 'SOUTH SEA Merchants,'
- - was a piece of conversation endlessly repeated, that never seemed
- to lose in savour. We found them at all times simple, genial, gay,
- gallant, and obliging; and, across some interval of time, recall
- with pleasure the traders of Butaritari. There was one black sheep
- indeed. I tell of him here where he lived, against my rule; for in
- this case I have no measure to preserve, and the man is typical of
- a class of ruffians that once disgraced the whole field of the
- South Seas, and still linger in the rarely visited isles of
- Micronesia. He had the name on the beach of 'a perfect gentleman
- when sober,' but I never saw him otherwise than drunk. The few
- shocking and savage traits of the Micronesian he has singled out
- with the skill of a collector, and planted in the soil of his
- original baseness. He has been accused and acquitted of a
- treacherous murder; and has since boastfully owned it, which
- inclines me to suppose him innocent. His daughter is defaced by
- his erroneous cruelty, for it was his wife he had intended to
- disfigure, and in the darkness of the night and the frenzy of coco-
- brandy, fastened on the wrong victim. The wife has since fled and
- harbours in the bush with natives; and the husband still demands
- from deaf ears her forcible restoration. The best of his business
- is to make natives drink, and then advance the money for the fine
- upon a lucrative mortgage. 'Respect for whites' is the man's word:
- 'What is the matter with this island is the want of respect for
- whites.' On his way to Butaritari, while I was there, he spied his
- wife in the bush with certain natives and made a dash to capture
- her; whereupon one of her companions drew a knife and the husband
- retreated: 'Do you call that proper respect for whites?' he cried.
- At an early stage of the acquaintance we proved our respect for his
- kind of white by forbidding him our enclosure under pain of death.
- Thenceforth he lingered often in the neighbourhood with I knew not
- what sense of envy or design of mischief; his white, handsome face
- (which I beheld with loathing) looked in upon us at all hours
- across the fence; and once, from a safe distance, he avenged
- himself by shouting a recondite island insult, to us quite
- inoffensive, on his English lips incredibly incongruous.
-
- Our enclosure, round which this composite of degradations wandered,
- was of some extent. In one corner was a trellis with a long table
- of rough boards. Here the Fourth of July feast had been held not
- long before with memorable consequences, yet to be set forth; here
- we took our meals; here entertained to a dinner the king and
- notables of Makin. In the midst was the house, with a verandah
- front and back, and three is rooms within. In the verandah we
- slung our man-of-war hammocks, worked there by day, and slept at
- night. Within were beds, chairs, a round table, a fine hanging
- lamp, and portraits of the royal family of Hawaii. Queen Victoria
- proves nothing; Kalakaua and Mrs. Bishop are diagnostic; and the
- truth is we were the stealthy tenants of the parsonage. On the day
- of our arrival Maka was away; faithless trustees unlocked his
- doors; and the dear rigorous man, the sworn foe of liquor and
- tobacco, returned to find his verandah littered with cigarettes and
- his parlour horrible with bottles. He made but one condition - on
- the round table, which he used in the celebration of the
- sacraments, he begged us to refrain from setting liquor; in all
- else he bowed to the accomplished fact, refused rent, retired
- across the way into a native house, and, plying in his boat, beat
- the remotest quarters of the isle for provender. He found us pigs
- - I could not fancy where - no other pigs were visible; he brought
- us fowls and taro; when we gave our feast to the monarch and
- gentry, it was he who supplied the wherewithal, he who
- superintended the cooking, he who asked grace at table, and when
- the king's health was proposed, he also started the cheering with
- an English hip-hip-hip. There was never a more fortunate
- conception; the heart of the fatted king exulted in his bosom at
- the sound.
-
- Take him for all in all, I have never known a more engaging
- creature than this parson of Butaritari: his mirth, his kindness,
- his noble, friendly feelings, brimmed from the man in speech and
- gesture. He loved to exaggerate, to act and overact the momentary
- part, to exercise his lungs and muscles, and to speak and laugh
- with his whole body. He had the morning cheerfulness of birds and
- healthy children; and his humour was infectious. We were next
- neighbours and met daily, yet our salutations lasted minutes at a
- stretch - shaking hands, slapping shoulders, capering like a pair
- of Merry-Andrews, laughing to split our sides upon some pleasantry
- that would scarce raise a titter in an infant-school. It might be
- five in the morning, the toddy-cutters just gone by, the road
- empty, the shade of the island lying far on the lagoon: and the
- ebullition cheered me for the day.
-
- Yet I always suspected Maka of a secret melancholy - these jubilant
- extremes could scarce be constantly maintained. He was besides
- long, and lean, and lined, and corded, and a trifle grizzled; and
- his Sabbath countenance was even saturnine. On that day we made a
- procession to the church, or (as I must always call it) the
- cathedral: Maka (a blot on the hot landscape) in tall hat, black
- frock-coat, black trousers; under his arm the hymn-book and the
- Bible; in his face, a reverent gravity:- beside him Mary his wife,
- a quiet, wise, and handsome elderly lady, seriously attired:-
- myself following with singular and moving thoughts. Long before,
- to the sound of bells and streams and birds, through a green
- Lothian glen, I had accompanied Sunday by Sunday a minister in
- whose house I lodged; and the likeness, and the difference, and the
- series of years and deaths, profoundly touched me. In the great,
- dusky, palm-tree cathedral the congregation rarely numbered thirty:
- the men on one side, the women on the other, myself posted (for a
- privilege) amongst the women, and the small missionary contingent
- gathered close around the platform, we were lost in that round
- vault. The lessons were read antiphonally, the flock was
- catechised, a blind youth repeated weekly a long string of psalms,
- hymns were sung - I never heard worse singing, - and the sermon
- followed. To say I understood nothing were untrue; there were
- points that I learned to expect with certainty; the name of
- Honolulu, that of Kalakaua, the word Cap'n-man-o'-wa', the word
- ship, and a description of a storm at sea, infallibly occurred; and
- I was not seldom rewarded with the name of my own Sovereign in the
- bargain. The rest was but sound to the ears, silence for the mind:
- a plain expanse of tedium, rendered unbearable by heat, a hard
- chair, and the sight through the wide doors of the more happy
- heathen on the green. Sleep breathed on my joints and eyelids,
- sleep hummed in my ears; it reigned in the dim cathedral. The
- congregation stirred and stretched; they moaned, they groaned
- aloud; they yawned upon a singing note, as you may sometimes hear a
- dog when he has reached the tragic bitterest of boredom. In vain
- the preacher thumped the table; in vain he singled and addressed by
- name particular hearers. I was myself perhaps a more effective
- excitant; and at least to one old gentleman the spectacle of my
- successful struggles against sleep - and I hope they were
- successful - cheered the flight of time. He, when he was not
- catching flies or playing tricks upon his neighbours, gloated with
- a fixed, truculent eye upon the stages of my agony; and once, when
- the service was drawing towards a close, he winked at me across the
- church.
-
- I write of the service with a smile; yet I was always there -
- always with respect for Maka, always with admiration for his deep
- seriousness, his burning energy, the fire of his roused eye, the
- sincere and various accents of his voice. To see him weekly
- flogging a dead horse and blowing a cold fire was a lesson in
- fortitude and constancy. It may be a question whether if the
- mission were fully supported, and he was set free from business
- avocations, more might not result; I think otherwise myself; I
- think not neglect but rigour has reduced his flock, that rigour
- which has once provoked a revolution, and which to-day, in a man so
- lively and engaging, amazes the beholder. No song, no dance, no
- tobacco, no liquor, no alleviative of life - only toil and church-
- going; so says a voice from his face; and the face is the face of
- the Polynesian Esau, but the voice is the voice of a Jacob from a
- different world. And a Polynesian at the best makes a singular
- missionary in the Gilberts, coming from a country recklessly
- unchaste to one conspicuously strict; from a race hag-ridden with
- bogies to one comparatively bold against the terrors of the dark.
- The thought was stamped one morning in my mind, when I chanced to
- be abroad by moonlight, and saw all the town lightless, but the
- lamp faithfully burning by the missionary's bed. It requires no
- law, no fire, and no scouting police, to withhold Maka and his
- countrymen from wandering in the night unlighted.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV - A TALE OF A TAPU
-
-
-
- ON the morrow of our arrival (Sunday, 14th July 1889) our
- photographers were early stirring. Once more we traversed a silent
- town; many were yet abed and asleep; some sat drowsily in their
- open houses; there was no sound of intercourse or business. In
- that hour before the shadows, the quarter of the palace and canal
- seemed like a landing-place in the ARABIAN NIGHTS or from the
- classic poets; here were the fit destination of some 'faery
- frigot,' here some adventurous prince might step ashore among new
- characters and incidents; and the island prison, where it floated
- on the luminous face of the lagoon, might have passed for the
- repository of the Grail. In such a scene, and at such an hour, the
- impression received was not so much of foreign travel - rather of
- past ages; it seemed not so much degrees of latitude that we had
- crossed, as centuries of time that we had re-ascended; leaving, by
- the same steps, home and to-day. A few children followed us,
- mostly nude, all silent; in the clear, weedy waters of the canal
- some silent damsels waded, baring their brown thighs; and to one of
- the maniap's before the palace gate we were attracted by a low but
- stirring hum of speech.
-
- The oval shed was full of men sitting cross-legged. The king was
- there in striped pyjamas, his rear protected by four guards with
- Winchesters, his air and bearing marked by unwonted spirit and
- decision; tumblers and black bottles went the round; and the talk,
- throughout loud, was general and animated. I was inclined at first
- to view this scene with suspicion. But the hour appeared
- unsuitable for a carouse; drink was besides forbidden equally by
- the law of the land and the canons of the church; and while I was
- yet hesitating, the king's rigorous attitude disposed of my last
- doubt. We had come, thinking to photograph him surrounded by his
- guards, and at the first word of the design his piety revolted. We
- were reminded of the day - the Sabbath, in which thou shalt take no
- photographs - and returned with a flea in our ear, bearing the
- rejected camera.
-
- At church, a little later, I was struck to find the throne
- unoccupied. So nice a Sabbatarian might have found the means to be
- present; perhaps my doubts revived; and before I got home they were
- transformed to certainties. Tom, the bar-keeper of the SANS SOUCI,
- was in conversation with two emissaries from the court. The
- 'keen,' they said, wanted 'din,' failing which 'perandi.' No din,
- was Tom's reply, and no perandi; but 'pira' if they pleased. It
- seems they had no use for beer, and departed sorrowing.
-
- 'Why, what is the meaning of all this?' I asked. 'Is the island on
- the spree?'
-
- Such was the fact. On the 4th of July a feast had been made, and
- the king, at the suggestion of the whites, had raised the tapu
- against liquor. There is a proverb about horses; it scarce applies
- to the superior animal, of whom it may be rather said, that any one
- can start him drinking, not any twenty can prevail on him to stop.
- The tapu, raised ten days before, was not yet re-imposed; for ten
- days the town had been passing the bottle or lying (as we had seen
- it the afternoon before) in hoggish sleep; and the king, moved by
- the Old Men and his own appetites, continued to maintain the
- liberty, to squander his savings on liquor, and to join in and lead
- the debauch. The whites were the authors of this crisis; it was
- upon their own proposal that the freedom had been granted at the
- first; and for a while, in the interests of trade, they were
- doubtless pleased it should continue. That pleasure had now
- sometime ceased; the bout had been prolonged (it was conceded)
- unduly; and it now began to be a question how it might conclude.
- Hence Tom's refusal. Yet that refusal was avowedly only for the
- moment, and it was avowedly unavailing; the king's foragers, denied
- by Tom at the SANS SOUCI, would be supplied at THE LAND WE LIVE IN
- by the gobbling Mr. Williams.
-
- The degree of the peril was not easy to measure at the time, and I
- am inclined to think now it was easy to exaggerate. Yet the
- conduct of drunkards even at home is always matter for anxiety; and
- at home our populations are not armed from the highest to the
- lowest with revolvers and repeating rifles, neither do we go on a
- debauch by the whole townful - and I might rather say, by the whole
- polity - king, magistrates, police, and army joining in one common
- scene of drunkenness. It must be thought besides that we were here
- in barbarous islands, rarely visited, lately and partly civilised.
- First and last, a really considerable number of whites have
- perished in the Gilberts, chiefly through their own misconduct; and
- the natives have displayed in at least one instance a disposition
- to conceal an accident under a butchery, and leave nothing but dumb
- bones. This last was the chief consideration against a sudden
- closing of the bars; the bar-keepers stood in the immediate breach
- and dealt direct with madmen; too surly a refusal might at any
- moment precipitate a blow, and the blow might prove the signal for
- a massacre.
-
- MONDAY, 15th. - At the same hour we returned to the same muniap'.
- Kummel (of all drinks) was served in tumblers; in the midst sat the
- crown prince, a fatted youth, surrounded by fresh bottles and
- busily plying the corkscrew; and king, chief, and commons showed
- the loose mouth, the uncertain joints, and the blurred and animated
- eye of the early drinker. It was plain we were impatiently
- expected; the king retired with alacrity to dress, the guards were
- despatched after their uniforms; and we were left to await the
- issue of these preparations with a shedful of tipsy natives. The
- orgie had proceeded further than on Sunday. The day promised to be
- of great heat; it was already sultry, the courtiers were already
- fuddled; and still the kummel continued to go round, and the crown
- prince to play butler. Flemish freedom followed upon Flemish
- excess; and a funny dog, a handsome fellow, gaily dressed, and with
- a full turban of frizzed hair, delighted the company with a
- humorous courtship of a lady in a manner not to be described. It
- was our diversion, in this time of waiting, to observe the
- gathering of the guards. They have European arms, European
- uniforms, and (to their sorrow) European shoes. We saw one warrior
- (like Mars) in the article of being armed; two men and a stalwart
- woman were scarce strong enough to boot him; and after a single
- appearance on parade the army is crippled for a week.
-
- At last, the gates under the king's house opened; the army issued,
- one behind another, with guns and epaulettes; the colours stooped
- under the gateway; majesty followed in his uniform bedizened with
- gold lace; majesty's wife came next in a hat and feathers, and an
- ample trained silk gown; the royal imps succeeded; there stood the
- pageantry of Makin marshalled on its chosen theatre. Dickens might
- have told how serious they were; how tipsy; how the king melted and
- streamed under his cocked hat; how he took station by the larger of
- his two cannons - austere, majestic, but not truly vertical; how
- the troops huddled, and were straightened out, and clubbed again;
- how they and their firelocks raked at various inclinations like the
- masts of ships; and how an amateur photographer reviewed, arrayed,
- and adjusted them, to see his dispositions change before he reached
- the camera.
-
- The business was funny to see; I do not know that it is graceful to
- laugh at; and our report of these transactions was received on our
- return with the shaking of grave heads.
-
- The day had begun ill; eleven hours divided us from sunset; and at
- any moment, on the most trifling chance, the trouble might begin.
- The Wightman compound was in a military sense untenable, commanded
- on three sides by houses and thick bush; the town was computed to
- contain over a thousand stand of excellent new arms; and retreat to
- the ships, in the case of an alert, was a recourse not to be
- thought of. Our talk that morning must have closely reproduced the
- talk in English garrisons before the Sepoy mutiny; the sturdy doubt
- that any mischief was in prospect, the sure belief that (should any
- come) there was nothing left but to go down fighting, the half-
- amused, half-anxious attitude of mind in which we were awaiting
- fresh developments.
-
- The kummel soon ran out; we were scarce returned before the king
- had followed us in quest of more. Mr. Corpse was now divested of
- his more awful attitude, the lawless bulk of him again encased in
- striped pyjamas; a guardsman brought up the rear with his rifle at
- the trail: and his majesty was further accompanied by a Rarotongan
- whalerman and the playful courtier with the turban of frizzed hair.
- There was never a more lively deputation. The whalerman was
- gapingly, tearfully tipsy: the courtier walked on air; the king
- himself was even sportive. Seated in a chair in the Ricks'
- sitting-room, he bore the brunt of our prayers and menaces unmoved.
- He was even rated, plied with historic instances, threatened with
- the men-of-war, ordered to restore the tapu on the spot - and
- nothing in the least affected him. It should be done to-morrow, he
- said; to-day it was beyond his power, to-day he durst not. 'Is
- that royal?' cried indignant Mr. Rick. No, it was not royal; had
- the king been of a royal character we should ourselves have held a
- different language; and royal or not, he had the best of the
- dispute. The terms indeed were hardly equal; for the king was the
- only man who could restore the tapu, but the Ricks were not the
- only people who sold drink. He had but to hold his ground on the
- first question, and they were sure to weaken on the second. A
- little struggle they still made for the fashion's sake; and then
- one exceedingly tipsy deputation departed, greatly rejoicing, a
- case of brandy wheeling beside them in a barrow. The Rarotongan
- (whom I had never seen before) wrung me by the hand like a man
- bound on a far voyage. 'My dear frien'!' he cried, 'good-bye, my
- dear frien'!' - tears of kummel standing in his eyes; the king
- lurched as he went, the courtier ambled, - a strange party of
- intoxicated children to be entrusted with that barrowful of
- madness.
-
- You could never say the town was quiet; all morning there was a
- ferment in the air, an aimless movement and congregation of natives
- in the street. But it was not before half-past one that a sudden
- hubbub of voices called us from the house, to find the whole white
- colony already gathered on the spot as by concerted signal. The
- SANS SOUCI was overrun with rabble, the stair and verandah
- thronged. From all these throats an inarticulate babbling cry went
- up incessantly; it sounded like the bleating of young lambs, but
- angrier. In the road his royal highness (whom I had seen so lately
- in the part of butler) stood crying upon Tom; on the top step,
- tossed in the hurly-burly, Tom was shouting to the prince. Yet a
- while the pack swayed about the bar, vociferous. Then came a
- brutal impulse; the mob reeled, and returned, and was rejected; the
- stair showed a stream of heads; and there shot into view, through
- the disbanding ranks, three men violently dragging in their midst a
- fourth. By his hair and his hands, his head forced as low as his
- knees, his face concealed, he was wrenched from the verandah and
- whisked along the road into the village, howling as he disappeared.
- Had his face been raised, we should have seen it bloodied, and the
- blood was not his own. The courtier with the turban of frizzed
- hair had paid the costs of this disturbance with the lower part of
- one ear.
-
- So the brawl passed with no other casualty than might seem comic to
- the inhumane. Yet we looked round on serious faces and - a fact
- that spoke volumes - Tom was putting up the shutters on the bar.
- Custom might go elsewhere, Mr. Williams might profit as he pleased,
- but Tom had had enough of bar-keeping for that day. Indeed the
- event had hung on a hair. A man had sought to draw a revolver - on
- what quarrel I could never learn, and perhaps he himself could not
- have told; one shot, when the room was so crowded, could scarce
- have failed to take effect; where many were armed and all tipsy, it
- could scarce have failed to draw others; and the woman who spied
- the weapon and the man who seized it may very well have saved the
- white community.
-
- The mob insensibly melted from the scene; and for the rest of the
- day our neighbourhood was left in peace and a good deal in
- solitude. But the tranquillity was only local; DIN and PERANDI
- still flowed in other quarters: and we had one more sight of
- Gilbert Island violence. In the church, where we had wandered
- photographing, we were startled by a sudden piercing outcry. The
- scene, looking forth from the doors of that great hall of shadow,
- was unforgettable. The palms, the quaint and scattered houses, the
- flag of the island streaming from its tall staff, glowed with
- intolerable sunshine. In the midst two women rolled fighting on
- the grass. The combatants were the more easy to be distinguished,
- because the one was stripped to the RIDI and the other wore a
- holoku (sacque) of some lively colour. The first was uppermost,
- her teeth locked in her adversary's face, shaking her like a dog;
- the other impotently fought and scratched. So for a moment we saw
- them wallow and grapple there like vermin; then the mob closed and
- shut them in.
-
- It was a serious question that night if we should sleep ashore.
- But we were travellers, folk that had come far in quest of the
- adventurous; on the first sign of an adventure it would have been a
- singular inconsistency to have withdrawn; and we sent on board
- instead for our revolvers. Mindful of Taahauku, Mr. Rick, Mr.
- Osbourne, and Mrs. Stevenson held an assault of arms on the public
- highway, and fired at bottles to the admiration of the natives.
- Captain Reid of the EQUATOR stayed on shore with us to be at hand
- in case of trouble, and we retired to bed at the accustomed hour,
- agreeably excited by the day's events. The night was exquisite,
- the silence enchanting; yet as I lay in my hammock looking on the
- strong moonshine and the quiescent palms, one ugly picture haunted
- me of the two women, the naked and the clad, locked in that hostile
- embrace. The harm done was probably not much, yet I could have
- looked on death and massacre with less revolt. The return to these
- primeval weapons, the vision of man's beastliness, of his ferality,
- shocked in me a deeper sense than that with which we count the cost
- of battles. There are elements in our state and history which it
- is a pleasure to forget, which it is perhaps the better wisdom not
- to dwell on. Crime, pestilence, and death are in the day's work;
- the imagination readily accepts them. It instinctively rejects, on
- the contrary, whatever shall call up the image of our race upon its
- lowest terms, as the partner of beasts, beastly itself, dwelling
- pell-mell and hugger-mugger, hairy man with hairy woman, in the
- caves of old. And yet to be just to barbarous islanders we must
- not forget the slums and dens of our cities; I must not forget that
- I have passed dinnerward through Soho, and seen that which cured me
- of my dinner.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V - A TALE OF A TAPU - CONTINUED
-
-
-
- TUESDAY, JULY 16. - It rained in the night, sudden and loud, in
- Gilbert Island fashion. Before the day, the crowing of a cock
- aroused me and I wandered in the compound and along the street.
- The squall was blown by, the moon shone with incomparable lustre,
- the air lay dead as in a room, and yet all the isle sounded as
- under a strong shower, the eaves thickly pattering, the lofty palms
- dripping at larger intervals and with a louder note. In this bold
- nocturnal light the interior of the houses lay inscrutable, one
- lump of blackness, save when the moon glinted under the roof, and
- made a belt of silver, and drew the slanting shadows of the pillars
- on the floor. Nowhere in all the town was any lamp or ember; not a
- creature stirred; I thought I was alone to be awake; but the police
- were faithful to their duty; secretly vigilant, keeping account of
- time; and a little later, the watchman struck slowly and repeatedly
- on the cathedral bell; four o'clock, the warning signal. It seemed
- strange that, in a town resigned to drunkenness and tumult, curfew
- and reveille should still be sounded and still obeyed.
-
- The day came, and brought little change. The place still lay
- silent; the people slept, the town slept. Even the few who were
- awake, mostly women and children, held their peace and kept within
- under the strong shadow of the thatch, where you must stop and peer
- to see them. Through the deserted streets, and past the sleeping
- houses, a deputation took its way at an early hour to the palace;
- the king was suddenly awakened, and must listen (probably with a
- headache) to unpalatable truths. Mrs. Rick, being a sufficient
- mistress of that difficult tongue, was spokeswoman; she explained
- to the sick monarch that I was an intimate personal friend of Queen
- Victoria's; that immediately on my return I should make her a
- report upon Butaritari; and that if my house should have been again
- invaded by natives, a man-of-war would be despatched to make
- reprisals. It was scarce the fact - rather a just and necessary
- parable of the fact, corrected for latitude; and it certainly told
- upon the king. He was much affected; he had conceived the notion
- (he said) that I was a man of some importance, but not dreamed it
- was as bad as this; and the missionary house was tapu'd under a
- fine of fifty dollars.
-
- So much was announced on the return of the deputation; not any
- more; and I gathered subsequently that much more had passed. The
- protection gained was welcome. It had been the most annoying and
- not the least alarming feature of the day before, that our house
- was periodically filled with tipsy natives, twenty or thirty at a
- time, begging drink, fingering our goods, hard to be dislodged,
- awkward to quarrel with. Queen Victoria's friend (who was soon
- promoted to be her son) was free from these intrusions. Not only
- my house, but my neighbourhood as well, was left in peace; even on
- our walks abroad we were guarded and prepared for; and, like great
- persons visiting a hospital, saw only the fair side. For the
- matter of a week we were thus suffered to go out and in and live in
- a fool's paradise, supposing the king to have kept his word, the
- tapu to be revived and the island once more sober.
-
- TUESDAY, JULY 23. - We dined under a bare trellis erected for the
- Fourth of July; and here we used to linger by lamplight over coffee
- and tobacco. In that climate evening approaches without sensible
- chill; the wind dies out before sunset; heaven glows a while and
- fades, and darkens into the blueness of the tropical night; swiftly
- and insensibly the shadows thicken, the stars multiply their
- number; you look around you and the day is gone. It was then that
- we would see our Chinaman draw near across the compound in a
- lurching sphere of light, divided by his shadows; and with the
- coming of the lamp the night closed about the table. The faces of
- the company, the spars of the trellis, stood out suddenly bright on
- a ground of blue and silver, faintly designed with palm-tops and
- the peaked roofs of houses. Here and there the gloss upon a leaf,
- or the fracture of a stone, returned an isolated sparkle. All else
- had vanished. We hung there, illuminated like a galaxy of stars IN
- VACUO; we sat, manifest and blind, amid the general ambush of the
- darkness; and the islanders, passing with light footfalls and low
- voices in the sand of the road, lingered to observe us, unseen.
-
- On Tuesday the dusk had fallen, the lamp had just been brought,
- when a missile struck the table with a rattling smack and rebounded
- past my ear. Three inches to one side and this page had never been
- written; for the thing travelled like a cannon ball. It was
- supposed at the time to be a nut, though even at the time I thought
- it seemed a small one and fell strangely.
-
- WEDNESDAY, JULY 24. - The dusk had fallen once more, and the lamp
- been just brought out, when the same business was repeated. And
- again the missile whistled past my ear. One nut I had been willing
- to accept; a second, I rejected utterly. A cocoa-nut does not come
- slinging along on a windless evening, making an angle of about
- fifteen degrees with the horizon; cocoa-nuts do not fall on
- successive nights at the same hour and spot; in both cases,
- besides, a specific moment seemed to have been chosen, that when
- the lamp was just carried out, a specific person threatened, and
- that the head of the family. I may have been right or wrong, but I
- believed I was the mark of some intimidation; believed the missile
- was a stone, aimed not to hit, but to frighten.
-
- No idea makes a man more angry. I ran into the road, where the
- natives were as usual promenading in the dark; Maka joined me with
- a lantern; and I ran from one to another, glared in quite innocent
- faces, put useless questions, and proffered idle threats. Thence I
- carried my wrath (which was worthy the son of any queen in history)
- to the Ricks. They heard me with depression, assured me this trick
- of throwing a stone into a family dinner was not new; that it meant
- mischief, and was of a piece with the alarming disposition of the
- natives. And then the truth, so long concealed from us, came out.
- The king had broken his promise, he had defied the deputation; the
- tapu was still dormant, THE LAND WE LIVE IN still selling drink,
- and that quarter of the town disturbed and menaced by perpetual
- broils. But there was worse ahead: a feast was now preparing for
- the birthday of the little princess; and the tributary chiefs of
- Kuma and Little Makin were expected daily. Strong in a following
- of numerous and somewhat savage clansmen, each of these was
- believed, like a Douglas of old, to be of doubtful loyalty. Kuma
- (a little pot-bellied fellow) never visited the palace, never
- entered the town, but sat on the beach on a mat, his gun across his
- knees, parading his mistrust and scorn; Karaiti of Makin, although
- he was more bold, was not supposed to be more friendly; and not
- only were these vassals jealous of the throne, but the followers on
- either side shared in the animosity. Brawls had already taken
- place; blows had passed which might at any moment be repaid in
- blood. Some of the strangers were already here and already
- drinking; if the debauch continued after the bulk of them had come,
- a collision, perhaps a revolution, was to be expected.
-
- The sale of drink is in this group a measure of the jealousy of
- traders; one begins, the others are constrained to follow; and to
- him who has the most gin, and sells it the most recklessly, the
- lion's share of copra is assured. It is felt by all to be an
- extreme expedient, neither safe, decent, nor dignified. A trader
- on Tarawa, heated by an eager rivalry, brought many cases of gin.
- He told me he sat afterwards day and night in his house till it was
- finished, not daring to arrest the sale, not venturing to go forth,
- the bush all round him filled with howling drunkards. At night,
- above all, when he was afraid to sleep, and heard shots and voices
- about him in the darkness, his remorse was black.
-
- 'My God!' he reflected, 'if I was to lose my life on such a
- wretched business!' Often and often, in the story of the Gilberts,
- this scene has been repeated; and the remorseful trader sat beside
- his lamp, longing for the day, listening with agony for the sound
- of murder, registering resolutions for the future. For the
- business is easy to begin, but hazardous to stop. The natives are
- in their way a just and law-abiding people, mindful of their debts,
- docile to the voice of their own institutions; when the tapu is re-
- enforced they will cease drinking; but the white who seeks to
- antedate the movement by refusing liquor does so at his peril.
-
- Hence, in some degree, the anxiety and helplessness of Mr. Rick.
- He and Tom, alarmed by the rabblement of the SANS SOUCI, had
- stopped the sale; they had done so without danger, because THE LAND
- WE LIVE IN still continued selling; it was claimed, besides, that
- they had been the first to begin. What step could be taken? Could
- Mr. Rick visit Mr. Muller (with whom he was not on terms) and
- address him thus: 'I was getting ahead of you, now you are getting
- ahead of me, and I ask you to forego your profit. I got my place
- closed in safety, thanks to your continuing; but now I think you
- have continued long enough. I begin to be alarmed; and because I
- am afraid I ask you to confront a certain danger'? It was not to
- be thought of. Something else had to be found; and there was one
- person at one end of the town who was at least not interested in
- copra. There was little else to be said in favour of myself as an
- ambassador. I had arrived in the Wightman schooner, I was living
- in the Wightman compound, I was the daily associate of the Wightman
- coterie. It was egregious enough that I should now intrude unasked
- in the private affairs of Crawford's agent, and press upon him the
- sacrifice of his interests and the venture of his life. But bad as
- I might be, there was none better; since the affair of the stone I
- was, besides, sharp-set to be doing, the idea of a delicate
- interview attracted me, and I thought it policy to show myself
- abroad.
-
- The night was very dark. There was service in the church, and the
- building glimmered through all its crevices like a dim Kirk
- Allowa'. I saw few other lights, but was indistinctly aware of
- many people stirring in the darkness, and a hum and sputter of low
- talk that sounded stealthy. I believe (in the old phrase) my beard
- was sometimes on my shoulder as I went. Muller's was but partly
- lighted, and quite silent, and the gate was fastened. I could by
- no means manage to undo the latch. No wonder, since I found it
- afterwards to be four or five feet long - a fortification in
- itself. As I still fumbled, a dog came on the inside and sniffed
- suspiciously at my hands, so that I was reduced to calling 'House
- ahoy!' Mr. Muller came down and put his chin across the paling in
- the dark. 'Who is that?' said he, like one who has no mind to
- welcome strangers.
-
- 'My name is Stevenson,' said I.
-
- 'O, Mr. Stevens! I didn't know you. Come inside.' We stepped
- into the dark store, when I leaned upon the counter and he against
- the wall. All the light came from the sleeping-room, where I saw
- his family being put to bed; it struck full in my face, but Mr.
- Muller stood in shadow. No doubt he expected what was Coming, and
- sought the advantage of position; but for a man who wished to
- persuade and had nothing to conceal, mine was the preferable.
-
- 'Look here,' I began, 'I hear you are selling to the natives.'
-
- 'Others have done that before me,' he returned pointedly.
-
- 'No doubt,' said I, 'and I have nothing to do with the past, but
- the future. I want you to promise you will handle these spirits
- carefully.'
-
- 'Now what is your motive in this?' he asked, and then, with a
- sneer, 'Are you afraid of your life?'
-
- 'That is nothing to the purpose,' I replied. 'I know, and you
- know, these spirits ought not to be used at all.'
-
- 'Tom and Mr. Rick have sold them before.'
-
- 'I have nothing to do with Tom and Mr. Rick. All I know is I have
- heard them both refuse.'
-
- 'No, I suppose you have nothing to do with them. Then you are just
- afraid of your life.'
-
- 'Come now,' I cried, being perhaps a little stung, 'you know in
- your heart I am asking a reasonable thing. I don't ask you to lose
- your profit - though I would prefer to see no spirits brought here,
- as you would - '
-
- 'I don't say I wouldn't. I didn't begin this,' he interjected.
-
- 'No, I don't suppose you did,' said I. 'And I don't ask you to
- lose; I ask you to give me your word, man to man, that you will
- make no native drunk.'
-
- Up to now Mr. Muller had maintained an attitude very trying to my
- temper; but he had maintained it with difficulty, his sentiment
- being all upon my side; and here he changed ground for the worse.
- 'It isn't me that sells,' said he.
-
- 'No, it's that nigger,' I agreed. 'But he's yours to buy and sell;
- you have your hand on the nape of his neck; and I ask you - I have
- my wife here - to use the authority you have.'
-
- He hastily returned to his old ward. 'I don't deny I could if I
- wanted,' said he. 'But there's no danger, the natives are all
- quiet. You're just afraid of your life.'
-
- I do not like to be called a coward, even by implication; and here
- I lost my temper and propounded an untimely ultimatum. 'You had
- better put it plain,' I cried. 'Do you mean to refuse me what I
- ask?'
-
- 'I don't want either to refuse it or grant it,' he replied.
-
- 'You'll find you have to do the one thing or the other, and right
- now!' I cried, and then, striking into a happier vein, 'Come,' said
- I, 'you're a better sort than that. I see what's wrong with you -
- you think I came from the opposite camp. I see the sort of man you
- are, and you know that what I ask is right.'
-
- Again he changed ground. 'If the natives get any drink, it isn't
- safe to stop them,' he objected.
-
- 'I'll be answerable for the bar,' I said. 'We are three men and
- four revolvers; we'll come at a word, and hold the place against
- the village.'
-
- 'You don't know what you're talking about; it's too dangerous!' he
- cried.
-
- 'Look here,' said I, 'I don't mind much about losing that life you
- talk so much of; but I mean to lose it the way I want to, and that
- is, putting a stop to all this beastliness.'
-
- He talked a while about his duty to the firm; I minded not at all,
- I was secure of victory. He was but waiting to capitulate, and
- looked about for any potent to relieve the strain. In the gush of
- light from the bedroom door I spied a cigar-holder on the desk.
- 'That is well coloured,' said I.
-
- 'Will you take a cigar?' said he.
-
- I took it and held it up unlighted. 'Now,' said I, 'you promise
- me.'
-
- 'I promise you you won't have any trouble from natives that have
- drunk at my place,' he replied.
-
- 'That is all I ask,' said I, and showed it was not by immediately
- offering to try his stock.
-
- So far as it was anyway critical our interview here ended. Mr.
- Muller had thenceforth ceased to regard me as an emissary from his
- rivals, dropped his defensive attitude, and spoke as he believed.
- I could make out that he would already, had he dared, have stopped
- the sale himself. Not quite daring, it may be imagined how he
- resented the idea of interference from those who had (by his own
- statement) first led him on, then deserted him in the breach, and
- now (sitting themselves in safety) egged him on to a new peril,
- which was all gain to them, all loss to him! I asked him what he
- thought of the danger from the feast.
-
- 'I think worse of it than any of you,' he answered. 'They were
- shooting around here last night, and I heard the balls too. I said
- to myself, "That's bad." What gets me is why you should be making
- this row up at your end. I should be the first to go.'
-
- It was a thoughtless wonder. The consolation of being second is
- not great; the fact, not the order of going - there was our
- concern.
-
- Scott talks moderately of looking forward to a time of fighting
- 'with a feeling that resembled pleasure.' The resemblance seems
- rather an identity. In modern life, contact is ended; man grows
- impatient of endless manoeuvres; and to approach the fact, to find
- ourselves where we can push an advantage home, and stand a fair
- risk, and see at last what we are made of, stirs the blood. It was
- so at least with all my family, who bubbled with delight at the
- approach of trouble; and we sat deep into the night like a pack of
- schoolboys, preparing the revolvers and arranging plans against the
- morrow. It promised certainly to be a busy and eventful day. The
- Old Men were to be summoned to confront me on the question of the
- tapu; Muller might call us at any moment to garrison his bar; and
- suppose Muller to fail, we decided in a family council to take that
- matter into our own hands, THE LAND WE LIVE IN at the pistol's
- mouth, and with the polysyllabic Williams, dance to a new tune. As
- I recall our humour I think it would have gone hard with the
- mulatto.
-
- WEDNESDAY, JULY 24. - It was as well, and yet it was disappointing
- that these thunder-clouds rolled off in silence. Whether the Old
- Men recoiled from an interview with Queen Victoria's son, whether
- Muller had secretly intervened, or whether the step flowed
- naturally from the fears of the king and the nearness of the feast,
- the tapu was early that morning re-enforced; not a day too soon,
- from the manner the boats began to arrive thickly, and the town was
- filled with the big rowdy vassals of Karaiti.
-
- The effect lingered for some time on the minds of the traders; it
- was with the approval of all present that I helped to draw up a
- petition to the United States, praying for a law against the liquor
- trade in the Gilberts; and it was at this request that I added,
- under my own name, a brief testimony of what had passed; - useless
- pains; since the whole reposes, probably unread and possibly
- unopened, in a pigeon-hole at Washington.
-
- SUNDAY, JULY 28. - This day we had the afterpiece of the debauch.
- The king and queen, in European clothes, and followed by armed
- guards, attended church for the first time, and sat perched aloft
- in a precarious dignity under the barrel-hoops. Before sermon his
- majesty clambered from the dais, stood lopsidedly upon the gravel
- floor, and in a few words abjured drinking. The queen followed
- suit with a yet briefer allocution. All the men in church were
- next addressed in turn; each held up his right hand, and the affair
- was over - throne and church were reconciled.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI - THE FIVE DAYS' FESTIVAL
-
-
-
- THURSDAY, JULY 25. - The street was this day much enlivened by the
- presence of the men from Little Makin; they average taller than
- Butaritarians, and being on a holiday, went wreathed with yellow
- leaves and gorgeous in vivid colours. They are said to be more
- savage, and to be proud of the distinction. Indeed, it seemed to
- us they swaggered in the town, like plaided Highlanders upon the
- streets of Inverness, conscious of barbaric virtues.
-
- In the afternoon the summer parlour was observed to be packed with
- people; others standing outside and stooping to peer under the
- eaves, like children at home about a circus. It was the Makin
- company, rehearsing for the day of competition. Karaiti sat in the
- front row close to the singers, where we were summoned (I suppose
- in honour of Queen Victoria) to join him. A strong breathless heat
- reigned under the iron roof, and the air was heavy with the scent
- of wreaths. The singers, with fine mats about their loins, cocoa-
- nut feathers set in rings upon their fingers, and their heads
- crowned with yellow leaves, sat on the floor by companies. A
- varying number of soloists stood up for different songs; and these
- bore the chief part in the music. But the full force of the
- companies, even when not singing, contributed continuously to the
- effect, and marked the ictus of the measure, mimicking, grimacing,
- casting up their heads and eyes, fluttering the feathers on their
- fingers, clapping hands, or beating (loud as a kettledrum) on the
- left breast; the time was exquisite, the music barbarous, but full
- of conscious art. I noted some devices constantly employed. A
- sudden change would be introduced (I think of key) with no break of
- the measure, but emphasised by a sudden dramatic heightening of the
- voice and a swinging, general gesticulation. The voices of the
- soloists would begin far apart in a rude discord, and gradually
- draw together to a unison; which, when, they had reached, they were
- joined and drowned by the full chorus. The ordinary, hurried,
- barking unmelodious movement of the voices would at times be broken
- and glorified by a psalm-like strain of melody, often well
- constructed, or seeming so by contrast. There was much variety of
- measure, and towards the end of each piece, when the fun became
- fast and furious, a recourse to this figure -
-
- [Musical notation which cannot be produced. It means two/four time
- with quaver, quaver, crotchet repeated for three bars.]
-
- It is difficult to conceive what fire and devilry they get into
- these hammering finales; all go together, voices, hands, eyes,
- leaves, and fluttering finger-rings; the chorus swings to the eye,
- the song throbs on the ear; the faces are convulsed with enthusiasm
- and effort.
-
- Presently the troop stood up in a body, the drums forming a half-
- circle for the soloists, who were sometimes five or even more in
- number. The songs that followed were highly dramatic; though I had
- none to give me any explanation, I would at times make out some
- shadowy but decisive outline of a plot; and I was continually
- reminded of certain quarrelsome concerted scenes in grand operas at
- home; just so the single voices issue from and fall again into the
- general volume; just so do the performers separate and crowd
- together, brandish the raised hand, and roll the eye to heaven - or
- the gallery. Already this is beyond the Thespian model; the art of
- this people is already past the embryo: song, dance, drums,
- quartette and solo - it is the drama full developed although still
- in miniature. Of all so-called dancing in the South Seas, that
- which I saw in Butaritari stands easily the first. The HULA, as it
- may be viewed by the speedy globe-trotter in Honolulu, is surely
- the most dull of man's inventions, and the spectator yawns under
- its length as at a college lecture or a parliamentary debate. But
- the Gilbert Island dance leads on the mind; it thrills, rouses,
- subjugates; it has the essence of all art, an unexplored imminent
- significance. Where so many are engaged, and where all must make
- (at a given moment) the same swift, elaborate, and often arbitrary
- movement, the toil of rehearsal is of course extreme. But they
- begin as children. A child and a man may often be seen together in
- a maniap': the man sings and gesticulates, the child stands before
- him with streaming tears and tremulously copies him in act and
- sound; it is the Gilbert Island artist learning (as all artists
- must) his art in sorrow.
-
- I may seem to praise too much; here is a passage from my wife's
- diary, which proves that I was not alone in being moved, and
- completes the picture:- 'The conductor gave the cue, and all the
- dancers, waving their arms, swaying their bodies, and clapping
- their breasts in perfect time, opened with an introductory. The
- performers remained seated, except two, and once three, and twice a
- single soloist. These stood in the group, making a slight movement
- with the feet and rhythmical quiver of the body as they sang.
- There was a pause after the introductory, and then the real
- business of the opera - for it was no less - began; an opera where
- every singer was an accomplished actor. The leading man, in an
- impassioned ecstasy which possessed him from head to foot, seemed
- transfigured; once it was as though a strong wind had swept over
- the stage - their arms, their feathered fingers thrilling with an
- emotion that shook my nerves as well: heads and bodies followed
- like a field of grain before a gust. My blood came hot and cold,
- tears pricked my eyes, my head whirled, I felt an almost
- irresistible impulse to join the dancers. One drama, I think, I
- very nearly understood. A fierce and savage old man took the solo
- part. He sang of the birth of a prince, and how he was tenderly
- rocked in his mother's arms; of his boyhood, when he excelled his
- fellows in swimming, climbing, and all athletic sports; of his
- youth, when he went out to sea with his boat and fished; of his
- manhood, when he married a wife who cradled a son of his own in her
- arms. Then came the alarm of war, and a great battle, of which for
- a time the issue was doubtful; but the hero conquered, as he always
- does, and with a tremendous burst of the victors the piece closed.
- There were also comic pieces, which caused great amusement. During
- one, an old man behind me clutched me by the arm, shook his finger
- in my face with a roguish smile, and said something with a chuckle,
- which I took to be the equivalent of "O, you women, you women; it
- is true of you all!" I fear it was not complimentary. At no time
- was there the least sign of the ugly indecency of the eastern
- islands. All was poetry pure and simple. The music itself was as
- complex as our own, though constructed on an entirely different
- basis; once or twice I was startled by a bit of something very like
- the best English sacred music, but it was only for an instant. At
- last there was a longer pause, and this time the dancers were all
- on their feet. As the drama went on, the interest grew. The
- performers appealed to each other, to the audience, to the heaven
- above; they took counsel with each other, the conspirators drew
- together in a knot; it was just an opera, the drums coming in at
- proper intervals, the tenor, baritone, and bass all where they
- should be - except that the voices were all of the same calibre. A
- woman once sang from the back row with a very fine contralto voice
- spoilt by being made artificially nasal; I notice all the women
- affect that unpleasantness. At one time a boy of angelic beauty
- was the soloist; and at another, a child of six or eight, doubtless
- an infant phenomenon being trained, was placed in the centre. The
- little fellow was desperately frightened and embarrassed at first,
- but towards the close warmed up to his work and showed much
- dramatic talent. The changing expressions on the faces of the
- dancers were so speaking, that it seemed a great stupidity not to
- understand them.'
-
- Our neighbour at this performance, Karaiti, somewhat favours his
- Butaritarian majesty in shape and feature, being, like him, portly,
- bearded, and Oriental. In character he seems the reverse: alert,
- smiling, jovial, jocular, industrious. At home in his own island,
- he labours himself like a slave, and makes his people labour like a
- slave-driver. He takes an interest in ideas. George the trader
- told him about flying-machines. 'Is that true, George?' he asked.
- 'It is in the papers,' replied George. 'Well,' said Karaiti, 'if
- that man can do it with machinery, I can do it without'; and he
- designed and made a pair of wings, strapped them on his shoulders,
- went to the end of a pier, launched himself into space, and fell
- bulkily into the sea. His wives fished him out, for his wings
- hindered him in swimming. 'George,' said he, pausing as he went up
- to change, 'George, you lie.' He had eight wives, for his small
- realm still follows ancient customs; but he showed embarrassment
- when this was mentioned to my wife. 'Tell her I have only brought
- one here,' he said anxiously. Altogether the Black Douglas pleased
- us much; and as we heard fresh details of the king's uneasiness,
- and saw for ourselves that all the weapons in the summer parlour
- had been hid, we watched with the more admiration the cause of all
- this anxiety rolling on his big legs, with his big smiling face,
- apparently unarmed, and certainly unattended, through the hostile
- town. The Red Douglas, pot-bellied Kuma, having perhaps heard word
- of the debauch, remained upon his fief; his vassals thus came
- uncommanded to the feast, and swelled the following of Karaiti.
-
- FRIDAY, JULY 26. - At night in the dark, the singers of Makin
- paraded in the road before our house and sang the song of the
- princess. 'This is the day; she was born to-day; Nei Kamaunave was
- born to-day - a beautiful princess, Queen of Butaritari.' So I was
- told it went in endless iteration. The song was of course out of
- season, and the performance only a rehearsal. But it was a
- serenade besides; a delicate attention to ourselves from our new
- friend, Karaiti.
-
- SATURDAY, JULY 27. - We had announced a performance of the magic
- lantern to-night in church; and this brought the king to visit us.
- In honour of the Black Douglas (I suppose) his usual two guardsmen
- were now increased to four; and the squad made an outlandish figure
- as they straggled after him, in straw hats, kilts and jackets.
- Three carried their arms reversed, the butts over their shoulders,
- the muzzles menacing the king's plump back; the fourth had passed
- his weapon behind his neck, and held it there with arms extended
- like a backboard. The visit was extraordinarily long. The king,
- no longer galvanised with gin, said and did nothing. He sat
- collapsed in a chair and let a cigar go out. It was hot, it was
- sleepy, it was cruel dull; there was no resource but to spy in the
- countenance of Tebureimoa for some remaining trait of MR. CORPSE
- the butcher. His hawk nose, crudely depressed and flattened at the
- point, did truly seem to us to smell of midnight murder. When he
- took his leave, Maka bade me observe him going down the stair (or
- rather ladder) from the verandah. 'Old man,' said Maka. 'Yes,'
- said I, 'and yet I suppose not old man.' 'Young man,' returned
- Maka, 'perhaps fo'ty.' And I have heard since he is most likely
- younger.
-
- While the magic lantern was showing, I skulked without in the dark.
- The voice of Maka, excitedly explaining the Scripture slides,
- seemed to fill not the church only, but the neighbourhood. All
- else was silent. Presently a distant sound of singing arose and
- approached; and a procession drew near along the road, the hot
- clean smell of the men and women striking in my face delightfully.
- At the corner, arrested by the voice of Maka and the lightening and
- darkening of the church, they paused. They had no mind to go
- nearer, that was plain. They were Makin people, I believe,
- probably staunch heathens, contemners of the missionary and his
- works. Of a sudden, however, a man broke from their company, took
- to his heels, and fled into the church; next moment three had
- followed him; the next it was a covey of near upon a score, all
- pelting for their lives. So the little band of the heathen paused
- irresolute at the corner, and melted before the attractions of a
- magic lantern, like a glacier in spring. The more staunch vainly
- taunted the deserters; three fled in a guilty silence, but still
- fled; and when at length the leader found the wit or the authority
- to get his troop in motion and revive the singing, it was with much
- diminished forces that they passed musically on up the dark road.
-
- Meanwhile inside the luminous pictures brightened and faded. I
- stood for some while unobserved in the rear of the spectators, when
- I could hear just in front of me a pair of lovers following the
- show with interest, the male playing the part of interpreter and
- (like Adam) mingling caresses with his lecture. The wild animals,
- a tiger in particular, and that old school-treat favourite, the
- sleeper and the mouse, were hailed with joy; but the chief marvel
- and delight was in the gospel series. Maka, in the opinion of his
- aggrieved wife, did not properly rise to the occasion. 'What is
- the matter with the man? Why can't he talk?' she cried. The
- matter with the man, I think, was the greatness of the opportunity;
- he reeled under his good fortune; and whether he did ill or well,
- the exposure of these pious 'phantoms' did as a matter of fact
- silence in all that part of the island the voice of the scoffer.
- 'Why then,' the word went round, 'why then, the Bible is true!'
- And on our return afterwards we were told the impression was yet
- lively, and those who had seen might be heard telling those who had
- not, 'O yes, it is all true; these things all happened, we have
- seen the pictures.' The argument is not so childish as it seems;
- for I doubt if these islanders are acquainted with any other mode
- of representation but photography; so that the picture of an event
- (on the old melodrama principle that 'the camera cannot lie,
- Joseph,') would appear strong proof of its occurrence. The fact
- amused us the more because our slides were some of them ludicrously
- silly, and one (Christ before Pilate) was received with shouts of
- merriment, in which even Maka was constrained to join.
-
- SUNDAY, JULY 28. - Karaiti came to ask for a repetition of the
- 'phantoms' - this was the accepted word - and, having received a
- promise, turned and left my humble roof without the shadow of a
- salutation. I felt it impolite to have the least appearance of
- pocketing a slight; the times had been too difficult, and were
- still too doubtful; and Queen Victoria's son was bound to maintain
- the honour of his house. Karaiti was accordingly summoned that
- evening to the Ricks, where Mrs. Rick fell foul of him in words,
- and Queen Victoria's son assailed him with indignant looks. I was
- the ass with the lion's skin; I could not roar in the language of
- the Gilbert Islands; but I could stare. Karaiti declared he had
- meant no offence; apologised in a sound, hearty, gentlemanly
- manner; and became at once at his ease. He had in a dagger to
- examine, and announced he would come to price it on the morrow, to-
- day being Sunday; this nicety in a heathen with eight wives
- surprised me. The dagger was 'good for killing fish,' he said
- roguishly; and was supposed to have his eye upon fish upon two
- legs. It is at least odd that in Eastern Polynesia fish was the
- accepted euphemism for the human sacrifice. Asked as to the
- population of his island, Karaiti called out to his vassals who sat
- waiting him outside the door, and they put it at four hundred and
- fifty; but (added Karaiti jovially) there will soon be plenty more,
- for all the women are in the family way. Long before we separated
- I had quite forgotten his offence. He, however, still bore it in
- mind; and with a very courteous inspiration returned early on the
- next day, paid us a long visit, and punctiliously said farewell
- when he departed.
-
- MONDAY, JULY 29. - The great day came round at last. In the first
- hours the night was startled by the sound of clapping hands and the
- chant of Nei Kamaunava; its melancholy, slow, and somewhat menacing
- measures broken at intervals by a formidable shout. The little
- morsel of humanity thus celebrated in the dark hours was observed
- at midday playing on the green entirely naked, and equally
- unobserved and unconcerned.
-
- The summer parlour on its artificial islet, relieved against the
- shimmering lagoon, and shimmering itself with sun and tinned iron,
- was all day crowded about by eager men and women. Within, it was
- boxed full of islanders, of any age and size, and in every degree
- of nudity and finery. So close we squatted, that at one time I had
- a mighty handsome woman on my knees, two little naked urchins
- having their feet against my back. There might be a dame in full
- attire of HOLOKU and hat and flowers; and her next neighbour might
- the next moment strip some little rag of a shift from her fat
- shoulders and come out a monument of flesh, painted rather than
- covered by the hairbreadth RIDI. Little ladies who thought
- themselves too great to appear undraped upon so high a festival
- were seen to pause outside in the bright sunshine, their miniature
- ridis in their hand; a moment more and they were full-dressed and
- entered the concert-room.
-
- At either end stood up to sing, or sat down to rest, the alternate
- companies of singers; Kuma and Little Makin on the north,
- Butaritari and its conjunct hamlets on the south; both groups
- conspicuous in barbaric bravery. In the midst, between these rival
- camps of troubadours, a bench was placed; and here the king and
- queen throned it, some two or three feet above the crowded audience
- on the floor - Tebureimoa as usual in his striped pyjamas with a
- satchel strapped across one shoulder, doubtless (in the island
- fashion) to contain his pistols; the queen in a purple HOLOKU, her
- abundant hair let down, a fan in her hand. The bench was turned
- facing to the strangers, a piece of well-considered civility; and
- when it was the turn of Butaritari to sing, the pair must twist
- round on the bench, lean their elbows on the rail, and turn to us
- the spectacle of their broad backs. The royal couple occasionally
- solaced themselves with a clay pipe; and the pomp of state was
- further heightened by the rifles of a picket of the guard.
-
- With this kingly countenance, and ourselves squatted on the ground,
- we heard several songs from one side or the other. Then royalty
- and its guards withdrew, and Queen Victoria's son and daughter-in-
- law were summoned by acclamation to the vacant throne. Our pride
- was perhaps a little modified when we were joined on our high
- places by a certain thriftless loafer of a white; and yet I was
- glad too, for the man had a smattering of native, and could give me
- some idea of the subject of the songs. One was patriotic, and
- dared Tembinok' of Apemama, the terror of the group, to an
- invasion. One mixed the planting of taro and the harvest-home.
- Some were historical, and commemorated kings and the illustrious
- chances of their time, such as a bout of drinking or a war. One,
- at least, was a drama of domestic interest, excellently played by
- the troop from Makin. It told the story of a man who has lost his
- wife, at first bewails her loss, then seeks another: the earlier
- strains (or acts) are played exclusively by men; but towards the
- end a woman appears, who has just lost her husband; and I suppose
- the pair console each other, for the finale seemed of happy omen.
- Of some of the songs my informant told me briefly they were 'like
- about the WEEMEN'; this I could have guessed myself. Each side (I
- should have said) was strengthened by one or two women. They were
- all soloists, did not very often join in the performance, but stood
- disengaged at the back part of the stage, and looked (in RIDI,
- necklace, and dressed hair) for all the world like European ballet-
- dancers. When the song was anyway broad these ladies came
- particularly to the front; and it was singular to see that, after
- each entry, the PREMIERE DANSEUSE pretended to be overcome by
- shame, as though led on beyond what she had meant, and her male
- assistants made a feint of driving her away like one who had
- disgraced herself. Similar affectations accompany certain truly
- obscene dances of Samoa, where they are very well in place. Here
- it was different. The words, perhaps, in this free-spoken world,
- were gross enough to make a carter blush; and the most suggestive
- feature was this feint of shame. For such parts the women showed
- some disposition; they were pert, they were neat, they were
- acrobatic, they were at times really amusing, and some of them were
- pretty. But this is not the artist's field; there is the whole
- width of heaven between such capering and ogling, and the strange
- rhythmic gestures, and strange, rapturous, frenzied faces with
- which the best of the male dancers held us spellbound through a
- Gilbert Island ballet.
-
- Almost from the first it was apparent that the people of the city
- were defeated. I might have thought them even good, only I had the
- other troop before my eyes to correct my standard, and remind me
- continually of 'the little more, and how much it is.' Perceiving
- themselves worsted, the choir of Butaritari grew confused,
- blundered, and broke down; amid this hubbub of unfamiliar intervals
- I should not myself have recognised the slip, but the audience were
- quick to catch it, and to jeer. To crown all, the Makin company
- began a dance of truly superlative merit. I know not what it was
- about, I was too much absorbed to ask. In one act a part of the
- chorus, squealing in some strange falsetto, produced very much the
- effect of our orchestra; in another, the dancers, leaping like
- jumping-jacks, with arms extended, passed through and through each
- other's ranks with extraordinary speed, neatness, and humour. A
- more laughable effect I never saw; in any European theatre it would
- have brought the house down, and the island audience roared with
- laughter and applause. This filled up the measure for the rival
- company, and they forgot themselves and decency. After each act or
- figure of the ballet, the performers pause a moment standing, and
- the next is introduced by the clapping of hands in triplets. Not
- until the end of the whole ballet do they sit down, which is the
- signal for the rivals to stand up. But now all rules were to be
- broken. During the interval following on this great applause, the
- company of Butaritari leaped suddenly to their feet and most
- unhandsomely began a performance of their own. It was strange to
- see the men of Makin staring; I have seen a tenor in Europe stare
- with the same blank dignity into a hissing theatre; but presently,
- to my surprise, they sobered down, gave up the unsung remainder of
- their ballet, resumed their seats, and suffered their ungallant
- adversaries to go on and finish. Nothing would suffice. Again, at
- the first interval, Butaritari unhandsomely cut in; Makin,
- irritated in turn, followed the example; and the two companies of
- dancers remained permanently standing, continuously clapping hands,
- and regularly cutting across each other at each pause. I expected
- blows to begin with any moment; and our position in the midst was
- highly unstrategical. But the Makin people had a better thought;
- and upon a fresh interruption turned and trooped out of the house.
- We followed them, first because these were the artists, second
- because they were guests and had been scurvily ill-used. A large
- population of our neighbours did the same, so that the causeway was
- filled from end to end by the procession of deserters; and the
- Butaritari choir was left to sing for its own pleasure in an empty
- house, having gained the point and lost the audience. It was
- surely fortunate that there was no one drunk; but, drunk or sober,
- where else would a scene so irritating have concluded without
- blows?
-
- The last stage and glory of this auspicious day was of our own
- providing - the second and positively the last appearance of the
- phantoms. All round the church, groups sat outside, in the night,
- where they could see nothing; perhaps ashamed to enter, certainly
- finding some shadowy pleasure in the mere proximity. Within, about
- one-half of the great shed was densely packed with people. In the
- midst, on the royal dais, the lantern luminously smoked; chance
- rays of light struck out the earnest countenance of our Chinaman
- grinding the hand-organ; a fainter glimmer showed off the rafters
- and their shadows in the hollow of the roof; the pictures shone and
- vanished on the screen; and as each appeared, there would run a
- hush, a whisper, a strong shuddering rustle, and a chorus of small
- cries among the crowd. There sat by me the mate of a wrecked
- schooner. 'They would think this a strange sight in Europe or the
- States,' said he, 'going on in a building like this, all tied with
- bits of string.'
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII - HUSBAND AND WIFE
-
-
-
- THE trader accustomed to the manners of Eastern Polynesia has a
- lesson to learn among the Gilberts. The RIDI is but a spare
- attire; as late as thirty years back the women went naked until
- marriage; within ten years the custom lingered; and these facts,
- above all when heard in description, conveyed a very false idea of
- the manners of the group. A very intelligent missionary described
- it (in its former state) as a 'Paradise of naked women' for the
- resident whites. It was at least a platonic Paradise, where
- Lothario ventured at his peril. Since 1860, fourteen whites have
- perished on a single island, all for the same cause, all found
- where they had no business, and speared by some indignant father of
- a family; the figure was given me by one of their contemporaries
- who had been more prudent and survived. The strange persistence of
- these fourteen martyrs might seem to point to monomania or a series
- of romantic passions; gin is the more likely key. The poor
- buzzards sat alone in their houses by an open case; they drank;
- their brain was fired; they stumbled towards the nearest houses on
- chance; and the dart went through their liver. In place of a
- Paradise the trader found an archipelago of fierce husbands and of
- virtuous women. 'Of course if you wish to make love to them, it's
- the same as anywhere else,' observed a trader innocently; but he
- and his companions rarely so choose.
-
- The trader must be credited with a virtue: he often makes a kind
- and loyal husband. Some of the worst beachcombers in the Pacific,
- some of the last of the old school, have fallen in my path, and
- some of them were admirable to their native wives, and one made a
- despairing widower. The position of a trader's wife in the
- Gilberts is, besides, unusually enviable. She shares the
- immunities of her husband. Curfew in Butaritari sounds for her in
- vain. Long after the bell is rung and the great island ladies are
- confined for the night to their own roof, this chartered libertine
- may scamper and giggle through the deserted streets or go down to
- bathe in the dark. The resources of the store are at her hand; she
- goes arrayed like a queen, and feasts delicately everyday upon
- tinned meats. And she who was perhaps of no regard or station
- among natives sits with captains, and is entertained on board of
- schooners. Five of these privileged dames were some time our
- neighbours. Four were handsome skittish lasses, gamesome like
- children, and like children liable to fits of pouting. They wore
- dresses by day, but there was a tendency after dark to strip these
- lendings and to career and squall about the compound in the
- aboriginal RIDI. Games of cards were continually played, with
- shells for counters; their course was much marred by cheating; and
- the end of a round (above all if a man was of the party) resolved
- itself into a scrimmage for the counters. The fifth was a matron.
- It was a picture to see her sail to church on a Sunday, a parasol
- in hand, a nursemaid following, and the baby buried in a trade hat
- and armed with a patent feeding-bottle. The service was enlivened
- by her continual supervision and correction of the maid. It was
- impossible not to fancy the baby was a doll, and the church some
- European playroom. All these women were legitimately married. It
- is true that the certificate of one, when she proudly showed it,
- proved to run thus, that she was 'married for one night,' and her
- gracious partner was at liberty to 'send her to hell' the next
- morning; but she was none the wiser or the worse for the dastardly
- trick. Another, I heard, was married on a work of mine in a
- pirated edition; it answered the purpose as well as a Hall Bible.
- Notwithstanding all these allurements of social distinction, rare
- food and raiment, a comparative vacation from toil, and legitimate
- marriage contracted on a pirated edition, the trader must sometimes
- seek long before he can be mated. While I was in the group one had
- been eight months on the quest, and he was still a bachelor.
-
- Within strictly native society the old laws and practices were
- harsh, but not without a certain stamp of high-mindedness.
- Stealthy adultery was punished with death; open elopement was
- properly considered virtue in comparison, and compounded for a fine
- in land. The male adulterer alone seems to have been punished. It
- is correct manners for a jealous man to hang himself; a jealous
- woman has a different remedy - she bites her rival. Ten or twenty
- years ago it was a capital offence to raise a woman's RIDI; to this
- day it is still punished with a heavy fine; and the garment itself
- is still symbolically sacred. Suppose a piece of land to be
- disputed in Butaritari, the claimant who shall first hang a RIDI on
- the tapu-post has gained his cause, since no one can remove or
- touch it but himself.
-
- The RIDI was the badge not of the woman but the wife, the mark not
- of her sex but of her station. It was the collar on the slave's
- neck, the brand on merchandise. The adulterous woman seems to have
- been spared; were the husband offended, it would be a poor
- consolation to send his draught cattle to the shambles. Karaiti,
- to this day, calls his eight wives 'his horses,' some trader having
- explained to him the employment of these animals on farms; and
- Nanteitei hired out his wives to do mason-work. Husbands, at least
- when of high rank, had the power of life and death; even whites
- seem to have possessed it; and their wives, when they had
- transgressed beyond forgiveness, made haste to pronounce the
- formula of deprecation - I KANA KIM. This form of words had so
- much virtue that a condemned criminal repeating it on a particular
- day to the king who had condemned him, must be instantly released.
- It is an offer of abasement, and, strangely enough, the reverse -
- the imitation - is a common vulgar insult in Great Britain to this
- day. I give a scene between a trader and his Gilbert Island wife,
- as it was told me by the husband, now one of the oldest residents,
- but then a freshman in the group.
-
- 'Go and light a fire,' said the trader, 'and when I have brought
- this oil I will cook some fish.' The woman grunted at him, island
- fashion. 'I am not a pig that you should grunt at me,' said he.
-
- 'I know you are not a pig,' said the woman, 'neither am I your
- slave.'
-
- 'To be sure you are not my slave, and if you do not care to stop
- with me, you had better go home to your people,' said he. 'But in
- the mean time go and light the fire; and when I have brought this
- oil I will cook some fish.'
-
- She went as if to obey; and presently when the trader looked she
- had built a fire so big that the cook-house was catching in flames.
-
- 'I KANA KIM!' she cried, as she saw him coming; but he recked not,
- and hit her with a cooking-pot. The leg pierced her skull, blood
- spouted, it was thought she was a dead woman, and the natives
- surrounded the house in a menacing expectation. Another white was
- present, a man of older experience. 'You will have us both killed
- if you go on like this,' he cried. 'She had said I KANA KIM!' If
- she had not said I KANA KIM he might have struck her with a
- caldron. It was not the blow that made the crime, but the
- disregard of an accepted formula.
-
- Polygamy, the particular sacredness of wives, their semi-servile
- state, their seclusion in kings' harems, even their privilege of
- biting, all would seem to indicate a Mohammedan society and the
- opinion of the soullessness of woman. And not so in the least. It
- is a mere appearance. After you have studied these extremes in one
- house, you may go to the next and find all reversed, the woman the
- mistress, the man only the first of her thralls. The authority is
- not with the husband as such, nor the wife as such. It resides in
- the chief or the chief-woman; in him or her who has inherited the
- lands of the clan, and stands to the clansman in the place of
- parent, exacting their service, answerable for their fines. There
- is but the one source of power and the one ground of dignity -
- rank. The king married a chief-woman; she became his menial, and
- must work with her hands on Messrs. Wightman's pier. The king
- divorced her; she regained at once her former state and power. She
- married the Hawaiian sailor, and behold the man is her flunkey and
- can be shown the door at pleasure. Nay, and such low-born lords
- are even corrected physically, and, like grown but dutiful
- children, must endure the discipline.
-
- We were intimate in one such household, that of Nei Takauti and Nan
- Tok'; I put the lady first of necessity. During one week of fool's
- paradise, Mrs. Stevenson had gone alone to the sea-side of the
- island after shells. I am very sure the proceeding was unsafe; and
- she soon perceived a man and woman watching her. Do what she
- would, her guardians held her steadily in view; and when the
- afternoon began to fall, and they thought she had stayed long
- enough, took her in charge, and by signs and broken English ordered
- her home. On the way the lady drew from her earring-hole a clay
- pipe, the husband lighted it, and it was handed to my unfortunate
- wife, who knew not how to refuse the incommodious favour; and when
- they were all come to our house, the pair sat down beside her on
- the floor, and improved the occasion with prayer. From that day
- they were our family friends; bringing thrice a day the beautiful
- island garlands of white flowers, visiting us any evening, and
- frequently carrying us down to their own maniap' in return, the
- woman leading Mrs. Stevenson by the hand like one child with
- another.
-
- Nan Tok', the husband, was young, extremely handsome, of the most
- approved good humour, and suffering in his precarious station from
- suppressed high spirits. Nei Takauti, the wife, was getting old;
- her grown son by a former marriage had just hanged himself before
- his mother's eyes in despair at a well-merited rebuke. Perhaps she
- had never been beautiful, but her face was full of character, her
- eye of sombre fire. She was a high chief-woman, but by a strange
- exception for a person of her rank, was small, spare, and sinewy,
- with lean small hands and corded neck. Her full dress of an
- evening was invariably a white chemise - and for adornment, green
- leaves (or sometimes white blossoms) stuck in her hair and thrust
- through her huge earring-holes. The husband on the contrary
- changed to view like a kaleidoscope. Whatever pretty thing my wife
- might have given to Nei Takauti - a string of beads, a ribbon, a
- piece of bright fabric - appeared the next evening on the person of
- Nan Tok'. It was plain he was a clothes-horse; that he wore
- livery; that, in a word, he was his wife's wife. They reversed the
- parts indeed, down to the least particular; it was the husband who
- showed himself the ministering angel in the hour of pain, while the
- wife displayed the apathy and heartlessness of the proverbial man.
-
- When Nei Takauti had a headache Nan Tok' was full of attention and
- concern. When the husband had a cold and a racking toothache the
- wife heeded not, except to jeer. It is always the woman's part to
- fill and light the pipe; Nei Takauti handed hers in silence to the
- wedded page; but she carried it herself, as though the page were
- not entirely trusted. Thus she kept the money, but it was he who
- ran the errands, anxiously sedulous. A cloud on her face dimmed
- instantly his beaming looks; on an early visit to their maniap' my
- wife saw he had cause to be wary. Nan Tok' had a friend with him,
- a giddy young thing, of his own age and sex; and they had worked
- themselves into that stage of jocularity when consequences are too
- often disregarded. Nei Takauti mentioned her own name. Instantly
- Nan Tok' held up two fingers, his friend did likewise, both in an
- ecstasy of slyness. It was plain the lady had two names; and from
- the nature of their merriment, and the wrath that gathered on her
- brow, there must be something ticklish in the second. The husband
- pronounced it; a well-directed cocoa-nut from the hand of his wife
- caught him on the side of the head, and the voices and the mirth of
- these indiscreet young gentlemen ceased for the day.
-
- The people of Eastern Polynesia are never at a loss; their
- etiquette is absolute and plenary; in every circumstance it tells
- them what to do and how to do it. The Gilbertines are seemingly
- more free, and pay for their freedom (like ourselves) in frequent
- perplexity. This was often the case with the topsy-turvy couple.
- We had once supplied them during a visit with a pipe and tobacco;
- and when they had smoked and were about to leave, they found
- themselves confronted with a problem: should they take or leave
- what remained of the tobacco? The piece of plug was taken up, it
- was laid down again, it was handed back and forth, and argued over,
- till the wife began to look haggard and the husband elderly. They
- ended by taking it, and I wager were not yet clear of the compound
- before they were sure they had decided wrong. Another time they
- had been given each a liberal cup of coffee, and Nan Tok' with
- difficulty and disaffection made an end of his. Nei Takauti had
- taken some, she had no mind for more, plainly conceived it would be
- a breach of manners to set down the cup unfinished, and ordered her
- wedded retainer to dispose of what was left. 'I have swallowed all
- I can, I cannot swallow more, it is a physical impossibility,' he
- seemed to say; and his stern officer reiterated her commands with
- secret imperative signals. Luckless dog! but in mere humanity we
- came to the rescue and removed the cup.
-
- I cannot but smile over this funny household; yet I remember the
- good souls with affection and respect. Their attention to
- ourselves was surprising. The garlands are much esteemed, the
- blossoms must be sought far and wide; and though they had many
- retainers to call to their aid, we often saw themselves passing
- afield after the blossoms, and the wife engaged with her own in
- putting them together. It was no want of only that disregard so
- incident to husbands, that made Nei Takauti despise the sufferings
- of Nan Tok'. When my wife was unwell she proved a diligent and
- kindly nurse; and the pair, to the extreme embarrassment of the
- sufferer, became fixtures in the sick-room. This rugged, capable,
- imperious old dame, with the wild eyes, had deep and tender
- qualities: her pride in her young husband it seemed that she
- dissembled, fearing possibly to spoil him; and when she spoke of
- her dead son there came something tragic in her face. But I seemed
- to trace in the Gilbertines a virility of sense and sentiment which
- distinguishes them (like their harsh and uncouth language) from
- their brother islanders in the east.
-
-
-
-
- PART IV: THE GILBERTS - APEMAMA
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I - THE KING OF APEMAMA: THE ROYAL TRADER
-
-
-
- THERE is one great personage in the Gilberts: Tembinok' of
- Apemama: solely conspicuous, the hero of song, the butt of gossip.
- Through the rest of the group the kings are slain or fallen in
- tutelage: Tembinok' alone remains, the last tyrant, the last erect
- vestige of a dead society. The white man is everywhere else,
- building his houses, drinking his gin, getting in and out of
- trouble with the weak native governments. There is only one white
- on Apemama, and he on sufferance, living far from court, and
- hearkening and watching his conduct like a mouse in a cat's ear.
- Through all the other islands a stream of native visitors comes and
- goes, travelling by families, spending years on the grand tour.
- Apemama alone is left upon one side, the tourist dreading to risk
- himself within the clutch of Tembinok'. And fear of the same
- Gorgon follows and troubles them at home. Maiana once paid him
- tribute; he once fell upon and seized Nonuti: first steps to the
- empire of the archipelago. A British warship coming on the scene,
- the conqueror was driven to disgorge, his career checked in the
- outset, his dear-bought armoury sunk in his own lagoon. But the
- impression had been made; periodical fear of him still shakes the
- islands; rumour depicts him mustering his canoes for a fresh
- onfall; rumour can name his destination; and Tembinok' figures in
- the patriotic war-songs of the Gilberts like Napoleon in those of
- our grandfathers.
-
- We were at sea, bound from Mariki to Nonuti and Tapituea, when the
- wind came suddenly fair for Apemama. The course was at once
- changed; all hands were turned-to to clean ship, the decks holy-
- stoned, all the cabin washed, the trade-room overhauled. In all
- our cruising we never saw the EQUATOR so smart as she was made for
- Tembinok'. Nor was Captain Reid alone in these coquetries; for,
- another schooner chancing to arrive during my stay in Apemama, I
- found that she also was dandified for the occasion. And the two
- cases stand alone in my experience of South Sea traders.
-
- We had on board a family of native tourists, from the grandsire to
- the babe in arms, trying (against an extraordinary series of ill-
- luck) to regain their native island of Peru. Five times already
- they had paid their fare and taken ship; five times they had been
- disappointed, dropped penniless upon strange islands, or carried
- back to Butaritari, whence they sailed. This last attempt had been
- no better-starred; their provisions were exhausted. Peru was
- beyond hope, and they had cheerfully made up their minds to a fresh
- stage of exile in Tapituea or Nonuti. With this slant of wind
- their random destination became once more changed; and like the
- Calendar's pilot, when the 'black mountains' hove in view, they
- changed colour and beat upon their breasts. Their camp, which was
- on deck in the ship's waist, resounded with complaint. They would
- be set to work, they must become slaves, escape was hopeless, they
- must live and toil and die in Apemama, in the tyrant's den. With
- this sort of talk they so greatly terrified their children, that
- one (a big hulking boy) must at last be torn screaming from the
- schooner's side. And their fears were wholly groundless. I have
- little doubt they were not suffered to be idle; but I can vouch for
- it that they were kindly and generously used. For, the matter of a
- year later, I was once more shipmate with these inconsistent
- wanderers on board the JANET NICOLL. Their fare was paid by
- Tembinok'; they who had gone ashore from the EQUATOR destitute,
- reappeared upon the JANET with new clothes, laden with mats and
- presents, and bringing with them a magazine of food, on which they
- lived like fighting-cocks throughout the voyage; I saw them at
- length repatriated, and I must say they showed more concern on
- quitting Apemama than delight at reaching home.
-
- We entered by the north passage (Sunday, September 1st), dodging
- among shoals. It was a day of fierce equatorial sunshine; but the
- breeze was strong and chill; and the mate, who conned the schooner
- from the cross-trees, returned shivering to the deck. The lagoon
- was thick with many-tinted wavelets; a continuous roaring of the
- outer sea overhung the anchorage; and the long, hollow crescent of
- palm ruffled and sparkled in the wind. Opposite our berth the
- beach was seen to be surmounted for some distance by a terrace of
- white coral seven or eight feet high and crowned in turn by the
- scattered and incongruous buildings of the palace. The village
- adjoins on the south, a cluster of high-roofed maniap's. And
- village and palace seemed deserted.
-
- We were scarce yet moored, however, before distant and busy figures
- appeared upon the beach, a boat was launched, and a crew pulled out
- to us bringing the king's ladder. Tembinok' had once an accident;
- has feared ever since to entrust his person to the rotten chandlery
- of South Sea traders; and devised in consequence a frame of wood,
- which is brought on board a ship as soon as she appears, and
- remains lashed to her side until she leave. The boat's crew,
- having applied this engine, returned at once to shore. They might
- not come on board; neither might we land, or not without danger of
- offence; the king giving pratique in person. An interval followed,
- during which dinner was delayed for the great man - the prelude of
- the ladder, giving us some notion of his weighty body and sensible,
- ingenious character, had highly whetted our curiosity; and it was
- with something like excitement that we saw the beach and terrace
- suddenly blacken with attendant vassals, the king and party embark,
- the boat (a man-of-war gig) come flying towards us dead before the
- wind, and the royal coxswain lay us cleverly aboard, mount the
- ladder with a jealous diffidence, and descend heavily on deck.
-
- Not long ago he was overgrown with fat, obscured to view, and a
- burthen to himself. Captains visiting the island advised him to
- walk; and though it broke the habits of a life and the traditions
- of his rank, he practised the remedy with benefit. His corpulence
- is now portable; you would call him lusty rather than fat; but his
- gait is still dull, stumbling, and elephantine. He neither stops
- nor hastens, but goes about his business with an implacable
- deliberation. We could never see him and not be struck with his
- extraordinary natural means for the theatre: a beaked profile like
- Dante's in the mask, a mane of long black hair, the eye brilliant,
- imperious, and inquiring: for certain parts, and to one who could
- have used it, the face was a fortune. His voice matched it well,
- being shrill, powerful, and uncanny, with a note like a sea-bird's.
- Where there are no fashions, none to set them, few to follow them
- if they were set, and none to criticise, he dresses - as Sir
- Charles Grandison lived - 'to his own heart.' Now he wears a
- woman's frock, now a naval uniform; now (and more usually) figures
- in a masquerade costume of his own design: trousers and a singular
- jacket with shirt tails, the cut and fit wonderful for island
- workmanship, the material always handsome, sometimes green velvet,
- sometimes cardinal red silk. This masquerade becomes him
- admirably. In the woman's frock he looks ominous and weird beyond
- belief. I see him now come pacing towards me in the cruel sun,
- solitary, a figure out of Hoffmann.
-
- A visit on board ship, such as that at which we now assisted, makes
- a chief part and by far the chief diversion of the life of
- Tembinok'. He is not only the sole ruler, he is the sole merchant
- of his triple kingdom, Apemama, Aranuka, and Kuria, well-planted
- islands. The taro goes to the chiefs, who divide as they please
- among their immediate adherents; but certain fish, turtles - which
- abound in Kuria, - and the whole produce of the coco-palm, belong
- exclusively to Tembinok'. 'A' cobra berong me,' observed his
- majesty with a wave of his hand; and he counts and sells it by the
- houseful. 'You got copra, king?' I have heard a trader ask. 'I
- got two, three outches,' his majesty replied: 'I think three.'
- Hence the commercial importance of Apemama, the trade of three
- islands being centred there in a single hand; hence it is that so
- many whites have tried in vain to gain or to preserve a footing;
- hence ships are adorned, cooks have special orders, and captains
- array themselves in smiles, to greet the king. If he be pleased
- with his welcome and the fare he may pass days on board, and, every
- day, and sometimes every hour, will be of profit to the ship. He
- oscillates between the cabin, where he is entertained with strange
- meats, and the trade-room, where he enjoys the pleasures of
- shopping on a scale to match his person. A few obsequious
- attendants squat by the house door, awaiting his least signal. In
- the boat, which has been suffered to drop astern, one or two of his
- wives lie covered from the sun under mats, tossed by the short sea
- of the lagoon, and enduring agonies of heat and tedium. This
- severity is now and then relaxed and the wives allowed on board.
- Three or four were thus favoured on the day of our arrival:
- substantial ladies airily attired in RIDIS. Each had a share of
- copra, her PECULIUM, to dispose of for herself. The display in the
- trade-room - hats, ribbbons, dresses, scents, tins of salmon - the
- pride of the eye and the lust of the flesh - tempted them in vain.
- They had but the one idea - tobacco, the island currency,
- tantamount to minted gold; returned to shore with it, burthened but
- rejoicing; and late into the night, on the royal terrace, were to
- be seen counting the sticks by lamplight in the open air.
-
- The king is no such economist. He is greedy of things new and
- foreign. House after house, chest after chest, in the palace
- precinct, is already crammed with clocks, musical boxes, blue
- spectacles, umbrellas, knitted waistcoats, bolts of stuff, tools,
- rifles, fowling-pieces, medicines, European foods, sewing-machines,
- and, what is more extraordinary, stoves: all that ever caught his
- eye, tickled his appetite, pleased him for its use, or puzzled him
- with its apparent inutility. And still his lust is unabated. He
- is possessed by the seven devils of the collector. He hears a
- thing spoken of, and a shadow comes on his face. 'I think I no got
- him,' he will say; and the treasures he has seem worthless in
- comparison. If a ship be bound for Apemama, the merchant racks his
- brain to hit upon some novelty. This he leaves carelessly in the
- main cabin or partly conceals in his own berth, so that the king
- shall spy it for himself. 'How much you want?' inquires Tembinok',
- passing and pointing. 'No, king; that too dear,' returns the
- trader. 'I think I like him,' says the king. This was a bowl of
- gold-fish. On another occasion it was scented soap. 'No, king;
- that cost too much,' said the trader; 'too good for a Kanaka.'
- 'How much you got? I take him all,' replied his majesty, and
- became the lord of seventeen boxes at two dollars a cake. Or
- again, the merchant feigns the article is not for sale, is private
- property, an heirloom or a gift; and the trick infallibly succeeds.
- Thwart the king and you hold him. His autocratic nature rears at
- the affront of opposition. He accepts it for a challenge; sets his
- teeth like a hunter going at a fence; and with no mark of emotion,
- scarce even of interest, stolidly piles up the price. Thus, for
- our sins, he took a fancy to my wife's dressing-bag, a thing
- entirely useless to the man, and sadly battered by years of
- service. Early one forenoon he came to our house, sat down, and
- abruptly offered to purchase it. I told him I sold nothing, and
- the bag at any rate was a present from a friend; but he was
- acquainted with these pretexts from of old, and knew what they were
- worth and how to meet them. Adopting what I believe is called 'the
- object method,' he drew out a bag of English gold, sovereigns and
- half-sovereigns, and began to lay them one by one in silence on the
- table; at each fresh piece reading our faces with a look. In vain
- I continued to protest I was no trader; he deigned not to reply.
- There must have been twenty pounds on the table, he was still going
- on, and irritation had begun to mingle with our embarrassment, when
- a happy idea came to our delivery. Since his majesty thought so
- much of the bag, we said, we must beg him to accept it as a
- present. It was the most surprising turn in Tembinok's experience.
- He perceived too late that his persistence was unmannerly; hung his
- head a while in silence; then, lifting up a sheepish countenance,
- 'I 'shamed,' said the tyrant. It was the first and the last time
- we heard him own to a flaw in his behaviour. Half an hour after he
- sent us a camphor-wood chest worth only a few dollars - but then
- heaven knows what Tembinok' had paid for it.
-
- Cunning by nature, and versed for forty years in the government of
- men, it must not be supposed that he is cheated blindly, or has
- resigned himself without resistance to be the milch-cow of the
- passing trader. His efforts have been even heroic. Like Nakaeia
- of Makin, he has owned schooners. More fortunate than Nakaeia, he
- has found captains. Ships of his have sailed as far as to the
- colonies. He has trafficked direct, in his own bottoms, with New
- Zealand. And even so, even there, the world-enveloping dishonesty
- of the white man prevented him; his profit melted, his ship
- returned in debt, the money for the insurance was embezzled, and
- when the CORONET came to be lost, he was astonished to find he had
- lost all. At this he dropped his weapons; owned he might as
- hopefully wrestle with the winds of heaven; and like an experienced
- sheep, submitted his fleece thenceforward to the shearers. He is
- the last man in the world to waste anger on the incurable; accepts
- it with cynical composure; asks no more in those he deals with than
- a certain decency of moderation; drives as good a bargain as he
- can; and when he considers he is more than usually swindled, writes
- it in his memory against the merchant's name. He once ran over to
- me a list of captains and supercargoes with whom he had done
- business, classing them under three heads: 'He cheat a litty' -
- 'He cheat plenty' - and 'I think he cheat too much.' For the first
- two classes he expressed perfect toleration; sometimes, but not
- always, for the third. I was present when a certain merchant was
- turned about his business, and was the means (having a considerable
- influence ever since the bag) of patching up the dispute. Even on
- the day of our arrival there was like to have been a hitch with
- Captain Reid: the ground of which is perhaps worth recital. Among
- goods exported specially for Tembinok' there is a beverage known
- (and labelled) as Hennessy's brandy. It is neither Hennessy, nor
- even brandy; is about the colour of sherry, but is not sherry;
- tastes of kirsch, and yet neither is it kirsch. The king, at
- least, has grown used to this amazing brand, and rather prides
- himself upon the taste; and any substitution is a double offence,
- being at once to cheat him and to cast a doubt upon his palate. A
- similar weakness is to be observed in all connoisseurs. Now the
- last case sold by the EQUATOR was found to contain a different and
- I would fondly fancy a superior distillation; and the conversation
- opened very black for Captain Reid. But Tembinok' is a moderate
- man. He was reminded and admitted that all men were liable to
- error, even himself; accepted the principle that a fault handsomely
- acknowledged should be condoned; and wound the matter up with this
- proposal: 'Tuppoti I mi'take, you 'peakee me. Tuppoti you
- mi'take, I 'peakee you. Mo' betta.'
-
- After dinner and supper in the cabin, a glass or two of 'Hennetti'
- - the genuine article this time, with the kirsch bouquet, - and
- five hours' lounging on the trade-room counter, royalty embarked
- for home. Three tacks grounded the boat before the palace; the
- wives were carried ashore on the backs of vassals; Tembinok'
- stepped on a railed platform like a steamer's gangway, and was
- borne shoulder high through the shallows, up the beach, and by an
- inclined plane, paved with pebbles, to the glaring terrace where he
- dwells.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II - THE KING OF APEMAMA: FOUNDATION OF EQUATOR TOWN
-
-
-
- OUR first sight of Tembinok' was a matter of concern, almost alarm,
- to my whole party. We had a favour to seek; we must approach in
- the proper courtly attitude of a suitor; and must either please him
- or fail in the main purpose of our voyage. It was our wish to land
- and live in Apemama, and see more near at hand the odd character of
- the man and the odd (or rather ancient) condition of his island.
- In all other isles of the South Seas a white man may land with his
- chest, and set up house for a lifetime, if he choose, and if he
- have the money or the trade; no hindrance is conceivable. But
- Apemama is a close island, lying there in the sea with closed
- doors; the king himself, like a vigilant officer, ready at the
- wicket to scrutinise and reject intrenching visitors. Hence the
- attraction of our enterprise; not merely because it was a little
- difficult, but because this social quarantine, a curiosity in
- itself, has been the preservative of others.
-
- Tembinok', like most tyrants, is a conservative; like many
- conservatives, he eagerly welcomes new ideas, and, except in the
- field of politics, leans to practical reform. When the
- missionaries came, professing a knowledge of the truth, he readily
- received them; attended their worship, acquired the accomplishment
- of public prayer, and made himself a student at their feet. It is
- thus - it is by the cultivation of similar passing chances - that
- he has learned to read, to write, to cipher, and to speak his
- queer, personal English, so different from ordinary 'Beach de Mar,'
- so much more obscure, expressive, and condensed. His education
- attended to, he found time to become critical of the new inmates.
- Like Nakaeia of Makin, he is an admirer of silence in the island;
- broods over it like a great ear; has spies who report daily; and
- had rather his subjects sang than talked. The service, and in
- particular the sermon, were thus sure to become offences: 'Here,
- in my island, I 'peak,' he once observed to me. 'My chieps no
- 'peak - do what I talk.' He looked at the missionary, and what did
- he see? 'See Kanaka 'peak in a big outch!' he cried, with a strong
- ring of sarcasm. Yet he endured the subversive spectacle, and
- might even have continued to endure it, had not a fresh point
- arisen. He looked again, to employ his own figure; and the Kanaka
- was no longer speaking, he was doing worse - he was building a
- copra-house. The king was touched in his chief interests; revenue
- and prerogative were threatened. He considered besides (and some
- think with him) that trade is incompatible with the missionary
- claims. 'Tuppoti mitonary think "good man": very good. Tuppoti
- he think "cobra": no good. I send him away ship.' Such was his
- abrupt history of the evangelist in Apemama.
-
- Similar deportations are common: 'I send him away ship' is the
- epitaph of not a few, his majesty paying the exile's fare to the
- next place of call. For instance, being passionately fond of
- European food, he has several times added to his household a white
- cook, and one after another these have been deported. They, on
- their side, swear they were not paid their wages; he, on his, that
- they robbed and swindled him beyond endurance: both perhaps
- justly. A more important case was that of an agent, despatched (as
- I heard the story) by a firm of merchants to worm his way into the
- king's good graces, become, if possible, premier, and handle the
- copra in the interest of his employers. He obtained authority to
- land, practised his fascinations, was patiently listened to by
- Tembinok', supposed himself on the highway to success; and behold!
- when the next ship touched at Apemama, the would-be premier was
- flung into a boat - had on board - his fare paid, and so good-bye.
- But it is needless to multiply examples; the proof of the pudding
- is in the eating. When we came to Apemama, of so many white men
- who have scrambled for a place in that rich market, one remained -
- a silent, sober, solitary, niggardly recluse, of whom the king
- remarks, 'I think he good; he no 'peak.'
-
- I was warned at the outset we might very well fail in our design:
- yet never dreamed of what proved to be the fact, that we should be
- left four-and-twenty hours in suspense and come within an ace of
- ultimate rejection. Captain Reid had primed himself; no sooner was
- the king on board, and the Hennetti question amicably settled, than
- he proceeded to express my request and give an abstract of my
- claims and virtues. The gammon about Queen Victoria's son might do
- for Butaritari; it was out of the question here; and I now figured
- as 'one of the Old Men of England,' a person of deep knowledge,
- come expressly to visit Tembinok's dominion, and eager to report
- upon it to the no less eager Queen Victoria. The king made no
- shadow of an answer, and presently began upon a different subject.
- We might have thought that he had not heard, or not understood;
- only that we found ourselves the subject of a constant study. As
- we sat at meals, he took us in series and fixed upon each, for near
- a minute at a time, the same hard and thoughtful stare. As he thus
- looked he seemed to forget himself, the subject and the company,
- and to become absorbed in the process of his thought; the look was
- wholly impersonal; I have seen the same in the eyes of portrait-
- painters. The counts upon which whites have been deported are
- mainly four: cheating Tembinok', meddling overmuch with copra,
- which is the source of his wealth, and one of the sinews of his
- power, 'PEAKING, and political intrigue. I felt guiltless upon
- all; but how to show it? I would not have taken copra in a gift:
- how to express that quality by my dinner-table bearing? The rest
- of the party shared my innocence and my embarrassment. They shared
- also in my mortification when after two whole meal-times and the
- odd moments of an afternoon devoted to this reconnoitring,
- Tembinok' took his leave in silence. Next morning, the same
- undisguised study, the same silence, was resumed; and the second
- day had come to its maturity before I was informed abruptly that I
- had stood the ordeal. 'I look your eye. You good man. You no
- lie,' said the king: a doubtful compliment to a writer of romance.
- Later he explained he did not quite judge by the eye only, but the
- mouth as well. 'Tuppoti I see man,' he explained. 'I no tavvy
- good man, bad man. I look eye, look mouth. Then I tavvy. Look
- EYE, look mouth,' he repeated. And indeed in our case the mouth
- had the most to do with it, and it was by our talk that we gained
- admission to the island; the king promising himself (and I believe
- really amassing) a vast amount of useful knowledge ere we left.
-
- The terms of our admission were as follows: We were to choose a
- site, and the king should there build us a town. His people should
- work for us, but the king only was to give them orders. One of his
- cooks should come daily to help mine, and to learn of him. In case
- our stores ran out, he would supply us, and be repaid on the return
- of the EQUATOR. On the other hand, he was to come to meals with us
- when so inclined; when he stayed at home, a dish was to be sent him
- from our table; and I solemnly engaged to give his subjects no
- liquor or money (both of which they are forbidden to possess) and
- no tobacco, which they were to receive only from the royal hand. I
- think I remember to have protested against the stringency of this
- last article; at least, it was relaxed, and when a man worked for
- me I was allowed to give him a pipe of tobacco on the premises, but
- none to take away.
-
- The site of Equator City - we named our city for the schooner - was
- soon chosen. The immediate shores of the lagoon are windy and
- blinding; Tembinok' himself is glad to grope blue-spectacled on his
- terrace; and we fled the neighbourhood of the red CONJUNCTIVA, the
- suppurating eyeball, and the beggar who pursues and beseeches the
- passing foreigner for eye wash. Behind the town the country is
- diversified; here open, sandy, uneven, and dotted with dwarfish
- palms; here cut up with taro trenches, deep and shallow, and,
- according to the growth of the plants, presenting now the
- appearance of a sandy tannery, now of an alleyed and green garden.
- A path leads towards the sea, mounting abruptly to the main level
- of the island - twenty or even thirty feet, although Findlay gives
- five; and just hard by the top of the rise, where the coco-palms
- begin to be well grown, we found a grove of pandanus, and a piece
- of soil pleasantly covered with green underbush. A well was not
- far off under a rustic well-house; nearer still, in a sandy cup of
- the land, a pond where we might wash our clothes. The place was
- out of the wind, out of the sun, and out of sight of the village.
- It was shown to the king, and the town promised for the morrow.
-
- The morrow came, Mr. Osbourne landed, found nothing done, and
- carried his complaint to Tembinok'. He heard it, rose, called for
- a Winchester, stepped without the royal palisade, and fired two
- shots in the air. A shot in the air is the first Apemama warning;
- it has the force of a proclamation in more loquacious countries;
- and his majesty remarked agreeably that it would make his labourers
- 'mo' bright.' In less than thirty minutes, accordingly, the men
- had mustered, the work was begun, and we were told that we might
- bring our baggage when we pleased.
-
- It was two in the afternoon ere the first boat was beached, and the
- long procession of chests and crates and sacks began to straggle
- through the sandy desert towards Equator Town. The grove of
- pandanus was practically a thing of the past. Fire surrounded and
- smoke rose in the green underbush. In a wide circuit the axes were
- still crashing. Those very advantages for which the place was
- chosen, it had been the king's first idea to abolish; and in the
- midst of this devastation there stood already a good-sized maniap'
- and a small closed house. A mat was spread near by for Tembinok';
- here he sat superintending, in cardinal red, a pith helmet on his
- head, a meerschaum pipe in his mouth, a wife stretched at his back
- with custody of the matches and tobacco. Twenty or thirty feet in
- front of him the bulk of the workers squatted on the ground; some
- of the bush here survived and in this the commons sat nearly to
- their shoulders, and presented only an arc of brown faces, black
- heads, and attentive eyes fixed on his majesty. Long pauses
- reigned, during which the subjects stared and the king smoked.
- Then Tembinok' would raise his voice and speak shrilly and briefly.
- There was never a response in words; but if the speech were
- jesting, there came by way of answer discreet, obsequious laughter
- - such laughter as we hear in schoolrooms; and if it were
- practical, the sudden uprising and departure of the squad. Twice
- they so disappeared, and returned with further elements of the
- city: a second house and a second maniap'. It was singular to
- spy, far off through the coco stems, the silent oncoming of the
- maniap', at first (it seemed) swimming spontaneously in the air -
- but on a nearer view betraying under the eaves many score of moving
- naked legs. In all the affair servile obedience was no less
- remarkable than servile deliberation. The gang had here mustered
- by the note of a deadly weapon; the man who looked on was the
- unquestioned master of their lives; and except for civility, they
- bestirred themselves like so many American hotel clerks. The
- spectator was aware of an unobtrusive yet invincible inertia, at
- which the skipper of a trading dandy might have torn his hair.
-
- Yet the work was accomplished. By dusk, when his majesty withdrew,
- the town was founded and complete, a new and ruder Amphion having
- called it from nothing with three cracks of a rifle. And the next
- morning the same conjurer obliged us with a further miracle: a
- mystic rampart fencing us, so that the path which ran by our doors
- became suddenly impassable, the inhabitants who had business across
- the isle must fetch a wide circuit, and we sat in the midst in a
- transparent privacy, seeing, seen, but unapproachable, like bees in
- a glass hive. The outward and visible sign of this glamour was no
- more than a few ragged coco-leaf garlands round the stems of the
- outlying palms; but its significance reposed on the tremendous
- sanction of the tapu and the guns of Tembinok'.
-
- We made our first meal that night in the improvised city, where we
- were to stay two months, and which - so soon as we had done with it
- - was to vanish in a day as it appeared, its elements returning
- whence they came, the tapu raised, the traffic on the path resumed,
- the sun and the moon peering in vain between the palm-trees for the
- bygone work, the wind blowing over an empty site. Yet the place,
- which is now only an episode in some memories, seemed to have been
- built, and to be destined to endure, for years. It was a busy
- hamlet. One of the maniap's we made our dining-room, one the
- kitchen. The houses we reserved for sleeping. They were on the
- admirable Apemama plan: out and away the best house in the South
- Seas; standing some three feet above the ground on posts; the sides
- of woven flaps, which can be raised to admit light and air, or
- lowered to shut out the wind and the rain: airy, healthy, clean,
- and watertight. We had a hen of a remarkable kind: almost unique
- in my experience, being a hen that occasionally laid eggs. Not far
- off, Mrs. Stevenson tended a garden of salad and shalots. The
- salad was devoured by the hen - which was her bane. The shalots
- were served out a leaf at a time, and welcomed and relished like
- peaches. Toddy and green cocoa-nuts were brought us daily. We
- once had a present of fish from the king, and once of a turtle.
- Sometimes we shot so-called plover along on the shore, sometimes
- wild chicken in the bush. The rest of our diet was from tins.
-
- Our occupations were very various. While some of the party would
- be away sketching, Mr. Osbourne and I hammered away at a novel. We
- read Gibbon and Carlyle aloud; we blew on flageolets, we strummed
- on guitars; we took photographs by the light of the sun, the moon,
- and flash-powder; sometimes we played cards. Pot-hunting engaged a
- part of our leisure. I have myself passed afternoons in the
- exciting but innocuous pursuit of winged animals with a revolver;
- and it was fortunate there were better shots of the party, and
- fortunate the king could lend us a more suitable weapon, in the
- form of an excellent fowling-piece, or our spare diet had been
- sparer still.
-
- Night was the time to see our city, after the moon was up, after
- the lamps were lighted, and so long as the fire sparkled in the
- cook-house. We suffered from a plague of flies and mosquitoes,
- comparable to that of Egypt; our dinner-table (lent, like all our
- furniture, by the king) must be enclosed in a tent of netting, our
- citadel and refuge; and this became all luminous, and bulged and
- beaconed under the eaves, like the globe of some monstrous lamp
- under the margin of its shade. Our cabins, the sides being propped
- at a variety of inclinations, spelled out strange, angular patterns
- of brightness. In his roofed and open kitchen, Ah Fu was to be
- seen by lamp and firelight, dabbling among pots. Over all, there
- fell in the season an extraordinary splendour of mellow moonshine.
- The sand sparkled as with the dust of diamonds; the stars had
- vanished. At intervals, a dusky night-bird, slow and low flying,
- passed in the colonnade of the tree stems and uttered a hoarse
- croaking cry.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III - THE KING OF APEMAMA: THE PALACE OF MANY WOMEN
-
-
-
- THE palace, or rather the ground which it includes, is several
- acres in extent. A terrace encloses it toward the lagoon; on the
- side of the land, a palisade with several gates. These are scarce
- intended for defence; a man, if he were strong, might easily pluck
- down the palisade; he need not be specially active to leap from the
- beach upon the terrace. There is no parade of guards, soldiers, or
- weapons; the armoury is under lock and key; and the only sentinels
- are certain inconspicuous old women lurking day and night before
- the gates. By day, these crones were often engaged in boiling
- syrup or the like household occupation; by night, they lay ambushed
- in the shadow or crouched along the palisade, filling the office of
- eunuchs to this harem, sole guards upon a tyrant life.
-
- Female wardens made a fit outpost for this palace of many women.
- Of the number of the king's wives I have no guess; and but a loose
- idea of their function. He himself displayed embarrassment when
- they were referred to as his wives, called them himself 'my
- pamily,' and explained they were his 'cutcheons' - cousins. We
- distinguished four of the crowd: the king's mother; his sister, a
- grave, trenchant woman, with much of her brother's intelligence;
- the queen proper, to whom (and to whom alone) my wife was formally
- presented; and the favourite of the hour, a pretty, graceful girl,
- who sat with the king daily, and once (when he shed tears) consoled
- him with caresses. I am assured that even with her his relations
- are platonic. In the background figured a multitude of ladies, the
- lean, the plump, and the elephantine, some in sacque frocks, some
- in the hairbreadth RIDI; high-born and low, slave and mistress;
- from the queen to the scullion, from the favourite to the scraggy
- sentries at the palisade. Not all of these of course are of 'my
- pamily,' - many are mere attendants; yet a surprising number shared
- the responsibility of the king's trust. These were key-bearers,
- treasurers, wardens of the armoury, the napery, and the stores.
- Each knew and did her part to admiration. Should anything be
- required - a particular gun, perhaps, or a particular bolt of
- stuff, - the right queen was summoned; she came bringing the right
- chest, opened it in the king's presence, and displayed her charge
- in perfect preservation - the gun cleaned and oiled, the goods duly
- folded. Without delay or haste, and with the minimum of speech,
- the whole great establishment turned on wheels like a machine.
- Nowhere have I seen order more complete and pervasive. And yet I
- was always reminded of Norse tales of trolls and ogres who kept
- their hearts buried in the ground for the mere safety, and must
- confide the secret to their wives. For these weapons are the life
- of Tembinok'. He does not aim at popularity; but drives and braves
- his subjects, with a simplicity of domination which it is
- impossible not to admire, hard not to sympathise with. Should one
- out of so many prove faithless, should the armoury be secretly
- unlocked, should the crones have dozed by the palisade and the
- weapons find their way unseen into the village, revolution would be
- nearly certain, death the most probable result, and the spirit of
- the tyrant of Apemama flit to rejoin his predecessors of Mariki and
- Tapituea. Yet those whom he so trusts are all women, and all
- rivals.
-
- There is indeed a ministry and staff of males: cook, steward,
- carpenter, and supercargoes: the hierarchy of a schooner. The
- spies, 'his majesty's daily papers,' as we called them, come every
- morning to report, and go again. The cook and steward are
- concerned with the table only. The supercargoes, whose business it
- is to keep tally of the copra at three pounds a month and a
- percentage, are rarely in the palace; and two at least are in the
- other islands. The carpenter, indeed, shrewd and jolly old Rubam -
- query, Reuben? - promoted on my last visit to the greater dignity
- of governor, is daily present, altering, extending, embellishing,
- pursuing the endless series of the king's inventions; and his
- majesty will sometimes pass an afternoon watching and talking with
- Rubam at his work. But the males are still outsiders; none seems
- to be armed, none is entrusted with a key; by dusk they are all
- usually departed from the palace; and the weight of the monarchy
- and of the monarch's life reposes unshared on the women.
-
- Here is a household unlike, indeed, to one of ours; more unlike
- still to the Oriental harem: that of an elderly childless man, his
- days menaced, dwelling alone amid a bevy of women of all ages,
- ranks, and relationships, - the mother, the sister, the cousin, the
- legitimate wife, the concubine, the favourite, the eldest born, and
- she of yesterday; he, in their midst, the only master, the only
- male, the sole dispenser of honours, clothes, and luxuries, the
- sole mark of multitudinous ambitions and desires. I doubt if you
- could find a man in Europe so bold as to attempt this piece of tact
- and government. And seemingly Tembinok' himself had trouble in the
- beginning. I hear of him shooting at a wife for some levity on
- board a schooner. Another, on some more serious offence, he slew
- outright; he exposed her body in an open box, and (to make the
- warning more memorable) suffered it to putrefy before the palace
- gate. Doubtless his growing years have come to his assistance; for
- upon so large a scale it is more easy to play the father than the
- husband. And to-day, at least to the eye of a stranger, all seems
- to go smoothly, and the wives to be proud of their trust, proud of
- their rank, and proud of their cunning lord.
-
- I conceived they made rather a hero of the man. A popular master
- in a girls' school might, perhaps, offer a figure of his
- preponderating station. But then the master does not eat, sleep,
- live, and wash his dirty linen in the midst of his admirers; he
- escapes, he has a room of his own, he leads a private life; if he
- had nothing else, he has the holidays, and the more unhappy
- Tembinok' is always on the stage and on the stretch.
-
- In all my coming and going, I never heard him speak harshly or
- express the least displeasure. An extreme, rather heavy, benignity
- - the benignity of one sure to be obeyed - marked his demeanour; so
- that I was at times reminded of Samual Richardson in his circle of
- admiring women. The wives spoke up and seemed to volunteer
- opinions, like our wives at home - or, say, like doting but
- respectable aunts. Altogether, I conclude that he rules his
- seraglio much more by art than terror; and those who give a
- different account (and who have none of them enjoyed my
- opportunities of observation) perhaps failed to distinguish between
- degrees of rank, between 'my pamily' and the hangers-on,
- laundresses, and prostitutes.
-
- A notable feature is the evening game of cards when lamps are set
- forth upon the terrace, and 'I and my pamily' play for tobacco by
- the hour. It is highly characteristic of Tembinok' that he must
- invent a game for himself; highly characteristic of his worshipping
- household that they should swear by the absurd invention. It is
- founded on poker, played with the honours out of many packs, and
- inconceivably dreary. But I have a passion for all games, studied
- it, and am supposed to be the only white who ever fairly grasped
- its principle: a fact for which the wives (with whom I was not
- otherwise popular) admired me with acclamation. It was impossible
- to be deceived; this was a genuine feeling: they were proud of
- their private game, had been cut to the quick by the want of
- interest shown in it by others, and expanded under the flattery of
- my attention. Tembinok' puts up a double stake, and receives in
- return two hands to choose from: a shallow artifice which the
- wives (in all these years) have not yet fathomed. He himself, when
- talking with me privately, made not the least secret that he was
- secure of winning; and it was thus he explained his recent
- liberality on board the EQUATOR. He let the wives buy their own
- tobacco, which pleased them at the moment. He won it back at
- cards, which made him once more, and without fresh expense, that
- which he ought to be, - the sole fount of all indulgences. And he
- summed the matter up in that phrase with which he almost always
- concludes any account of his policy: 'Mo' betta.'
-
- The palace compound is laid with broken coral, excruciating to the
- eyes and the bare feet, but exquisitely raked and weeded. A score
- or more of buildings lie in a sort of street along the palisade and
- scattered on the margin of the terrace; dwelling-houses for the
- wives and the attendants, storehouses for the king's curios and
- treasures, spacious maniap's for feast or council, some on pillars
- of wood, some on piers of masonry. One was still in hand, a new
- invention, the king's latest born: a European frame-house built
- for coolness inside a lofty maniap': its roof planked like a
- ship's deck to be a raised, shady, and yet private promenade. It
- was here the king spent hours with Rubam; here I would sometimes
- join them; the place had a most singular appearance; and I must say
- I was greatly taken with the fancy, and joined with relish in the
- counsels of the architects.
-
- Suppose we had business with his majesty by day: we strolled over
- the sand and by the dwarfish palms, exchanged a 'KONAMAORI' with
- the crone on duty, and entered the compound. The wide sheet of
- coral glared before us deserted; all having stowed themselves in
- dark canvas from the excess of room. I have gone to and fro in
- that labyrinth of a place, seeking the king; and the only breathing
- creature I could find was when I peered under the eaves of a
- maniap', and saw the brawny body of one of the wives stretched on
- the floor, a naked Amazon plunged in noiseless slumber. If it were
- still the hour of the 'morning papers' the quest would be more
- easy, the half-dozen obsequious, sly dogs squatting on the ground
- outside a house, crammed as far as possible in its narrow shadow,
- and turning to the king a row of leering faces. Tembinok' would be
- within, the flaps of the cabin raised, the trade blowing through,
- hearing their report. Like journalists nearer home, when the day's
- news were scanty, these would make the more of it in words; and I
- have known one to fill up a barren morning with an imaginary
- conversation of two dogs. Sometimes the king deigns to laugh,
- sometimes to question or jest with them, his voice sounding shrilly
- from the cabin. By his side he may have the heir-apparent, Paul,
- his nephew and adopted son, six years old, stark naked, and a model
- of young human beauty. And there will always be the favourite and
- perhaps two other wives awake; four more lying supine under mats
- and whelmed in slumber. Or perhaps we came later, fell on a more
- private hour, and found Tembinok' retired in the house with the
- favourite, an earthenware spittoon, a leaden inkpot, and a
- commercial ledger. In the last, lying on his belly, he writes from
- day to day the uneventful history of his reign; and when thus
- employed he betrayed a touch of fretfulness on interruption with
- which I was well able to sympathise. The royal annalist once read
- me a page or so, translating as he went; but the passage being
- genealogical, and the author boggling extremely in his version, I
- own I have been sometimes better entertained. Nor does he confine
- himself to prose, but touches the lyre, too, in his leisure
- moments, and passes for the chief bard of his kingdom, as he is its
- sole public character, leading architect, and only merchant.
-
- His competence, however, does not reach to music; and his verses,
- when they are ready, are taught to a professional musician, who
- sets them and instructs the chorus. Asked what his songs were
- about, Tembinok' replied, 'Sweethearts and trees and the sea. Not
- all the same true, all the same lie.' For a condensed view of
- lyrical poetry (except that he seems to have forgot the stars and
- flowers) this would be hard to mend. These multifarious
- occupations bespeak (in a native and an absolute prince) unusual
- activity of mind.
-
- The palace court at noon is a spot to be remembered with awe, the
- visitor scrambling there, on the loose stones, through a splendid
- nightmare of light and heat; but the sweep of the wind delivers it
- from flies and mosquitoes; and with the set of sun it became
- heavenly. I remember it best on moonless nights. The air was like
- a bath of milk. Countless shining stars were over-head, the lagoon
- paved with them. Herds of wives squatted by companies on the
- gravel, softly chatting. Tembinok' would doff his jacket, and sit
- bare and silent, perhaps meditating songs; the favourite usually by
- him, silent also. Meanwhile in the midst of the court, the palace
- lanterns were being lit and marshalled in rank upon the ground -
- six or eight square yards of them; a sight that gave one strange
- ideas of the number of 'my pamily': such a sight as may be seen
- about dusk in a corner of some great terminus at home. Presently
- these fared off into all corners of the precinct, lighting the last
- labours of the day, lighting one after another to their rest that
- prodigious company of women. A few lingered in the middle of the
- court for the card-party, and saw the honours shuffled and dealt,
- and Tembinok' deliberating between his two; hands, and the queens
- losing their tobacco. Then these also were scattered and
- extinguished; and their place was taken by a great bonfire, the
- night-light of the palace. When this was no more, smaller fires
- burned likewise at the gates. These were tended by the crones,
- unseen, unsleeping - not always unheard. Should any approach in
- the dark hours, a guarded alert made the circuit of the palisade;
- each sentry signalled her neighbour with a stone; the rattle of
- falling pebbles passed and died away; and the wardens of Tembinok'
- crouched in their places silent as before.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV - THE KING OF APEMAMA: EQUATOR TOWN AND THE PALACE
-
-
-
- FIVE persons were detailed to wait upon us. Uncle Parker, who
- brought us toddy and green nuts, was an elderly, almost an old man,
- with the spirits, the industry, and the morals of a boy of ten.
- His face was ancient, droll, and diabolical, the skin stretched
- over taut sinews, like a sail on the guide-rope; and he smiled with
- every muscle of his head. His nuts must be counted every day, or
- he would deceive us in the tale; they must be daily examined, or
- some would prove to be unhusked; nothing but the king's name, and
- scarcely that, would hold him to his duty. After his toils were
- over he was given a pipe, matches, and tobacco, and sat on the
- floor in the maniap' to smoke. He would not seem to move from his
- position, and yet every day, when the things fell to be returned
- the plug had disappeared; he had found the means to conceal it in
- the roof, whence he could radiantly produce it on the morrow.
- Although this piece of legerdemain was performed regularly before
- three or four pairs of eyes, we could never catch him in the fact;
- although we searched after he was gone, we could never find the
- tobacco. Such were the diversions of Uncle Parker, a man nearing
- sixty. But he was punished according unto his deeds: Mrs.
- Stevenson took a fancy to paint him, and the sufferings of the
- sitter were beyond description.
-
- Three lasses came from the palace to do our washing and racket with
- Ah Fu. They were of the lowest class, hangers-on kept for the
- convenience of merchant skippers, probably low-born, perhaps out-
- islanders, with little refinement whether of manner or appearance,
- but likely and jolly enough wenches in their way. We called one
- GUTTERSNIPE, for you may find her image in the slums of any city;
- the same lean, dark-eyed, eager, vulgar face, the same sudden,
- hoarse guffaws, the same forward and yet anxious manner, as with a
- tail of an eye on the policeman: only the policeman here was a
- live king, and his truncheon a rifle. I doubt if you could find
- anywhere out of the islands, or often there, the parallel of FATTY,
- a mountain of a girl, who must have weighed near as many stones as
- she counted summers, could have given a good account of a life-
- guardsman, had the face of a baby, and applied her vast mechanical
- forces almost exclusively to play. But they were all three of the
- same merry spirit. Our washing was conducted in a game of romps;
- and they fled and pursued, and splashed, and pelted, and rolled
- each other in the sand, and kept up a continuous noise of cries and
- laughter like holiday children. Indeed, and however strange their
- own function in that austere establishment, were they not escaped
- for the day from the largest and strictest Ladies' School in the
- South Seas?
-
- Our fifth attendant was no less a person than the royal cook. He
- was strikingly handsome both in face and body, lazy as a slave, and
- insolent as a butcher's boy. He slept and smoked on our premises
- in various graceful attitudes; but so far from helping Ah Fu, he
- was not at the pains to watch him. It may be said of him that he
- came to learn, and remained to teach; and his lessons were at times
- difficult to stomach. For example, he was sent to fill a bucket
- from the well. About half-way he found my wife watering her
- onions, changed buckets with her, and leaving her the empty,
- returned to the kitchen with the full. On another occasion he was
- given a dish of dumplings for the king, was told they must be eaten
- hot, and that he should carry them as fast as possible. The wretch
- set off at the rate of about a mile in the hour, head in air, toes
- turned out. My patience, after a month of trial, failed me at the
- sight. I pursued, caught him by his two big shoulders, and
- thrusting him before me, ran with him down the hill, over the
- sands, and through the applauding village, to the Speak House,
- where the king was then holding a pow-wow. He had the impudence to
- pretend he was internally injured by my violence, and to profess
- serious apprehensions for his life.
-
- All this we endured; for the ways of Tembinok' are summary, and I
- was not yet ripe to take a hand in the man's death. But in the
- meanwhile, here was my unfortunate China boy slaving for the pair,
- and presently he fell sick. I was now in the position of Cimondain
- Lantenac, and indeed all the characters in QUATRE-VINGT-TREIZE: to
- continue to spare the guilty, I must sacrifice the innocent. I
- took the usual course and tried to save both, with the usual
- consequence of failure. Well rehearsed, I went down to the palace,
- found the king alone, and obliged him with a vast amount of
- rigmarole. The cook was too old to learn: I feared he was not
- making progress; how if we had a boy instead? - boys were more
- teachable. It was all in vain; the king pierced through my
- disguises to the root of the fact; saw that the cook had
- desperately misbehaved; and sat a while glooming. 'I think he
- tavvy too much,' he said at last, with grim concision; and
- immediately turned the talk to other subjects. The same day
- another high officer, the steward, appeared in the cook's place,
- and, I am bound to say, proved civil and industrious.
-
- As soon as I left, it seems the king called for a Winchester and
- strolled outside the palisade, awaiting the defaulter. That day
- Tembinok' wore the woman's frock; as like as not, his make-up was
- completed by a pith helmet and blue spectacles. Conceive the
- glaring stretch of sandhills, the dwarf palms with their noon-day
- shadows, the line of the palisade, the crone sentries (each by a
- small clear fire) cooking syrup on their posts - and this chimaera
- waiting with his deadly engine. To him, enter at last the cook,
- strolling down the sandhill from Equator Town, listless, vain and
- graceful; with no thought of alarm. As soon as he was well within
- range, the travestied monarch fired the six shots over his head, at
- his feet, and on either hand of him: the second Apemama warning,
- startling in itself, fatal in significance, for the next time his
- majesty will aim to hit. I am told the king is a crack shot; that
- when he aims to kill, the grave may be got ready; and when he aims
- to miss, misses by so near a margin that the culprit tastes six
- times the bitterness of death. The effect upon the cook I had an
- opportunity of seeing for myself. My wife and I were returning
- from the sea-side of the island, when we spied one coming to meet
- us at a very quick, disordered pace, between a walk and a run. As
- we drew nearer we saw it was the cook, beside himself with some
- emotion, his usual warm, mulatto colour declined into a bluish
- pallor. He passed us without word or gesture, staring on us with
- the face of a Satan, and plunged on across the wood for the
- unpeopled quarter of the island and the long, desert beach, where
- he might rage to and fro unseen, and froth out the vials of his
- wrath, fear, and humiliation. Doubtless in the curses that he
- there uttered to the bursting surf and the tropic birds, the name
- of the Kaupoi - the rich man - was frequently repeated. I had made
- him the laughing-stock of the village in the affair of the king's
- dumplings; I had brought him by my machinations into disgrace and
- the immediate jeopardy of his days; last, and perhaps bitterest, he
- had found me there by the way to spy upon him in the hour of his
- disorder.
-
- Time passed, and we saw no more of him. The season of the full
- moon came round, when a man thinks shame to lie sleeping; and I
- continued until late - perhaps till twelve or one in the morning -
- to walk on the bright sand and in the tossing shadow of the palms.
- I played, as I wandered, on a flageolet, which occupied much of my
- attention; the fans overhead rattled in the wind with a metallic
- chatter; and a bare foot falls at any rate almost noiseless on that
- shifting soil. Yet when I got back to Equator Town, where all the
- lights were out, and my wife (who was still awake, and had been
- looking forth) asked me who it was that followed me, I thought she
- spoke in jest. 'Not at all,' she said. 'I saw him twice as you
- passed, walking close at your heels. He only left you at the
- corner of the maniap'; he must be still behind the cook-house.'
- Thither I ran - like a fool, without any weapon - and came face to
- face with the cook. He was within my tapu-line, which was death in
- itself; he could have no business there at such an hour but either
- to steal or to kill; guilt made him timorous; and he turned and
- fled before me in the night in silence. As he went I kicked him in
- that place where honour lies, and he gave tongue faintly like an
- injured mouse. At the moment I daresay he supposed it was a deadly
- instrument that touched him.
-
- What had the man been after? I have found my music better
- qualified to scatter than to collect an audience. Amateur as I
- was, I could not suppose him interested in my reading of the
- CARNIVAL OF VENICE, or that he would deny himself his natural rest
- to follow my variations on THE PLOUGHBOY. And whatever his design,
- it was impossible I should suffer him to prowl by night among the
- houses. A word to the king, and the man were not, his case being
- far beyond pardon. But it is one thing to kill a man yourself;
- quite another to bear tales behind his back and have him shot by a
- third party; and I determined to deal with the fellow in some
- method of my own. I told Ah Fu the story, and bade him fetch me
- the cook whenever he should find him. I had supposed this would be
- a matter of difficulty; and far from that, he came of his own
- accord: an act really of desperation, since his life hung by my
- silence, and the best he could hope was to be forgotten. Yet he
- came with an assured countenance, volunteered no apology or
- explanation, complained of injuries received, and pretended he was
- unable to sit down. I suppose I am the weakest man God made; I had
- kicked him in the least vulnerable part of his big carcase; my foot
- was bare, and I had not even hurt my foot. Ah Fu could not control
- his merriment. On my side, knowing what must be the nature of his
- apprehensions, I found in so much impudence a kind of gallantry,
- and secretly admired the man. I told him I should say nothing of
- his night's adventure to the king; that I should still allow him,
- when he had an errand, to come within my tapu-line by day; but if
- ever I found him there after the set of the sun I would shoot him
- on the spot; and to the proof showed him a revolver. He must have
- been incredibly relieved; but he showed no sign of it, took himself
- off with his usual dandy nonchalance, and was scarce seen by us
- again.
-
- These five, then, with the substitution of the steward for the
- cook, came and went, and were our only visitors. The circle of the
- tapu held at arm's-length the inhabitants of the village. As for
- 'my pamily,' they dwelt like nuns in their enclosure; only once
- have I met one of them abroad, and she was the king's sister, and
- the place in which I found her (the island infirmary) was very
- likely privileged. There remains only the king to be accounted
- for. He would come strolling over, always alone, a little before a
- meal-time, take a chair, and talk and eat with us like an old
- family friend. Gilbertine etiquette appears defective on the point
- of leave-taking. It may be remembered we had trouble in the matter
- with Karaiti; and there was something childish and disconcerting in
- Tembinok's abrupt 'I want go home now,' accompanied by a kind of
- ducking rise, and followed by an unadorned retreat. It was the
- only blot upon his manners, which were otherwise plain, decent,
- sensible, and dignified. He never stayed long nor drank much, and
- copied our behaviour where he perceived it to differ from his own.
- Very early in the day, for instance, he ceased eating with his
- knife. It was plain he was determined in all things to wring
- profit from our visit, and chiefly upon etiquette. The quality of
- his white visitors puzzled and concerned him; he would bring up
- name after name, and ask if its bearer were a 'big chiep,' or even
- a 'chiep' at all - which, as some were my excellent good friends,
- and none were actually born in the purple, became at times
- embarrassing. He was struck to learn that our classes were
- distinguishable by their speech, and that certain words (for
- instance) were tapu on the quarter-deck of a man-of-war; and he
- begged in consequence that we should watch and correct him on the
- point. We were able to assure him that he was beyond correction.
- His vocabulary is apt and ample to an extraordinary degree. God
- knows where he collected it, but by some instinct or some accident
- he has avoided all profane or gross expressions. 'Obliged,'
- 'stabbed,' 'gnaw,' 'lodge,' 'power,' 'company,' 'slender,'
- 'smooth,' and 'wonderful,' are a few of the unexpected words that
- enrich his dialect. Perhaps what pleased him most was to hear
- about saluting the quarter-deck of a man-of-war. In his gratitude
- for this hint he became fulsome. 'Schooner cap'n no tell me,' he
- cried; 'I think no tavvy! You tavvy too much; tavvy 'teama', tavvy
- man-a-wa'. I think you tavvy everything.' Yet he gravelled me
- often enough with his perpetual questions; and the false Mr. Barlow
- stood frequently exposed before the royal Sandford. I remember
- once in particular. We were showing the magic-lantern; a slide of
- Windsor Castle was put in, and I told him there was the 'outch' of
- Victoreea. 'How many pathom he high?' he asked, and I was dumb
- before him. It was the builder, the indefatigable architect of
- palaces, that spoke; collector though he was, he did not collect
- useless information; and all his questions had a purpose. After
- etiquette, government, law, the police, money, and medicine were
- his chief interests - things vitally important to himself as a king
- and the father of his people. It was my part not only to supply
- new information, but to correct the old. 'My patha he tell me,' or
- 'White man he tell me,' would be his constant beginning; 'You think
- he lie?' Sometimes I thought he did. Tembinok' once brought me a
- difficulty of this kind, which I was long of comprehending. A
- schooner captain had told him of Captain Cook; the king was much
- interested in the story; and turned for more information - not to
- Mr. Stephen's Dictionary, not to the BRITANNICA, but to the Bible
- in the Gilbert Island version (which consists chiefly of the New
- Testament and the Psalms). Here he sought long and earnestly; Paul
- he found, and Festus and Alexander the coppersmith: no word of
- Cook. The inference was obvious: the explorer was a myth. So
- hard it is, even for a man of great natural parts like Tembinok',
- to grasp the ideas of a new society and culture.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V - KING AND COMMONS
-
-
-
- WE saw but little of the commons of the isle. At first we met them
- at the well, where they washed their linen and we drew water for
- the table. The combination was distasteful; and, having a tyrant
- at command, we applied to the king and had the place enclosed in
- our tapu. It was one of the few favours which Tembinok' visibly
- boggled about granting, and it may be conceived how little popular
- it made the strangers. Many villagers passed us daily going
- afield; but they fetched a wide circuit round our tapu, and seemed
- to avert their looks. At times we went ourselves into the village
- - a strange place. Dutch by its canals, Oriental by the height and
- steepness of the roofs, which looked at dusk like temples; but we
- were rarely called into a house: no welcome, no friendship, was
- offered us; and of home life we had but the one view: the waking
- of a corpse, a frigid, painful scene: the widow holding on her lap
- the cold, bluish body of her husband, and now partaking of the
- refreshments which made the round of the company, now weeping and
- kissing the pale mouth. ('I fear you feel this affliction deeply,'
- said the Scottish minister. 'Eh, sir, and that I do!' replied the
- widow. 'I've been greetin' a' nicht; an' noo I'm just gaun to sup
- this bit parritch, and then I'll begin an' greet again.') In our
- walks abroad I have always supposed the islanders avoided us,
- perhaps from distaste, perhaps by order; and those whom we met we
- took generally by surprise. The surface of the isle is diversified
- with palm groves, thickets, and romantic dingles four feet deep,
- relics of old taro plantation; and it is thus possible to stumble
- unawares on folk resting or hiding from their work. About pistol-
- shot from our township there lay a pond in the bottom of a jungle;
- here the maids of the isle came to bathe, and were several times
- alarmed by our intrusion. Not for them are the bright cold rivers
- of Tahiti or Upolu, not for them to splash and laugh in the hour of
- the dusk with a villageful of gay companions; but to steal here
- solitary, to crouch in a place like a cow-wallow, and wash (if that
- can be called washing) in lukewarm mud, brown as their own skins.
- Other, but still rare, encounters occur to my memory. I was
- several times arrested by a tender sound in the bush of voices
- talking, soft as flutes and with quiet intonations. Hope told a
- flattering tale; I put aside the leaves; and behold! in place of
- the expected dryads, a pair of all too solid ladies squatting over
- a clay pipe in the ungraceful RIDI. The beauty of the voice and
- the eye was all that remained to those vast dames; but that of the
- voice was indeed exquisite. It is strange I should have never
- heard a more winning sound of speech, yet the dialect should be one
- remarkable for violent, ugly, and outlandish vocables; so that
- Tembinok' himself declared it made him weary, and professed to find
- repose in talking English.
-
- The state of this folk, of whom I saw so little, I can merely guess
- at. The king himself explains the situation with some art. 'No; I
- no pay them,' he once said. 'I give them tobacco. They work for
- me ALL THE SAME BROTHERS.' It is true there was a brother once in
- Arden! But we prefer the shorter word. They bear every servile
- mark, - levity like a child's, incurable idleness, incurious
- content. The insolence of the cook was a trait of his own; not so
- his levity, which he shared with the innocent Uncle Parker. With
- equal unconcern both gambolled under the shadow of the gallows, and
- took liberties with death that might have surprised a careless
- student of man's nature. I wrote of Parker that he behaved like a
- boy of ten: what was he else, being a slave of sixty? He had
- passed all his years in school, fed, clad, thought for, commanded;
- and had grown familiar and coquetted with the fear of punishment.
- By terror you may drive men long, but not far. Here, in Apemama,
- they work at the constant and the instant peril of their lives; and
- are plunged in a kind of lethargy of laziness. It is common to see
- one go afield in his stiff mat ungirt, so that he walks elbows-in
- like a trussed fowl; and whatsoever his right hand findeth to do,
- the other must be off duty holding on his clothes. It is common to
- see two men carrying between them on a pole a single bucket of
- water. To make two bites of a cherry is good enough: to make two
- burthens of a soldier's kit, for a distance of perhaps half a
- furlong, passes measure. Woman, being the less childish animal, is
- less relaxed by servile conditions. Even in the king's absence,
- even when they were alone, I have seen Apemama women work with
- constancy. But the outside to be hoped for in a man is that he may
- attack his task in little languid fits, and lounge between-whiles.
- So I have seen a painter, with his pipe going, and a friend by the
- studio fireside. You might suppose the race to lack civility, even
- vitality, until you saw them in the dance. Night after night, and
- sometimes day after day, they rolled out their choruses in the
- great Speak House - solemn andantes and adagios, led by the clapped
- hand, and delivered with an energy that shook the roof. The time
- was not so slow, though it was slow for the islands; but I have
- chosen rather to indicate the effect upon the hearer. Their music
- had a church-like character from near at hand, and seemed to
- European ears more regular than the run of island music. Twice I
- have heard a discord regularly solved. From farther off, heard at
- Equator Town for instance, the measures rose and fell and
- crepitated like the barking of hounds in a distant kennel.
-
- The slaves are certainly not overworked - children of ten do more
- without fatigue - and the Apemama labourers have holidays, when the
- singing begins early in the afternoon. The diet is hard; copra and
- a sweetmeat of pounded pandanus are the only dishes I observed
- outside the palace; but there seems no defect in quantity, and the
- king shares with them his turtles. Three came in a boat from Kuria
- during our stay; one was kept for the palace, one sent to us, one
- presented to the village. It is the habit of the islanders to cook
- the turtle in its carapace; we had been promised the shells, and we
- asked a tapu on this foolish practice. The face of Tembinok'
- darkened and he answered nothing. Hesitation in the question of
- the well I could understand, for water is scarce on a low island;
- that he should refuse to interfere upon a point of cookery was more
- than I had dreamed of; and I gathered (rightly or wrongly) that he
- was scrupulous of touching in the least degree the private life and
- habits of his slaves. So that even here, in full despotism, public
- opinion has weight; even here, in the midst of slavery, freedom has
- a corner.
-
- Orderly, sober, and innocent, life flows in the isle from day to
- day as in a model plantation under a model planter. It is
- impossible to doubt the beneficence of that stern rule. A curious
- politeness, a soft and gracious manner, something effeminate and
- courtly, distinguishes the islanders of Apemama; it is talked of by
- all the traders, it was felt even by residents so little beloved as
- ourselves, and noticeable even in the cook, and even in that
- scoundrel's hours of insolence. The king, with his manly and plain
- bearing, stood out alone; you might say he was the only Gilbert
- Islander in Apemama. Violence, so common in Butaritari, seems
- unknown. So are theft and drunkenness. I am assured the
- experiment has been made of leaving sovereigns on the beach before
- the village; they lay there untouched. In all our time on the
- island I was but once asked for drink. This was by a mighty
- plausible fellow, wearing European clothes and speaking excellent
- English - Tamaiti his name, or, as the whites have now corrupted
- it, 'Tom White': one of the king's supercargoes at three pounds a
- month and a percentage, a medical man besides, and in his private
- hours a wizard. He found me one day in the outskirts of the
- village, in a secluded place, hot and private, where the taro-pits
- are deep and the plants high. Here he buttonholed me, and, looking
- about him like a conspirator, inquired if I had gin.
-
- I told him I had. He remarked that gin was forbidden, lauded the
- prohibition a while, and then went on to explain that he was a
- doctor, or 'dogstar' as he pronounced the word, that gin was
- necessary to him for his medical infusions, that he was quite out
- of it, and that he would be obliged to me for some in a bottle. I
- told him I had passed the king my word on landing; but since his
- case was so exceptional, I would go down to the palace at once, and
- had no doubt that Tembinok' would set me free. Tom White was
- immediately overwhelmed with embarrassment and terror, besought me
- in the most moving terms not to betray him, and fled my
- neighbourhood. He had none of the cook's valour; it was weeks
- before he dared to meet my eye; and then only by the order of the
- king and on particular business.
-
- The more I viewed and admired this triumph of firm rule, the more I
- was haunted and troubled by a problem, the problem (perhaps) of to-
- morrow for ourselves. Here was a people protected from all serious
- misfortune, relieved of all serious anxieties, and deprived of what
- we call our liberty. Did they like it? and what was their
- sentiment toward the ruler? The first question I could not of
- course ask, nor perhaps the natives answer. Even the second was
- delicate; yet at last, and under charming and strange
- circumstances, I found my opportunity to put it and a man to reply.
- It was near the full of the moon, with a delicious breeze; the isle
- was bright as day - to sleep would have been sacrilege; and I
- walked in the bush, playing my pipe. It must have been the sound
- of what I am pleased to call my music that attracted in my
- direction another wanderer of the night. This was a young man
- attired in a fine mat, and with a garland on his hair, for he was
- new come from dancing and singing in the public hall; and his body,
- his face, and his eyes were all of an enchanting beauty. Every
- here and there in the Gilberts youths are to be found of this
- absurd perfection; I have seen five of us pass half an hour in
- admiration of a boy at Mariki; and Te Kop (my friend in the fine
- mat and garland) I had already several times remarked, and long ago
- set down as the loveliest animal in Apemama. The philtre of
- admiration must be very strong, or these natives specially
- susceptible to its effects, for I have scarce ever admired a person
- in the islands but what he has sought my particular acquaintance.
- So it was with Te Kop. He led me to the ocean side; and for an
- hour or two we sat smoking and talking on the resplendent sand and
- under the ineffable brightness of the moon. My friend showed
- himself very sensible of the beauty and amenity of the hour. 'Good
- night! Good wind!' he kept exclaiming, and as he said the words he
- seemed to hug myself. I had long before invented such reiterated
- expressions of delight for a character (Felipe, in the story of
- OLALLA) intended to be partly bestial. But there was nothing
- bestial in Te Kop; only a childish pleasure in the moment. He was
- no less pleased with his companion, or was good enough to say so;
- honoured me, before he left, by calling me Te Kop; apostrophised me
- as 'My name!' with an intonation exquisitely tender, laying his
- hand at the same time swiftly on my knee; and after we had risen,
- and our paths began to separate in the bush, twice cried to me with
- a sort of gentle ecstasy, 'I like you too much!' From the
- beginning he had made no secret of his terror of the king; would
- not sit down nor speak above a whisper till he had put the whole
- breadth of the isle between himself and his monarch, then
- harmlessly asleep; and even there, even within a stone-cast of the
- outer sea, our talk covered by the sound of the surf and the rattle
- of the wind among the palms, continued to speak guardedly,
- softening his silver voice (which rang loud enough in the chorus)
- and looking about him like a man in fear of spies. The strange
- thing is that I should have beheld him no more. In any other
- island in the whole South Seas, if I had advanced half as far with
- any native, he would have been at my door next morning, bringing
- and expecting gifts. But Te Kop vanished in the bush for ever. My
- house, of course, was unapproachable; but he knew where to find me
- on the ocean beach, where I went daily. I was the KAUPOI, the rich
- man; my tobacco and trade were known to be endless: he was sure of
- a present. I am at a loss how to explain his behaviour, unless it
- be supposed that he recalled with terror and regret a passage in
- our interview. Here it is:
-
- 'The king, he good man?' I asked.
-
- 'Suppose he like you, he good man,' replied Te Kop: 'no like, no
- good.'
-
- That is one way of putting it, of course. Te Kop himself was
- probably no favourite, for he scarce appealed to my judgment as a
- type of industry. And there must be many others whom the king (to
- adhere to the formula) does not like. Do these unfortunates like
- the king? Or is not rather the repulsion mutual? and the
- conscientious Tembinok', like the conscientious Braxfield before
- him, and many other conscientious rulers and judges before either,
- surrounded by a considerable body of 'grumbletonians'? Take the
- cook, for instance, when he passed us by, blue with rage and
- terror. He was very wroth with me; I think by all the old
- principles of human nature he was not very well pleased with his
- sovereign. It was the rich man he sought to waylay: I think it
- must have been by the turn of a hair that it was not the king he
- waylaid instead. And the king gives, or seems to give, plenty of
- opportunities; day and night he goes abroad alone, whether armed or
- not I can but guess; and the taro-patches, where his business must
- so often carry him, seem designed for assassination. The case of
- the cook was heavy indeed to my conscience. I did not like to kill
- my enemy at second-hand; but had I a right to conceal from the
- king, who had trusted me, the dangerous secret character of his
- attendant? And suppose the king should fall, what would be the
- fate of the king's friends? It was our opinion at the time that we
- should pay dear for the closing of the well; that our breath was in
- the king's nostrils; that if the king should by any chance be
- bludgeoned in a taro-patch, the philosophical and musical
- inhabitants of Equator Town might lay aside their pleasant
- instruments, and betake themselves to what defence they had, with a
- very dim prospect of success. These speculations were forced upon
- us by an incident which I am ashamed to betray. The schooner H. L.
- HASELTINE (since capsized at sea, with the loss of eleven lives)
- put into Apemama in a good hour for us, who had near exhausted our
- supplies. The king, after his habit, spent day after day on board;
- the gin proved unhappily to his taste; he brought a store of it
- ashore with him; and for some time the sole tyrant of the isle was
- half-seas-over. He was not drunk - the man is not a drunkard, he
- has always stores of liquor at hand, which he uses with moderation,
- - but he was muzzy, dull, and confused. He came one day to lunch
- with us, and while the cloth was being laid fell asleep in his
- chair. His confusion, when he awoke and found he had been
- detected, was equalled by our uneasiness. When he was gone we sat
- and spoke of his peril, which we thought to be in some degree our
- own; of how easily the man might be surprised in such a state by
- GRUMBLETONIANS; of the strange scenes that would follow - the royal
- treasures and stores at the mercy of the rabble, the palace
- overrun, the garrison of women turned adrift. And as we talked we
- were startled by a gun-shot and a sudden, barbaric outcry. I
- believe we all changed colour; but it was only the king firing at a
- dog and the chorus striking up in the Speak House. A day or two
- later I learned the king was very sick; went down, diagnosed the
- case; and took at once the highest medical degree by the exhibition
- of bicarbonate of soda. Within the hour Richard was himself again;
- and I found him at the unfinished house, enjoying the double
- pleasure of directing Rubam and making a dinner of cocoa-nut
- dumplings, and all eagerness to have the formula of this new sort
- of PAIN-KILLER - for PAIN-KILLER in the islands is the generic name
- of medicine. So ended the king's modest spree and our anxiety.
-
- On the face of things, I ought to say, loyalty appeared unshaken.
- When the schooner at last returned for us, after much experience of
- baffling winds, she brought a rumour that Tebureimoa had declared
- war on Apemama. Tembinok' became a new man; his face radiant; his
- attitude, as I saw him preside over a council of chiefs in one of
- the palace maniap's, eager as a boy's; his voice sounding abroad,
- shrill and jubilant, over half the compound. War is what he wants,
- and here was his chance. The English captain, when he flung his
- arms in the lagoon, had forbidden him (except in one case) all
- military adventures in the future: here was the case arrived. All
- morning the council sat; men were drilled, arms were bought, the
- sound of firing disturbed the afternoon; the king devised and
- communicated to me his plan of campaign, which was highly elaborate
- and ingenious, but perhaps a trifle fine-spun for the rough and
- random vicissitudes of war. And in all this bustle the temper of
- the people appeared excellent, an unwonted animation in every face,
- and even Uncle Parker burning with military zeal.
-
- Of course it was a false alarm. Tebureimoa had other fish to fry.
- The ambassador who accompanied us on our return to Butaritari found
- him retired to a small island on the reef, in a huff with the Old
- Men, a tiff with the traders, and more fear of insurrection at home
- than appetite for wars abroad. The plenipotentiary had been placed
- under my protection; and we solemnly saluted when we met. He
- proved an excellent fisherman, and caught bonito over the ship's
- side. He pulled a good oar, and made himself useful for a whole
- fiery afternoon, towing the becalmed EQUATOR off Mariki. He went
- to his post and did no good. He returned home again, having done
- no harm. O SI SIC OMNES!
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI - THE KING OF APEMAMA: DEVIL-WORK
-
-
-
- THE ocean beach of Apemama was our daily resort. The coast is
- broken by shallow bays. The reef is detached, elevated, and
- includes a lagoon about knee-deep, the unrestful spending-basin of
- the surf. The beach is now of fine sand, now of broken coral. The
- trend of the coast being convex, scarce a quarter of a mile of it
- is to be seen at once; the land being so low, the horizon appears
- within a stone-cast; and the narrow prospect enhances the sense of
- privacy. Man avoids the place - even his footprints are uncommon;
- but a great number of birds hover and pipe there fishing, and leave
- crooked tracks upon the sand. Apart from these, the only sound
- (and I was going to say the only society), is that of the breakers
- on the reef.
-
- On each projection of the coast, the bank of coral clinkers
- immediately above the beach has been levelled, and a pillar built,
- perhaps breast-high. These are not sepulchral; all the dead being
- buried on the inhabited side of the island, close to men's houses,
- and (what is worse) to their wells. I was told they were to
- protect the isle against inroads from the sea - divine or
- diabolical martellos, probably sacred to Taburik, God of Thunder.
-
- The bay immediately opposite Equator Town, which we called Fu Bay,
- in honour of our cook, was thus fortified on either horn. It was
- well sheltered by the reef, the enclosed water clear and tranquil,
- the enclosing beach curved like a horseshoe, and both steep and
- broad. The path debouched about the midst of the re-entrant angle,
- the woods stopping some distance inland. In front, between the
- fringe of the wood and the crown of the beach, there had been
- designed a regular figure, like the court for some new variety of
- tennis, with borders of round stones imbedded, and pointed at the
- angles with low posts, likewise of stone. This was the king's Pray
- Place. When he prayed, what he prayed for, and to whom he
- addressed his supplications I could never learn. The ground was
- tapu.
-
- In the angle, by the mouth of the path, stood a deserted maniap'.
- Near by there had been a house before our coming, which was now
- transported and figured for the moment in Equator Town. It had
- been, and it would be again when we departed, the residence of the
- guardian and wizard of the spot - Tamaiti. Here, in this lone
- place, within sound of the sea, he had his dwelling and uncanny
- duties. I cannot call to mind another case of a man living on the
- ocean side of any open atoll; and Tamaiti must have had strong
- nerves, the greater confidence in his own spells, or, what I
- believe to be the truth, an enviable scepticism. Whether Tamaiti
- had any guardianship of the Pray Place I never heard. But his own
- particular chapel stood farther back in the fringe of the wood. It
- was a tree of respectable growth. Around it there was drawn a
- circle of stones like those that enclosed the Pray Place; in front,
- facing towards the sea, a stone of a much greater size, and
- somewhat hollowed, like a piscina, stood close against the trunk;
- in front of that again a conical pile of gravel. In the hollow of
- what I have called the piscina (though it proved to be a magic
- seat) lay an offering of green cocoa-nuts; and when you looked up
- you found the boughs of the tree to be laden with strange fruit:
- palm-branches elaborately plaited, and beautiful models of canoes,
- finished and rigged to the least detail. The whole had the
- appearance of a mid-summer and sylvan Christmas-tree AL FRESCO.
- Yet we were already well enough acquainted in the Gilberts to
- recognise it, at the first sight, for a piece of wizardry, or, as
- they say in the group, of Devil-work.
-
- The plaited palms were what we recognised. We had seen them before
- on Apaiang, the most christianised of all these islands; where
- excellent Mr. Bingham lived and laboured and has left golden
- memories; whence all the education in the northern Gilberts traces
- its descent; and where we were boarded by little native Sunday-
- school misses in clean frocks, with demure faces, and singing hymns
- as to the manner born.
-
- Our experience of Devil-work at Apaiang had been as follows:- It
- chanced we were benighted at the house of Captain Tierney. My wife
- and I lodged with a Chinaman some half a mile away; and thither
- Captain Reid and a native boy escorted us by torch-light. On the
- way the torch went out, and we took shelter in a small and lonely
- Christian chapel to rekindle it. Stuck in the rafters of the
- chapel was a branch of knotted palm. 'What is that?' I asked. 'O,
- that's Devil-work,' said the Captain. 'And what is Devil-work?' I
- inquired. 'If you like, I'll show you some when we get to
- Johnnie's,' he replied. 'Johnnie's' was a quaint little house upon
- the crest of the beach, raised some three feet on posts, approached
- by stairs; part walled, part trellised. Trophies of advertisement-
- photographs were hung up within for decoration. There was a table
- and a recess-bed, in which Mrs. Stevenson slept; while I camped on
- the matted floor with Johnnie, Mrs. Johnnie, her sister, and the
- devil's own regiment of cockroaches. Hither was summoned an old
- witch, who looked the part to horror. The lamp was set on the
- floor; the crone squatted on the threshold, a green palm-branch in
- her hand, the light striking full on her aged features and picking
- out behind her, from the black night, timorous faces of spectators.
- Our sorceress began with a chanted incantation; it was in the old
- tongue, for which I had no interpreter; but ever and again there
- ran among the crowd outside that laugh which every traveller in the
- islands learns so soon to recognise, - the laugh of terror.
- Doubtless these half-Christian folk were shocked, these half-
- heathen folk alarmed. Chench or Taburik thus invoked, we put our
- questions; the witch knotted the leaves, here a leaf and there a
- leaf, plainly on some arithmetical system; studied the result with
- great apparent contention of mind; and gave the answers. Sidney
- Colvin was in robust health and gone a journey; and we should have
- a fair wind upon the morrow: that was the result of our
- consultation, for which we paid a dollar. The next day dawned
- cloudless and breathless; but I think Captain Reid placed a secret
- reliance on the sibyl, for the schooner was got ready for sea. By
- eight the lagoon was flawed with long cat's-paws, and the palms
- tossed and rustled; before ten we were clear of the passage and
- skimming under all plain sail, with bubbling scuppers. So we had
- the breeze, which was well worth a dollar in itself; but the
- bulletin about my friend in England proved, some six months later,
- when I got my mail, to have been groundless. Perhaps London lies
- beyond the horizon of the island gods.
-
- Tembinok', in his first dealings, showed himself sternly averse
- from superstition: and had not the EQUATOR delayed, we might have
- left the island and still supposed him an agnostic. It chanced one
- day, however, that he came to our maniap', and found Mrs. Stevenson
- in the midst of a game of patience. She explained the game as well
- as she was able, and wound up jocularly by telling him this was her
- devil-work, and if she won, the EQUATOR would arrive next day.
- Tembinok' must have drawn a long breath; we were not so high-and-
- dry after all; he need no longer dissemble, and he plunged at once
- into confessions. He made devil-work every day, he told us, to
- know if ships were coming in; and thereafter brought us regular
- reports of the results. It was surprising how regularly he was
- wrong; but he always had an explanation ready. There had been some
- schooner in the offing out of view; but either she was not bound
- for Apemama, or had changed her course, or lay becalmed. I used to
- regard the king with veneration as he thus publicly deceived
- himself. I saw behind him all the fathers of the Church, all the
- philosophers and men of science of the past; before him, all those
- that are to come; himself in the midst; the whole visionary series
- bowed over the same task of welding incongruities. To the end
- Tembinok' spoke reluctantly of the island gods and their worship,
- and I learned but little. Taburik is the god of thunder, and deals
- in wind and weather. A while since there were wizards who could
- call him down in the form of lightning. 'My patha he tell me he
- see: you think he lie?' Tienti - pronounced something like
- 'Chench,' and identified by his majesty with the devil - sends and
- removes bodily sickness. He is whistled for in the Paumotuan
- manner, and is said to appear; but the king has never seen him.
- The doctors treat disease by the aid of Chench: eclectic Tembinok'
- at the same time administering 'pain-killer' from his medicine-
- chest, so as to give the sufferer both chances. 'I think mo'
- betta,' observed his majesty, with more than his usual self-
- approval. Apparently the gods are not jealous, and placidly enjoy
- both shrine and priest in common. On Tamaiti's medicine-tree, for
- instance, the model canoes are hung up EX VOTO for a prosperous
- voyage, and must therefore be dedicated to Taburik, god of the
- weather; but the stone in front is the place of sick folk come to
- pacify Chench.
-
- It chanced, by great good luck, that even as we spoke of these
- affairs, I found myself threatened with a cold. I do not suppose I
- was ever glad of a cold before, or shall ever be again; but the
- opportunity to see the sorcerers at work was priceless, and I
- called in the faculty of Apemama. They came in a body, all in
- their Sunday's best and hung with wreaths and shells, the insignia
- of the devil-worker. Tamaiti I knew already: Terutak' I saw for
- the first time - a tall, lank, raw-boned, serious North-Sea
- fisherman turned brown; and there was a third in their company
- whose name I never heard, and who played to Tamaiti the part of
- FAMULUS. Tamaiti took me in hand first, and led me, conversing
- agreeably, to the shores of Fu Bay. The FAMULUS climbed a tree for
- some green cocoa-nuts. Tamaiti himself disappeared a while in the
- bush and returned with coco tinder, dry leaves, and a spray of
- waxberry. I was placed on the stone, with my back to the tree and
- my face to windward; between me and the gravel-heap one of the
- green nuts was set; and then Tamaiti (having previously bared his
- feet, for he had come in canvas shoes, which tortured him) joined
- me within the magic circle, hollowed out the top of the gravel-
- heap, built his fire in the bottom, and applied a match: it was
- one of Bryant and May's. The flame was slow to catch, and the
- irreverent sorcerer filled in the time with talk of foreign places
- - of London, and 'companies,' and how much money they had; of San
- Francisco, and the nefarious fogs, 'all the same smoke,' which had
- been so nearly the occasion of his death. I tried vainly to lead
- him to the matter in hand. 'Everybody make medicine,' he said
- lightly. And when I asked him if he were himself a good
- practitioner - 'No savvy,' he replied, more lightly still. At
- length the leaves burst in a flame, which he continued to feed; a
- thick, light smoke blew in my face, and the flames streamed against
- and scorched my clothes. He in the meanwhile addressed, or
- affected to address, the evil spirit, his lips moving fast, but
- without sound; at the same time he waved in the air and twice
- struck me on the breast with his green spray. So soon as the
- leaves were consumed the ashes were buried, the green spray was
- imbedded in the gravel, and the ceremony was at an end.
-
- A reader of the ARABIAN NIGHTS felt quite at home. Here was the
- suffumigation; here was the muttering wizard; here was the desert
- place to which Aladdin was decoyed by the false uncle. But they
- manage these things better in fiction. The effect was marred by
- the levity of the magician, entertaining his patient with small
- talk like an affable dentist, and by the incongruous presence of
- Mr. Osbourne with a camera. As for my cold, it was neither better
- nor worse.
-
- I was now handed over to Terutak', the leading practitioner or
- medical baronet of Apemama. His place is on the lagoon side of the
- island, hard by the palace. A rail of light wood, some two feet
- high, encloses an oblong piece of gravel like the king's Pray
- Place; in the midst is a green tree; below, a stone table bears a
- pair of boxes covered with a fine mat; and in front of these an
- offering of food, a cocoa-nut, a piece of taro or a fish, is placed
- daily. On two sides the enclosure is lined with maniap's; and one
- of our party, who had been there to sketch, had remarked a daily
- concourse of people and an extraordinary number of sick children;
- for this is in fact the infirmary of Apemama. The doctor and
- myself entered the sacred place alone; the boxes and the mat were
- displaced; and I was enthroned in their stead upon the stone,
- facing once more to the east. For a while the sorcerer remained
- unseen behind me, making passes in the air with a branch of palm.
- Then he struck lightly on the brim of my straw hat; and this blow
- he continued to repeat at intervals, sometimes brushing instead my
- arm and shoulder. I have had people try to mesmerise me a dozen
- times, and never with the least result. But at the first tap - on
- a quarter no more vital than my hat-brim, and from nothing more
- virtuous than a switch of palm wielded by a man I could not even
- see - sleep rushed upon me like an armed man. My sinews fainted,
- my eyes closed, my brain hummed, with drowsiness. I resisted, at
- first instinctively, then with a certain flurry of despair, in the
- end successfully; if that were indeed success which enabled me to
- scramble to my feet, to stumble home somnambulous, to cast myself
- at once upon my bed, and sink at once into a dreamless stupor.
- When I awoke my cold was gone. So I leave a matter that I do not
- understand.
-
- Meanwhile my appetite for curiosities (not usually very keen) had
- been strangely whetted by the sacred boxes. They were of pandanus
- wood, oblong in shape, with an effect of pillaring along the sides
- like straw work, lightly fringed with hair or fibre and standing on
- four legs. The outside was neat as a toy; the inside a mystery I
- was resolved to penetrate. But there was a lion in the path. I
- might not approach Terutak', since I had promised to buy nothing in
- the island; I dared not have recourse to the king, for I had
- already received from him more gifts than I knew how to repay. In
- this dilemma (the schooner being at last returned) we hit on a
- device. Captain Reid came forward in my stead, professed an
- unbridled passion for the boxes, and asked and obtained leave to
- bargain for them with the wizard. That same afternoon the captain
- and I made haste to the infirmary, entered the enclosure, raised
- the mat, and had begun to examine the boxes at our leisure, when
- Terutak's wife bounced out of one of the nigh houses, fell upon us,
- swept up the treasures, and was gone. There was never a more
- absolute surprise. She came, she took, she vanished, we had not a
- guess whither; and we remained, with foolish looks and laughter on
- the empty field. Such was the fit prologue of our memorable
- bargaining.
-
- Presently Terutak' came, bringing Tamaiti along with him, both
- smiling; and we four squatted without the rail. In the three
- maniap's of the infirmary a certain audience was gathered: the
- family of a sick child under treatment, the king's sister playing
- cards, a pretty girl, who swore I was the image of her father; in
- all perhaps a score. Terutak's wife had returned (even as she had
- vanished) unseen, and now sat, breathless and watchful, by her
- husband's side. Perhaps some rumour of our quest had gone abroad,
- or perhaps we had given the alert by our unseemly freedom:
- certain, at least, that in the faces of all present, expectation
- and alarm were mingled.
-
- Captain Reid announced, without preface or disguise, that I was
- come to purchase; Terutak', with sudden gravity, refused to sell.
- He was pressed; he persisted. It was explained we only wanted one:
- no matter, two were necessary for the healing of the sick. He was
- rallied, he was reasoned with: in vain. He sat there, serious and
- still, and refused. All this was only a preliminary skirmish;
- hitherto no sum of money had been mentioned; but now the captain
- brought his great guns to bear. He named a pound, then two, then
- three. Out of the maniap's one person after another came to join
- the group, some with mere excitement, others with consternation in
- their faces. The pretty girl crept to my side; it was then that -
- surely with the most artless flattery - she informed me of my
- likeness to her father. Tamaiti the infidel sat with hanging head
- and every mark of dejection. Terutak' streamed with sweat, his eye
- was glazed, his face wore a painful rictus, his chest heaved like
- that of one spent with running. The man must have been by nature
- covetous; and I doubt if ever I saw moral agony more tragically
- displayed. His wife by his side passionately encouraged his
- resistance.
-
- And now came the charge of the old guard. The captain, making a
- skip, named the surprising figure of five pounds. At the word the
- maniap's were emptied. The king's sister flung down her cards and
- came to the front to listen, a cloud on her brow. The pretty girl
- beat her breast and cried with wearisome iteration that if the box
- were hers I should have it. Terutak's wife was beside herself with
- pious fear, her face discomposed, her voice (which scarce ceased
- from warning and encouragement) shrill as a whistle. Even Terutak'
- lost that image-like immobility which he had hitherto maintained.
- He rocked on his mat, threw up his closed knees alternately, and
- struck himself on the breast after the manner of dancers. But he
- came gold out of the furnace; and with what voice was left him
- continued to reject the bribe.
-
- And now came a timely interjection. 'Money will not heal the
- sick,' observed the king's sister sententiously; and as soon as I
- heard the remark translated my eyes were unsealed, and I began to
- blush for my employment. Here was a sick child, and I sought, in
- the view of its parents, to remove the medicine-box. Here was the
- priest of a religion, and I (a heathen millionaire) was corrupting
- him to sacrilege. Here was a greedy man, torn in twain betwixt
- greed and conscience; and I sat by and relished, and lustfully
- renewed his torments. AVE, CAESAR! Smothered in a corner, dormant
- but not dead, we have all the one touch of nature: an infant
- passion for the sand and blood of the arena. So I brought to an
- end my first and last experience of the joys of the millionaire,
- and departed amid silent awe. Nowhere else can I expect to stir
- the depths of human nature by an offer of five pounds; nowhere
- else, even at the expense of millions, could I hope to see the evil
- of riches stand so legibly exposed. Of all the bystanders, none
- but the king's sister retained any memory of the gravity and danger
- of the thing in hand. Their eyes glowed, the girl beat her breast,
- in senseless animal excitement. Nothing was offered them; they
- stood neither to gain nor to lose; at the mere name and wind of
- these great sums Satan possessed them.
-
- From this singular interview I went straight to the palace; found
- the king; confessed what I had been doing; begged him, in my name,
- to compliment Terutak' on his virtue, and to have a similar box
- made for me against the return of the schooner. Tembinok', Rubam,
- and one of the Daily Papers - him we used to call 'the Facetiae
- Column' - laboured for a while of some idea, which was at last
- intelligibly delivered. They feared I thought the box would cure
- me; whereas, without the wizard, it was useless; and when I was
- threatened with another cold I should do better to rely on pain-
- killer. I explained I merely wished to keep it in my 'outch' as a
- thing made in Apemama and these honest men were much relieved.
-
- Late the same evening, my wife, crossing the isle to windward, was
- aware of singing in the bush. Nothing is more common in that hour
- and place than the jubilant carol of the toddy-cutter, swinging
- high overhead, beholding below him the narrow ribbon of the isle,
- the surrounding field of ocean, and the fires of the sunset. But
- this was of a graver character, and seemed to proceed from the
- ground-level. Advancing a little in the thicket, Mrs. Stevenson
- saw a clear space, a fine mat spread in the midst, and on the mat a
- wreath of white flowers and one of the devil-work boxes. A woman -
- whom we guess to have been Mrs. Terutak' - sat in front, now
- drooping over the box like a mother over a cradle, now lifting her
- face and directing her song to heaven. A passing toddy-cutter told
- my wife that she was praying. Probably she did not so much pray as
- deprecate; and perhaps even the ceremony was one of disenchantment.
- For the box was already doomed; it was to pass from its green
- medicine-tree, reverend precinct, and devout attendants; to be
- handled by the profane; to cross three seas; to come to land under
- the foolscap of St. Paul's; to be domesticated within the hail of
- Lillie Bridge; there to be dusted by the British housemaid, and to
- take perhaps the roar of London for the voice of the outer sea
- along the reef. Before even we had finished dinner Chench had
- begun his journey, and one of the newspapers had already placed the
- box upon my table as the gift of Tembinok'.
-
- I made haste to the palace, thanked the king, but offered to
- restore the box, for I could not bear that the sick of the island
- should be made to suffer. I was amazed by his reply. Terutak', it
- appeared, had still three or four in reserve against an accident;
- and his reluctance, and the dread painted at first on every face,
- was not in the least occasioned by the prospect of medical
- destitution, but by the immediate divinity of Chench. How much
- more did I respect the king's command, which had been able to
- extort in a moment and for nothing a sacrilegious favour that I had
- in vain solicited with millions! But now I had a difficult task in
- front of me; it was not in my view that Terutak' should suffer by
- his virtue; and I must persuade the king to share my opinion, to
- let me enrich one of his subjects, and (what was yet more delicate)
- to pay for my present. Nothing shows the king in a more becoming
- light than the fact that I succeeded. He demurred at the
- principle; he exclaimed, when he heard it, at the sum. 'Plenty
- money!' cried he, with contemptuous displeasure. But his
- resistance was never serious; and when he had blown off his ill-
- humour - 'A' right,' said he. 'You give him. Mo' betta.'
-
- Armed with this permission, I made straight for the infirmary. The
- night was now come, cool, dark, and starry. On a mat hard by a
- clear fire of wood and coco shell, Terutak' lay beside his wife.
- Both were smiling; the agony was over, the king's command had
- reconciled (I must suppose) their agitating scruples; and I was
- bidden to sit by them and share the circulating pipe. I was a
- little moved myself when I placed five gold sovereigns in the
- wizard's hand; but there was no sign of emotion in Terutak' as he
- returned them, pointed to the palace, and named Tembinok'. It was
- a changed scene when I had managed to explain. Terutak', long,
- dour Scots fisherman as he was, expressed his satisfaction within
- bounds; but the wife beamed; and there was an old gentleman present
- - her father, I suppose - who seemed nigh translated. His eyes
- stood out of his head; 'KAUPOI, KAUPOI - rich, rich!' ran on his
- lips like a refrain; and he could not meet my eye but what he
- gurgled into foolish laughter.
-
- I might now go home, leaving that fire-lit family party gloating
- over their new millions, and consider my strange day. I had tried
- and rewarded the virtue of Terutak'. I had played the millionaire,
- had behaved abominably, and then in some degree repaired my
- thoughtlessness. And now I had my box, and could open it and look
- within. It contained a miniature sleeping-mat and a white shell.
- Tamaiti, interrogated next day as to the shell, explained it was
- not exactly Chench, but a cell, or body, which he would at times
- inhabit. Asked why there was a sleeping-mat, he retorted
- indignantly, 'Why have you mats?' And this was the sceptical
- Tamaiti! But island scepticism is never deeper than the lips.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII - THE KING OF APEMAMA
-
-
-
- THUS all things on the island, even the priests of the gods, obey
- the word of Tembinok'. He can give and take, and slay, and allay
- the scruples of the conscientious, and do all things (apparently)
- but interfere in the cookery of a turtle. 'I got power' is his
- favourite word; it interlards his conversation; the thought haunts
- him and is ever fresh; and when be has asked and meditates of
- foreign countries, he looks up with a smile and reminds you, 'I got
- POWER.' Nor is his delight only in the possession, but in the
- exercise. He rejoices in the crooked and violent paths of kingship
- like a strong man to run a race, or like an artist in his art. To
- feel, to use his power, to embellish his island and the picture of
- the island life after a private ideal, to milk the island
- vigorously, to extend his singular museum - these employ
- delightfully the sum of his abilities. I never saw a man more
- patently in the right trade.
-
- It would be natural to suppose this monarchy inherited intact
- through generations. And so far from that, it is a thing of
- yesterday. I was already a boy at school while Apemama was yet
- republican, ruled by a noisy council of Old Men, and torn with
- incurable feuds. And Tembinok' is no Bourbon; rather the son of a
- Napoleon. Of course he is well-born. No man need aspire high in
- the isles of the Pacific unless his pedigree be long and in the
- upper regions mythical. And our king counts cousinship with most
- of the high families in the archipelago, and traces his descent to
- a shark and a heroic woman. Directed by an oracle, she swam beyond
- sight of land to meet her revolting paramour, and received at sea
- the seed of a predestined family. 'I think lie,' is the king's
- emphatic commentary; yet he is proud of the legend. From this
- illustrious beginning the fortunes of the race must have declined;
- and Tenkoruti, the grandfather of Tembinok', was the chief of a
- village at the north end of the island. Kuria and Aranuka were yet
- independent; Apemama itself the arena of devastating feuds.
- Through this perturbed period of history the figure of Tenkoruti
- stalks memorable. In war he was swift and bloody; several towns
- fell to his spear, and the inhabitants were butchered to a man. In
- civil life this arrogance was unheard of. When the council of Old
- Men was summoned, he went to the Speak House, delivered his mind,
- and left without waiting to be answered. Wisdom had spoken: let
- others opine according to their folly. He was feared and hated,
- and this was his pleasure. He was no poet; he cared not for arts
- or knowledge. 'My gran'patha one thing savvy, savvy pight,'
- observed the king. In some lull of their own disputes the Old Men
- of Apemama adventured on the conquest of Apemama; and this unlicked
- Caius Marcius was elected general of the united troops. Success
- attended him; the islands were reduced, and Tenkoruti returned to
- his own government, glorious and detested. He died about 1860, in
- the seventieth year of his age and the full odour of unpopularity.
- He was tall and lean, says his grandson, looked extremely old, and
- 'walked all the same young man.' The same observer gave me a
- significant detail. The survivors of that rough epoch were all
- defaced with spearmarks; there was none on the body of this skilful
- fighter. 'I see old man, no got a spear,' said the king.
-
- Tenkoruti left two sons, Tembaitake and Tembinatake. Tembaitake,
- our king's father, was short, middling stout, a poet, a good
- genealogist, and something of a fighter; it seems he took himself
- seriously, and was perhaps scarce conscious that he was in all
- things the creature and nursling of his brother. There was no
- shadow of dispute between the pair: the greater man filled with
- alacrity and content the second place; held the breach in war, and
- all the portfolios in the time of peace; and, when his brother
- rated him, listened in silence, looking on the ground. Like
- Tenkoruti, he was tall and lean and a swift talker - a rare trait
- in the islands. He possessed every accomplishment. He knew
- sorcery, he was the best genealogist of his day, he was a poet, he
- could dance and make canoes and armour; and the famous mast of
- Apemama, which ran one joint higher than the mainmast of a full-
- rigged ship, was of his conception and design. But these were
- avocations, and the man's trade was war. 'When my uncle go make
- wa', he laugh,' said Tembinok'. He forbade the use of field
- fortification, that protractor of native hostilities; his men must
- fight in the open, and win or be beaten out of hand; his own
- activity inspired his followers; and the swiftness of his blows
- beat down, in one lifetime, the resistance of three islands. He
- made his brother sovereign, he left his nephew absolute. 'My uncle
- make all smooth,' said Tembinok'. 'I mo' king than my patha: I
- got power,' he said, with formidable relish.
-
- Such is the portrait of the uncle drawn by the nephew. I can set
- beside it another by a different artist, who has often - I may say
- always - delighted me with his romantic taste in narrative, but not
- always - and I may say not often - persuaded me of his exactitude.
- I have already denied myself the use of so much excellent matter
- from the same source, that I begin to think it time to reward good
- resolution; and his account of Tembinatake agrees so well with the
- king's, that it may very well be (what I hope it is) the record of
- a fact, and not (what I suspect) the pleasing exercise of an
- imagination more than sailorly. A., for so I had perhaps better
- call him, was walking up the island after dusk, when he came on a
- lighted village of some size, was directed to the chief's house,
- and asked leave to rest and smoke a pipe. 'You will sit down, and
- smoke a pipe, and wash, and eat, and sleep,' replied the chief,
- 'and to-morrow you will go again.' Food was brought, prayers were
- held (for this was in the brief day of Christianity), and the chief
- himself prayed with eloquence and seeming sincerity. All evening
- A. sat and admired the man by the firelight. He was six feet high,
- lean, with the appearance of many years, and an extraordinary air
- of breeding and command. 'He looked like a man who would kill you
- laughing,' said A., in singular echo of one of the king's
- expressions. And again: 'I had been reading the Musketeer books,
- and he reminded me of Aramis.' Such is the portrait of
- Tembinatake, drawn by an expert romancer.
-
- We had heard many tales of 'my patha'; never a word of my uncle
- till two days before we left. As the time approached for our
- departure Tembinok' became greatly changed; a softer, a more
- melancholy, and, in particular, a more confidential man appeared in
- his stead. To my wife he contrived laboriously to explain that
- though he knew he must lose his father in the course of nature, he
- had not minded nor realised it till the moment came; and that now
- he was to lose us he repeated the experience. We showed fireworks
- one evening on the terrace. It was a heavy business; the sense of
- separation was in all our minds, and the talk languished. The king
- was specially affected, sat disconsolate on his mat, and often
- sighed. Of a sudden one of the wives stepped forth from a cluster,
- came and kissed him in silence, and silently went again. It was
- just such a caress as we might give to a disconsolate child, and
- the king received it with a child's simplicity. Presently after we
- said good-night and withdrew; but Tembinok' detained Mr. Osbourne,
- patting the mat by his side and saying: 'Sit down. I feel bad, I
- like talk.' Osbourne sat down by him. 'You like some beer?' said
- he; and one of the wives produced a bottle. The king did not
- partake, but sat sighing and smoking a meerschaum pipe. 'I very
- sorry you go,' he said at last. 'Miss Stlevens he good man, woman
- he good man, boy he good man; all good man. Woman he smart all the
- same man. My woman' (glancing towards his wives) 'he good woman,
- no very smart. I think Miss Stlevens he is chiep all the same
- cap'n man-o-wa'. I think Miss Stlevens he rich man all the same
- me. All go schoona. I very sorry. My patha he go, my uncle he
- go, my cutcheons he go, Miss Stlevens he go: all go. You no see
- king cry before. King all the same man: feel bad, he cry. I very
- sorry.'
-
- In the morning it was the common topic in the village that the king
- had wept. To me he said: 'Last night I no can 'peak: too much
- here,' laying his hand upon his bosom. 'Now you go away all the
- same my pamily. My brothers, my uncle go away. All the same.'
- This was said with a dejection almost passionate. And it was the
- first time I had heard him name his uncle, or indeed employ the
- word. The same day he sent me a present of two corselets, made in
- the island fashion of plaited fibre, heavy and strong. One had
- been worn by Tenkoruti, one by Tembaitake; and the gift being
- gratefully received, he sent me, on the return of his messengers, a
- third - that of Tembinatake. My curiosity was roused; I begged for
- information as to the three wearers; and the king entered with
- gusto into the details already given. Here was a strange thing,
- that he should have talked so much of his family, and not once
- mentioned that relative of whom he was plainly the most proud.
- Nay, more: he had hitherto boasted of his father; thenceforth he
- had little to say of him; and the qualities for which he had
- praised him in the past were now attributed where they were due, -
- to the uncle. A confusion might be natural enough among islanders,
- who call all the sons of their grandfather by the common name of
- father. But this was not the case with Tembinok'. Now the ice was
- broken the word uncle was perpetually in his mouth; he who had been
- so ready to confound was now careful to distinguish; and the father
- sank gradually into a self-complacent ordinary man, while the uncle
- rose to his true stature as the hero and founder of the race.
-
- The more I heard and the more I considered, the more this mystery
- of Tembinok's behaviour puzzled and attracted me. And the
- explanation, when it came, was one to strike the imagination of a
- dramatist. Tembinok' had two brothers. One, detected in private
- trading, was banished, then forgiven, lives to this day in the
- island, and is the father of the heir-apparent, Paul. The other
- fell beyond forgiveness. I have heard it was a love-affair with
- one of the king's wives, and the thing is highly possible in that
- romantic archipelago. War was attempted to be levied; but
- Tembinok' was too swift for the rebels, and the guilty brother
- escaped in a canoe. He did not go alone. Tembinatake had a hand
- in the rebellion, and the man who had gained a kingdom for a
- weakling brother was banished by that brother's son. The fugitives
- came to shore in other islands, but Tembinok' remains to this day
- ignorant of their fate.
-
- So far history. And now a moment for conjecture. Tembinok'
- confused habitually, not only the attributes and merits of his
- father and his uncle, but their diverse personal appearance.
- Before he had even spoken, or thought to speak, of Tembinatake, he
- had told me often of a tall, lean father, skilled in war, and his
- own schoolmaster in genealogy and island arts. How if both were
- fathers, one natural, one adoptive? How if the heir of Tembaitake,
- like the heir of Tembinok' himself, were not a son, but an adopted
- nephew? How if the founder of the monarchy, while he worked for
- his brother, worked at the same time for the child of his loins?
- How if on the death of Tembaitake, the two stronger natures, father
- and son, king and kingmaker, clashed, and Tembinok', when he drove
- out his uncle, drove out the author of his days? Here is at least
- a tragedy four-square.
-
- The king took us on board in his own gig, dressed for the occasion
- in the naval uniform. He had little to say, he refused
- refreshments, shook us briefly by the hand, and went ashore again.
- That night the palm-tops of Apemama had dipped behind the sea, and
- the schooner sailed solitary under the stars.
-
-
-
-
-
- End of The Project Gutenberg Etext of In the South Seas
-
-
-